Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n great_a king_n power_n 3,921 5 4.7466 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A17642 The commentaries of M. Iohn Caluin vpon the Actes of the Apostles, faithfully translated out of Latine into English for the great profite of our countrie-men, by Christopher Fetherstone student in diuinitie; Commentarii in Acta Apostolorum. English Calvin, Jean, 1509-1564.; Fetherston, Christopher. 1585 (1585) STC 4398; ESTC S107377 721,474 648

There are 60 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

they_o do_v all_o thing_n so_o tyrannous_o that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o lust_n bear_v a_o show_n of_o right_n and_o liberty_n be_v drive_v far_o away_o and_o at_o length_n the_o truth_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v condemn_v by_o good_a right_n but_o the_o lord_n bring_v upon_o they_o a_o sudden_a fear_n so_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o do_v that_o which_o they_o can_v and_o which_o they_o do_v most_o of_o all_o desire_n whatsoever_o the_o apostle_n shall_v bring_v in_o defence_n of_o their_o cause_n that_o shall_v remain_v bury_v and_o shut_v uppe_o with_o the_o wall_n where_o there_o be_v none_o which_o do_v bear_v they_o any_o favour_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o place_n leave_v for_o the_o truth_n yet_o we_o see_v how_o the_o lord_n bring_v their_o counsel_n to_o nought_o while_o that_o be_v keep_v back_o with_o fear_n of_o the_o people_n they_o stay_v themselves_o and_o bridle_v their_o fury_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v avoid_v envy_n but_o i_o marvel_v much_o why_o luke_n do_v m●ke_v anna_n the_o high_a priest_n in_o this_o place_n see_v that_o it_o appear_v by_o josephus_n that_o this_o honour_n be_v not_o take_v from_o caiphas_n until_o vitellius_n have_v enter_v jerusalem_n to_o bear_v rule_n after_o that_o pilate_n be_v command_v to_o depart_v unto_o rome_n all_o man_n grant_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v crucify_v in_o the_o eighteen_o year_n of_o tiberius_n and_o that_o empire_n do_v continue_v four_o year_n long_o and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o there_o be_v 3._o year_n complete_a after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n before_o pilate_n be_v put_v from_o the_o office_n of_o the_o proconsull_n for_o when_o tiberius_n be_v dead_a he_o come_v to_o rome_n so_o that_o caiphas_n be_v high_a priest_n yet_o 3._o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o that_o whereof_o luke_n speak_v in_o this_o place_n do_v not_o happen_v immediate_o after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n although_o the_o doubt_n can_v thus_o be_v answer_v for_o josephus_n report_v that_o jonathas_n be_v choose_v into_o the_o place_n of_o caiphas_n but_o because_o this_o jonathas_n be_v the_o son_n of_o annas_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o unlike_a to_o be_v true_a that_o the_o son_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n as_o caiphas_n also_o have_v two_o name_n for_o they_o do_v also_o call_v he_o joseph_n 7_o in_o what_o power_n they_o do_v yet_o seem_v to_o have_v some_o zeal_n of_o god_n for_o they_o feign_v that_o they_o be_v careful_a that_o the_o honour_n due_a unto_o god_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o any_o other_o name_n be_v take_v in_o this_o place_n for_o authoririe_a in_o sum_n they_o deal_v as_o if_o they_o be_v most_o earnest_a defender_n &_o maintainer_n of_o god_n glory_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n their_o importunatenes_n be_v wonderful_a in_o that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o drive_v the_o apostle_n to_o make_v denial_n by_o ask_v many_o question_n concern_v a_o manifest_a matter_n &_o to_o wring_v out_o by_o fear_v some_o ●●her_a thing_n than_o they_o have_v confess_v but_o god_n do_v bring_v their_o crafty_a wiliness_n to_o naught_o &_o make_v they_o hear_v that_o which_o they_o will_v not_o 8_o peter_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v not_o without_o great_a cause_n that_o luke_n add_v this_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o peter_n speak_v not_o with_o such_o a_o majesty_n of_o himself_o and_o sure_o see_v he_o have_v deny_v his_o master_n christ_n be_v afraid_a at_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o sielie_a woman_n he_o shall_v have_v utter_o faint_v in_o such_o a_o assembly_n 26.70_o mat._n 26.70_o when_o he_o do_v only_o behold_v their_o pomp_n unless_o he_o have_v be_v uphold_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o have_v great_a need_n of_o wisdom_n &_o strength_n he_o excel_v in_o both_o these_o so_o much_o that_o his_o answer_n be_v in_o deed_n divine_a he_o be_v another_o manner_n of_o man_n here_o than_o he_o be_v before_o furthermore_o this_o profit_v we_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n for_o this_o title_n or_o commendation_n be_v of_o no_o small_a force_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o doctrine_n which_o shall_v follow_v immediate_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o come_v from_o the_o holy_a god_n and_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o crave_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n when_o we_o make_v profession_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o direct_v our_o heart_n &_o mind_n the_o fullness_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v take_v for_o a_o large_a &_o no_o common_a measure_n 9_o if_o we_o be_v judge_v undoubted_o peter_n lay_v tyranny_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o priest_n &_o the_o scribe_n because_o they_o examine_v they_o unjust_o concern_v a_o benefit_n which_o deserve_v praise_n as_o if_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n have_v commit_v some_o heinous_a offence_n if_o say_v he_o we_o be_v accuse_v for_o this_o cause_n because_o we_o have_v make_v a_o sick_a man_n whole_a peter_n have_v in_o this_o place_n more_o respect_n unto_o the_o wicked_a affection_n of_o the_o mind_n than_o unto_o the_o very_a order_n of_o the_o question_n for_o if_o under_o colour_n of_o a_o miracle_n the_o apostle_n will_v have_v draw_v away_o the_o people_n from_o the_o true_a &_o sincere_a worship_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v have_v be_v worthy_o call_v to_o answer_v for_o themselves_o because_o religion_n do_v far_o excel_v all_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o this_o present_a life_n but_o see_v they_o have_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o do_v wicked_o make_v a_o offence_n of_o that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v honour_v peter_n be_v support_v with_o this_o confidence_n do_v at_o the_o first_o gird_v they_o witty_o with_o a_o taunt_a preface_n because_o they_o sit_v as_o judge_n to_o condemn_v good_a deed_n yet_o he_o touch_v this_o point_n but_o light_o that_o he_o may_v pass_v over_o unto_o the_o matter_n 10_o be_v it_o know_v unto_o you_o peter_n may_v as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v have_v turn_v aside_o unto_o many_o start_a hole_n if_o he_o will_v not_o have_v enter_v the_o cause_n but_o because_o the_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v glorify_v he_o descend_v by_o and_o by_o unto_o this_o for_o he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o such_o excellent_a power_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o seal_n to_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o the_o wicked_a will_v they_o will_v they_o be_v enforce_v to_o hear_v that_o which_o they_o will_v have_v have_v bury_v full_a deep_a when_o they_o have_v do_v what_o they_o can_v this_o be_v all_o they_o cause_n peter_n to_o avouch_v and_o object_v to_o their_o face_n that_o wherewith_o they_o be_v so_o grieve_v when_o it_o be_v speak_v to_o other_o and_o first_o he_o make_v christ_n the_o author_n of_o the_o miracle_n second_o because_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o absurd_a and_o uncredible_a thing_n that_o a_o dead_a man_n shall_v be_v endue_v with_o divine_a power_n he_o testify_v that_o christ_n be_v alive_a because_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a howsoever_o they_o have_v crucify_v he_o so_o that_o the_o miracle_n give_v he_o occasion_n to_o preach_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o this_o testimony_n peter_n mean_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n he_o say_v that_o they_o have_v crucify_v he_o not_o only_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v upbraid_v this_o unto_o they_o that_o they_o may_v acknowledge_v their_o fault_n but_o also_o that_o they_o may_v understand_v that_o they_o have_v in_o vain_a strive_v against_o god_n and_o so_o consequent_o cease_v to_o rage_v so_o unlucke_o and_o with_o such_o deadly_a success_n 11_o this_o be_v the_o stone_n he_o confirm_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n that_o the_o ringleader_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v glorious_a title_n give_v they_o and_o have_v the_o chief_a room_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n have_v notwithstanding_o wicked_o reject_v christ_n therefore_o he_o cit_v a_o place_n out_o of_o the_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o psalm_n 118.22_o psa_fw-la 118.22_o where_o david_n complain_v that_o he_o be_v reject_v of_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o people_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o boast_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v of_o god_n to_o have_v the_o chief_a room_n moreover_o he_o compare_v the_o church_n or_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o a_o usual_a metaphor_n to_o a_o building_n he_o call_v those_o which_o have_v the_o government_n the_o master_n of_o the_o work_n and_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o principal_a stone_n whereon_o the_o whole_a building_n be_v stay_v and_o ground_v fot_o that_o
great_a cause_n that_o the_o place_n be_v show_v to_o david_n wherein_o the_o israelite_n shall_v hereafter_o worship_v god_n as_o in_o the_o psalm_n 132.3_o psal_n 132.3_o he_o rejoice_v as_o over_o some_o notable_a thing_n i_o be_v glad_a when_o they_o say_v unto_o i_o we_o will_v go_v into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o foot_n shall_v be_v stable_a in_o thy_o court_n o_o jerusalem_n the_o priesthood_n be_v couple_v with_o the_o kingdom_n therefore_o the_o stability_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v show_v in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ark_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o desire_v this_o so_o earnest_o that_o he_o bind_v himself_o with_o a_o solemn_a vow_n that_o he_o will_v not_o come_v within_o his_o house_n that_o his_o eye_n shall_v enjoy_v no_o sleep_n nor_o his_o temple_n any_o rest_n until_o he_o shall_v know_v a_o place_n for_o the_o lord_n and_o a_o tabernacle_n for_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n furthermore_o the_o place_n be_v show_v to_o david_n 5.5_o 1._o reg._n 5.5_o but_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o solomon_n to_o build_v the_o temple_n 47_o solomon_n build_v steeven_n seem_v to_o gird_v solomon_n glauncinglye_o in_o this_o place_n as_o if_o he_o do_v not_o regard_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n in_o build_v the_o temple_n yet_o do_v he_o attempt_v that_o work_n not_o without_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n there_o be_v also_o a_o promise_n add_v wherein_o god_n do_v testify_v that_o he_o will_v be_v present_a with_o his_o people_n there_o i_o answer_v that_o when_o steeven_n deni_v that_o god_n dwell_v in_o temple_n make_v with_o hand_n that_o be_v not_o refer_v unto_o solomon_n who_o know_v full_a well_o that_o god_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v in_o heaven_n and_o that_o man_n mind_n must_v be_v lift_v up_o thither_o by_o faith_n which_o thing_n he_o utter_v also_o in_o that_o solemn_a prayer_n which_o he_o make_v the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n do_v not_o contain_v thou_o and_o how_o much_o less_o this_o house_n but_o he_o reprove_v the_o blockishness_n of_o the_o people_n which_o abuse_v the_o temple_n as_o if_o it_o have_v have_v god_n tie_v to_o it_o 6.6_o isay_n 6.6_o which_o appear_v more_o plain_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o isaias_n which_o he_o cit_v also_o god_n say_v he_o will_v have_v solomon_n to_o build_v he_o a_o temple_n but_o they_o be_v great_o deceive_v who_o think_v that_o he_o be_v as_o it_o be_v include_v in_o such_o a_o building_n as_o he_o complain_v by_o his_o prophet_n that_o the_o people_n do_v he_o injury_n when_o as_o they_o imagine_v that_o he_o be_v tie_v to_o a_o place_n but_o the_o prophet_n do_v not_o for_o that_o cause_n only_o inveigh_v against_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o worship_v god_n superstitious_o think_v that_o his_o power_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o temple_n but_o because_o they_o do_v esteem_v he_o according_a to_o their_o own_o affection_n and_o therefore_o after_o that_o they_o have_v end_v their_o sacrifice_n and_o external_a pomp_n they_o imagine_v that_o he_o be_v please_v and_o that_o they_o have_v bring_v he_o indebt_v to_o they_o this_o be_v almost_o a_o common_a error_n in_o all_o age_n because_o man_n think_v that_o cold_a ceremony_n be_v sufficient_a enough_o for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o be_v carnal_a &_o whole_o set_v upon_o the_o world_n they_o imagine_v that_o god_n be_v like_a to_o they_o therefore_o to_o the_o end_n god_n may_v take_v from_o they_o this_o blockishness_n he_o say_v that_o he_o fill_v all_o thing_n 49_o for_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o heaven_n be_v his_o seat_n and_o the_o earth_n his_o footstool_n it_o must_v not_o be_v so_o understand_v as_o if_o he_o have_v a_o body_n or_o can_v be_v divide_v into_o part_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n but_o because_o he_o be_v infinite_a therefore_o he_o say_v that_o he_o can_v be_v comprehend_v within_o any_o space_n of_o place_n therefore_o those_o man_n be_v deceive_v who_o esteem_n god_n or_o his_o worship_n according_a to_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o because_o the_o prophet_n have_v to_o deal_v with_o hypocrite_n he_o do_v not_o only_o dispute_v about_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n but_o also_o teach_v general_o that_o he_o be_v far_o unlike_a to_o man_n &_o that_o he_o be_v not_o move_v with_o the_o vain_a pomp_n of_o this_o world_n as_o they_o be_v here_o arise_v that_o question_n also_o why_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v no_o place_n of_o rest_n in_o the_o world_n 132.14_o psal_n 132.14_o whereas_o notwithstanding_o the_o spirit_n affirm_v the_o contrary_a else_o where_o psal_n 132._o this_o be_v my_o rest_n for_o ever_o moreover_o isaias_n do_v adorn_v the_o church_n with_o this_o self_n same_o title_n that_o it_o be_v the_o glorious_a rest_n of_o god_n allude_v unto_o the_o temple_n i_o answer_v that_o when_o god_n appoint_v sign_n of_o his_o presence_n in_o the_o temple_n &_o sacrifice_n in_o time_n past_a he_o do_v not_o this_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v settle_v and_o fasten_v himself_o and_o his_o power_n there_o therefore_o the_o israelite_n do_v wicked_o who_o set_v their_o mind_n whole_o upon_o the_o sign_n do_v forge_v to_o themselves_o a_o earthly_a god_n they_o deal_v also_o ungodlilie_o who_o under_o this_o colour_n take_v to_o themselves_o liberty_n to_o sin_n as_o if_o they_o can_v ready_o &_o easy_o pacify_v god_n with_o bare_a ceremony_n thus_o do_v the_o world_n use_v to_o mock_v god_n when_o god_n do_v declare_v by_o the_o external_a rite_n that_o he_o will_v be_v present_a with_o he_o that_o he_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o he_o command_v they_o to_o lift_v up_o their_o mind_n that_o they_o may_v seek_v he_o spiritual_o hypocrite_n which_o be_v entangle_v in_o the_o world_n will_v rather_o pluck_v god_n out_o of_o heaven_n and_o whereas_o they_o have_v nothing_o but_o vain_a &_o bare_a figure_n they_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o such_o foolish_a confidence_n that_o they_o pamper_v themselves_o in_o their_o sin_n careless_o so_o at_o this_o day_n the_o papist_n include_v christ_n in_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n in_o their_o imagination_n that_o do_v so_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v worship_v their_o idol_n with_o a_o foolish_a worship_n they_o vaunt_v &_o crack_v as_o if_o they_o be_v as_o holy_a as_o angel_n we_o must_v diligent_o note_v these_o two_o vice_n that_o man_n do_v superstitious_o forge_v to_o themselves_o a_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a god_n which_o do_v so_o come_v down_o unto_o they_o that_o they_o remain_v still_o have_v their_o mind_n set_v upon_o the_o earth_n &_o that_o they_o rise_v not_o uppe_o in_o mind_n to_o heaven_n again_o they_o dream_v that_o god_n be_v pacify_v with_o frivolous_a obedience_n hereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o be_v befot_v in_o the_o visible_a sign_n &_o second_o that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o bring_v god_n indebt_v to_o they_o after_o a_o childish_a manner_n &_o with_o thing_n which_o be_v nothing_o worth_a now_o we_o understand_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o prophet_n say_v that_o god_n have_v no_o place_n of_o rest_n in_o the_o world_n he_o will_v indeed_o that_o the_o temple_n shall_v have_v be_v a_o sign_n &_o pledge_n of_o his_o presence_n yet_o only_o to_o the_o godly_a which_o do_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n in_o heart_n which_o do_v worship_v he_o spiritual_o with_o pure_a faith_n but_o he_o have_v no_o place_n of_o rest_n with_o the_o superstitious_a who_o through_o their_o foolish_a invention_n tie_v he_o unto_o the_o element_n of_o the_o world_n or_o do_v erect_v unto_o he_o a_o earthly_a worship_n neither_o yet_o with_o hypocrite_n who_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o drunken_a confidence_n as_o if_o they_o have_v do_v their_o duty_n towards_o god_n well_o after_o that_o they_o have_v play_v in_o their_o toy_n in_o sum_n the_o promise_n receive_v by_o faith_n do_v cause_n god_n to_o hear_v we_o in_o his_o temple_n as_o if_o he_o be_v present_a to_o show_v forth_o his_o power_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o unless_o we_o rise_v up_o unto_o he_o by_o faith_n we_o shall_v have_v no_o presence_n of_o he_o hereby_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v that_o when_o he_o dwell_v amid_o those_o that_o be_v he_o he_o be_v neither_o tie_v to_o the_o earth_n neither_o comprehend_v in_o any_o place_n because_o they_o seek_v he_o spiritual_o in_o heaven_n 50_o have_v not_o my_o hand_n the_o prophet_n tell_v the_o people_n in_o these_o word_n that_o god_n have_v no_o need_n either_o of_o gold_n either_o of_o precious_a furniture_n of_o the_o temple_n either_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o his_o true_a worship_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o ceremony_n for_o he_o desire_v none_o of_o all_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o offer_v unto_o he_o for_o his_o own_o
like_a sort_n he_o make_v the_o faithful_a attentive_a and_o purchase_v audience_n among_o they_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v see_v many_o boast_n that_o they_o be_v son_n of_o abraham_n who_o be_v unworthy_a of_o such_o honour_n show_v yourselves_o to_o be_v no_o bastardly_a seed_n let_v we_o learn_v by_o this_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o fault_n common_a to_o one_o age_n only_o that_o good_a and_o sincere_a worshipper_n be_v mix_v with_o hypocrite_n have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n common_a among_o they_o but_o we_o must_v have_v a_o great_a care_n hereof_o that_o we_o be_v in_o deed_n that_o which_o we_o be_v call_v which_o thing_n the_o true_a fear_n of_o almighty_a god_n will_v bring_v to_o pass_v and_o not_o the_o external_a profession_n alone_o 17._o the_o god_n of_o this_o people_n this_o preface_n do_v witness_v that_o paul_n do_v go_v about_o no_o new_a thing_n which_o may_v lead_v away_o the_o people_n from_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n who_o be_v god_n of_o all_o nation_n but_o he_o call_v he_o god_n of_o that_o people_n to_o who_o he_o have_v bind_v himself_o &_o who_o be_v worship_v among_o the_o posterity_n of_o abraham_n among_o who_o alone_o true_a and_o pure_a religion_n be_v to_o be_v find_v to_o the_o same_o end_n tend_v that_o which_o be_v add_v immediate_o he_o choose_v our_o father_n for_o he_o testify_v by_o these_o word_n that_o he_o seek_v nothing_o less_o then_o that_o they_o may_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o true_a and_o live_a god_n who_o have_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o world_n neither_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o do_v more_o manifest_o express_v that_o he_o do_v not_o preach_v to_o they_o a_o unknowen_a or_o strange_a god_n but_o the_o same_o who_o reveal_v himself_o long_o ago_o to_o their_o father_n so_o that_o he_o do_v brief_o comprehend_v the_o sound_a knowledge_n of_o god_n ground_v in_o the_o law_n that_o their_o faith_n conceive_v out_o of_o the_o law_n &_o prophet_n may_v continue_v firm_a notwithstanding_o he_o do_v in_o the_o mean_a season_n commend_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o free_a love_n of_o god_n towards_o that_o people_n for_o how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o only_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n be_v the_o church_n and_o inheritance_n of_o god_n save_v only_o because_o it_o please_v god_n to_o discever_v they_o from_o other_o nation_n for_o there_o be_v no_o worthiness_n to_o distinguish_v they_o but_o the_o difference_n begin_v at_o the_o love_n of_o god_n wherewith_o he_o do_v free_o love_n abraham_n of_o this_o free_a love_n of_o god_n moses_n do_v oftententimes_o put_v the_o jew_n in_o mind_n as_o deut._n 4.7.10.14.32_o and_o in_o other_o place_n 7.8_o deut._n 4.34_o and_o 7.8_o wherein_o god_n do_v set_v before_o we_o a_o mirror_n of_o his_o wonderful_a counsel_n in_o that_o find_v no_o excellency_n in_o abraham_n a_o obscure_a person_n and_o miserable_a idolater_n he_o do_v notwithstanding_o prefer_v he_o before_o all_o the_o world_n furthermore_o this_o election_n be_v common_a to_o all_o people_n as_o be_v also_o circumcision_n whereby_o god_n do_v adopt_v to_o himself_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n but_o there_o be_v also_o a_o more_o hide_a election_n whereby_o sever_a to_o himself_o a_o few_o of_o many_o child_n of_o abraham_n he_o do_v declare_v that_o not_o all_o who_o come_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v reckon_v in_o the_o spiritual_a stock_n he_o do_v drive_v out_o a_o people_n paul_n teach_v that_o all_o those_o benefit_n which_o god_n bestow_v afterward_o upon_o the_o jew_n do_v proceed_v and_o flow_v from_o that_o free_a favour_n which_o he_o do_v bear_v towards_o their_o father_n for_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o wonderful_a power_n of_o god_n &_o bring_v by_o his_o hand_n into_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n after_o that_o he_o have_v drive_v out_o so_o many_o nation_n for_o their_o sake_n for_o it_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n for_o the_o land_n to_o be_v deprive_v of_o her_o inhabitor_n that_o she_o may_v receive_v stranger_n this_o be_v the_o fountain_n and_o root_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n whereunto_o paul_n call_v we_o that_o god_n choose_v the_o father_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n &_o cause_n which_o move_v god_n to_o so_o great_a patience_n that_o he_o will_v not_o cast_v off_o that_o rebellious_a people_n who_o shall_v otherwise_o have_v destroy_v themselves_o a_o thousand_o time_n with_o their_o own_o wickedness_n therefore_o where_o the_o scripture_n make_v mention_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v pardon_v it_o say_v that_o god_n remember_v his_o covenant_n he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v exalt_v though_o they_o be_v stranger_n that_o they_o may_v remember_v how_o worthy_a &_o gorgeous_a their_o deliverance_n be_v 18_o he_o suffer_v their_o manner_n the_o compound_a verb_n have_v great_a force_n and_o grace_n in_o the_o greek_a whereby_o the_o mercifulnesse_n of_o god_n be_v express_v in_o suffer_v the_o people_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v stubborn_a and_o disobedient_a and_o paul_n give_v we_o to_o understand_v again_o that_o the_o election_n of_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o his_o goodness_n do_v strive_v with_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o people_n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v note_v that_o god_n do_v so_o take_v pity_n upon_o his_o elect_a people_n while_o that_o he_o will_v continue_v firm_a in_o his_o purpose_n that_o he_o do_v notwithstanding_o sharp_o punish_v the_o rebellious_a and_o wicked_a he_o spare_v the_o people_n in_o deed_n so_o that_o he_o do_v not_o quite_o destroy_v they_o as_o he_o may_v by_o good_a right_n but_o he_o find_v also_o mean_n 10.22_o isai_n 10.22_o that_o their_o wickedness_n may_v not_o remain_v unpunished_a and_o so_o that_o of_o isaias_n be_v fulfil_v if_o the_o multitude_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n the_o remnant_n shall_v be_v save_v 20_o he_o give_v they_o judge_n under_o this_o name_n the_o scripture_n comprehend_v ruler_n &_o governor_n and_o here_o be_v another_o testimony_n of_o the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o the_o jew_n in_o that_o he_o pardon_v so_o many_o back_o sliding_n in_o they_o for_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o paul_n handle_v those_o thing_n more_o at_o large_a which_o luke_n gather_v brief_o and_o we_o know_v what_o be_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o people_n during_o all_o that_o time_n see_v that_o through_o untamed_a wantonness_n they_o do_v ever_o now_o &_o then_o shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n they_o be_v often_o punish_v with_o most_o grievous_a plague_n yet_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v once_o humble_v god_n deliver_v they_o from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o their_o enemy_n so_o that_o he_o save_v the_o body_n thereof_o alive_a amid_o many_o death_n four_o whole_a age_n and_o one_o half_a and_o hereby_o it_o appear_v how_o unworthy_a they_o be_v of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n which_o they_o do_v despice_fw-la and_o reject_v so_o often_o unless_o the_o constancy_n of_o the_o election_n have_v get_v the_o victory_n for_o how_o be_v it_o that_o god_n be_v never_o weary_v but_o that_o he_o keep_v promise_n with_o those_o who_o be_v truce_n breaker_n a_o hundred_o time_n save_v only_o because_o turn_v his_o eye_n towards_o his_o christ_n he_o have_v not_o suffer_v his_o covenaunt_n ground_v in_o he_o to_o decay_v or_o perish_v 21_o afterward_o they_o desire_v and_o this_o change_n be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o will_v quit_v and_o manifest_o overthrow_v the_o government_n which_o he_o have_v appoint_v 8.5.7_o 1._o sa._n 8.5.7_o whereof_o god_n himself_o complain_v in_o samuel_n but_o the_o stability_n of_o the_o election_n save_v they_o from_o be_v punish_v as_o such_o madness_n do_v deserve_v yea_o the_o wicked_a and_o unlawefull_a desire_n of_o the_o people_n be_v to_o god_n a_o new_a &_o uncredible_a occasion_n to_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n whence_o christ_n shall_v afterward_o come_v for_o how_o be_v it_o that_o the_o sceptre_n come_v to_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n save_v only_o because_o the_o people_n be_v desirous_a to_o have_v a_o king_n and_o assure_o the_o people_n deal_v wicked_o but_o god_n who_o know_v how_o to_o use_v evil_a thing_n well_o 15.28_o 1._o sa._n 15.28_o turn_v that_o offence_n into_o safety_n whereas_o saul_n be_v throw_v down_o from_o the_o kingdom_n it_o serve_v to_o reproove_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o people_n but_o immediate_o when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v establish_v david_n family_n 49.10_o gen._n 49.10_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o jacob_n be_v verify_v 22_o i_o have_v find_v david_n my_o servant_n this_o title_n be_v not_o so_o much_o cite_v in_o praise_n of_o the_o person_n as_o that_o paul_n may_v make_v the_o jew_n more_o attentive_a to_o receive_v christ_n for_o the_o
own_o destruction_n he_o do_v also_o affirm_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v and_o in_o say_v that_o he_o be_v clean_o he_o testify_v that_o he_o have_v do_v his_o duty_n it_o be_v well_o know_v what_o the_o lord_n give_v all_o his_o minister_n in_o charge_n in_o ezechiel_n if_o thou_o show_v not_o unto_o the_o wicked_a that_o he_o may_v convert_v 3.18_o eze._n 3.18_o i_o will_v require_v his_o blood_n at_o thy_o hand_n therefore_o paul_n because_o he_o do_v what_o he_o can_v to_o bring_v the_o jew_n to_o repentance_n do_v acquit_v himself_o of_o all_o giltines_n and_o by_o these_o word_n teacher_n be_v warn_v that_o unless_o they_o will_v be_v guilty_a of_o blood_n before_o the_o lord_n they_o must_v do_v what_o in_o they_o lie_v to_o bring_v those_o which_o go_v astray_o into_o the_o way_n and_o that_o they_o suffer_v nothing_o to_o perish_v through_o ignorance_n i_o will_v go_v unto_o the_o gentile_n though_o the_o jew_n have_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v most_o ready_a to_o be_v teach_v yet_o ought_v paul_n to_o have_v employ_v himself_o to_o teach_v the_o gentile_n who_o apostle_n and_o minister_n he_o be_v make_v but_o here_o he_o express_v the_o passage_n whereby_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o the_o stubborn_a jew_n for_o all_o for_o he_o observe_v this_o course_n in_o teach_v that_o beginning_n with_o the_o jew_n he_o may_v couple_v the_o gentile_n with_o they_o in_o the_o society_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o may_v make_v of_o both_o together_o one_o body_n of_o the_o church_n when_o there_o remain_v no_o hope_n to_o do_v any_o good_a among_o the_o jew_n than_o the_o gentile_n only_o remain_v therefore_o the_o sense_n be_v this_o that_o they_o must_v be_v deprive_v of_o their_o own_o inheritance_n that_o it_o may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o gentile_n and_o so_o be_v wound_v partly_o that_o be_v strike_v with_o fear_n yea_o be_v cast_v down_o they_o may_v come_v to_o soundness_n of_o mind_n partly_o that_o the_o emulation_n or_o strive_v of_o the_o gentile_n may_v prick_v they_o forward_o unto_o repentance_n but_o because_o they_o be_v uncurable_a reproach_n and_o shame_n serve_v for_o this_o purpose_n only_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o despair_n 7_o depart_v thence_o paul_n do_v not_o change_v his_o lodging_n which_o he_o have_v with_o priscilla_n and_o aquila_n because_o he_o be_v weary_a of_o their_o company_n but_o that_o he_o may_v more_o familiar_o insinuate_v himself_o and_o come_v in_o favour_n with_o the_o gentile_n for_o i_o suspect_v that_o this_o justus_n of_o who_o luke_n make_v mention_v be_v rather_o a_o gentile_a than_o a_o jew._n neither_o do_v the_o nighness_n of_o the_o synagogue_n any_o whit_n hinder_v for_o the_o jew_n be_v scatter_v abroad_o so_o that_o they_o have_v no_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o city_n to_o dwell_v in_o yea_o it_o seem_v that_o paul_n do_v make_v choice_n of_o the_o house_n which_o do_v join_v to_o the_o synagogue_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o nettle_n the_o jew_n the_o title_n and_o commendation_n ascribe_v to_o lustus_fw-la confirm_v this_o opinion_n for_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o worshipper_n of_o god_n for_o though_o the_o jew_n have_v not_o sincere_a religion_n yet_o because_o they_o do_v all_o profess_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n it_o may_v have_v seem_v that_o godliness_n take_v place_n common_o in_o all_o the_o whole_a nation_n but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o rare_a matter_n among_o the_o gentile_n to_o worship_n god_n if_o any_o draw_v near_o unto_o true_a godliness_n he_o have_v this_o singular_a testimony_n give_v he_o which_o be_v set_v against_o idolatry_n also_o i_o think_v that_o the_o corinthian_n of_o who_o luke_n speak_v short_o after_o be_v gentile_n nevertheless_o lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o paul_n his_o labour_n be_v altogether_o fruitless_a which_o he_o bestow_v among_o the_o jew_n luke_n reckon_v up_o two_o of_o they_o which_o believe_v crispus_n and_o sosthenes_n of_o who_o paul_n himself_o speak_v in_o the_o first_o chapt._n of_o the_o first_o epist_n to_o the_o corinth_n 1.14_o 1._o cor._n 1.14_o for_o in_o his_o salutation_n he_o make_v sosthenes_n his_o fellow_n in_o office_n after_o that_o he_o say_v that_o he_o baptize_v crispus_n i_o take_v it_o that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n not_o as_o if_o he_o alone_o do_v bear_v rule_n and_o have_v the_o government_n because_o sosthenes_n have_v the_o same_o title_n give_v he_o short_o after_o but_o because_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a man_n 9_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v though_o the_o fruit_n of_o paul_n doctrine_n in_o that_o he_o gain_v some_o daily_a to_o christ_n may_v have_v encourage_v he_o to_o go_v forward_o yet_o be_v the_o heavenly_a oracle_n add_v for_o his_o far_a confirmation_n whence_o we_o gather_v that_o there_o be_v great_a cumbate_n set_v before_o he_o and_o that_o he_o be_v sore_o toss_v diverse_a way_n for_o the_o lord_n do_v never_o without_o cause_n power_n out_o his_o oracle_n neither_o be_v it_o a_o ordinary_a thing_n with_o paul_n to_o have_v vision_n but_o the_o lord_n use_v this_o kind_n of_o remedy_n when_o necessity_n do_v so_o require_v and_o the_o thing_n itself_o do_v show_v that_o there_o lay_v upon_o the_o holy_a man_n a_o great_a weight_n of_o business_n under_o which_o he_o may_v not_o only_o sweat_v but_o almost_o faint_a unless_o he_o have_v be_v set_v on_o foot_n again_o &_o refresh_v with_o some_o new_a help_n and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o he_o say_v that_o his_o come_n be_v base_a &_o contemptible_a &_o that_o he_o be_v conversaunt_a there_o in_o fear_n &_o tremble_a for_o i_o own_o part_n i_o think_v thus_o 12.6_o 1._o cor._n 2.3_o numb_a 12.6_o that_o the_o wonderful_a power_n of_o the_o spirit_n wherewith_o paul_n be_v endue_v before_o be_v holpen_v with_o the_o oracle_n furthermore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o scripture_n distinguish_v vision_n from_o dream_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o number_n luke_n mean_v by_o this_o word_n vision_n that_o when_o paul_n be_v in_o a_o trance_n he_o see_v a_o certain_a shape_n or_o form_n whereby_o he_o know_v that_o god_n be_v present_a with_o he_o assure_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o god_n appear_v by_o some_o sign_n fear_v not_o this_o exhortation_n show_v that_o paul_n have_v cause_n of_o fear_n minister_v unto_o he_o for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o superfluous_a thing_n to_o correct_v fear_n or_o to_o will_v he_o not_o to_o fear_v w_z …_o all_o be_v well_o &_o quiet_a and_o especial_o in_o a_o man_n so_o willing_a and_o ready_a furthermore_o when_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v have_v his_o servant_n to_o do_v his_o duty_n faithful_o and_o stout_o begin_v with_o restrain_v fear_n by_o this_o we_o gather_v that_o nothing_o be_v more_o contrary_a to_o the_o pure_a and_o free_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n than_o the_o strait_n of_o a_o faint_a heart_n and_o sure_o experience_n do_v show_v that_o none_o be_v faithful_a &_o courageous_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n who_o this_o fault_n do_v hinder_v and_o that_o those_o only_o be_v right_o prepare_v and_o address_v to_o teach_v to_o who_o it_o be_v grant_v with_o boldness_n and_o courage_n of_o heart_n to_o overcome_v all_o manner_n danger_n in_o which_o respect_n he_o write_v to_o timothy_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o of_o power_n and_o love_n and_o sobriety_n therefore_o we_o must_v note_v the_o connection_n of_o word_n fear_v not_o but_o speak_v which_o be_v all_o one_o 1.7_o 2._o tim._n 1.7_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v let_v not_o fear_n let_v thou_o to_o speak_v and_o because_o fear_n do_v not_o only_o make_v we_o altogether_o without_o tongue_n but_o do_v so_o bind_v we_o that_o we_o can_v pure_o and_o free_o speak_v that_o which_o be_v needful_a christ_n touch_v both_o brief_o speak_v say_v he_o and_o hold_v not_o thy_o peace_n that_o be_v speak_v not_o with_o half_a thy_o mouth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o common_a proverb_n but_o in_o these_o word_n there_o be_v prescribe_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n a_o common_a rule_n that_o they_o expound_v and_o lay_v open_a plain_o and_o without_o colour_n or_o dissimulation_n whatsoever_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v make_v know_v to_o his_o church_n yea_o let_v they_o keep_v back_o nothing_o which_o may_v make_v for_o the_o edify_a or_o increase_n of_o god_n church_n 10_o because_o i_o be_o this_o be_v the_o former_a reason_n why_o paul_n have_v subdue_v fear_n must_v manful_o and_o stout_o do_v his_o duty_n because_o he_o have_v god_n on_o his_o side_n 23.4_o psal_n 23.4_o whereto_o answer_v the_o rejoice_a of_o
bridle_v his_o lust_n so_o that_o he_o dare_v go_v no_o further_o 11_o i_o appeal_v unto_o caesar_n after_o that_o he_o have_v profess_v that_o he_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o die_v if_o he_o be_v find_v guilty_a he_o free_o use_v such_o help_n as_o he_o can_v find_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v at_o any_o time_n bring_v into_o like_a strait_n we_o must_v not_o be_v superstitious_a but_o we_o may_v crave_v help_n of_o the_o law_n and_o politic_a order_n because_o it_o be_v write_v that_o magistrate_n be_v make_v and_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o godly_a neither_o be_v paul_n afraid_a to_o go_v to_o law_n under_o a_o unbelieve_a judge_n 2.14_o rom._n 13.3_o &_o 1_o pet._n 2.14_o for_o he_o which_o appeal_v commence_v a_o new_a action_n therefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o god_n who_o have_v appoint_v judgement_n seat_n do_v also_o grant_v liberty_n to_o he_o to_o use_v the_o same_o lawful_o therefore_o those_o mistake_n paul_n 6.1_o 1._o cor._n 6.1_o who_o think_v that_o he_o do_v flat_o condemn_v the_o corinthian_n because_o they_o require_v help_v of_o the_o magistrate_n for_o defence_n of_o their_o right_n see_v he_o reprove_v in_o that_o place_n a_o manifest_a fault_n to_o wit_n because_o they_o can_v suffer_v no_o wrong_n and_o because_o they_o be_v too_o much_o set_v upon_o sue_v one_o another_o whereby_o they_o cause_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v evil_o speak_v of_o 12_o festus_n have_v talk_v with_o the_o council_n the_o governor_n do_v use_v to_o have_v certain_a of_o the_o chief_a citizen_n which_o do_v attend_v upon_o they_o &_o sit_v with_o they_o in_o judgement_n that_o they_o may_v decree_v nothing_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o council_n furthermore_o it_o do_v seem_v that_o festus_n pronounce_v this_o with_o indignation_n when_o he_o say_v interrogative_o have_v thou_o appeal_v to_o caesar_n to_o wit_n because_o it_o greeve_v he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o do_v the_o jew_n such_o a_o pleasure_n as_o he_o desire_v though_o i_o leave_v that_o indifferent_a because_o it_o be_v neither_o of_o any_o great_a importance_n and_o it_o lean_v only_o to_o a_o conjecture_n 13_o and_o after_o certain_a day_n king_n agrippa_n and_o bernice_n come_v to_o caesarea_n to_o salute_v festus_n 14_o and_o when_o they_o have_v stay_v there_o many_o day_n festus_n rehearse_v paul_n cause_n to_o the_o king_n say_v there_o be_v a_o certain_a man_n leave_v in_o bond_n of_o felix_n 15_o about_o who_o when_o i_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o jew_n inform_v i_o require_v judgement_n against_o he_o 16_o to_o who_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o favour_n to_o deliver_v any_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v perish_v before_o he_o that_o be_v accuse_v have_v his_o accuser_n face_n to_o face_n and_o have_v licence_n to_o answer_v for_o himself_o concern_v the_o crime_n lay_v against_o he_o 17_o therefore_o when_o they_o be_v come_v hither_o without_o delay_n on_o the_o morrow_n i_o sit_v on_o the_o judgement_n seat_n and_o command_v the_o man_n to_o be_v bring_v 18_o against_o who_o when_o the_o accuser_n stand_v up_o they_o bring_v none_o accusation_n concern_v such_o thing_n as_o i_o suppose_v 19_o but_o they_o have_v certain_a question_n concern_v their_o religion_n their_o or_o religion_n superstition_n against_o he_o and_o concern_v one_o jesus_n which_o be_v dead_a who_o paul_n affirm_v to_o be_v a_o live_a 20_o and_o because_o i_o doubt_v of_o this_o question_n i_o ask_v he_o if_o he_o will_v go_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o there_o be_v judge_v of_o these_o thing_n 21_o and_o when_o paul_n have_v appeal_v that_o he_o may_v be_v keep_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o augustus_n i_o command_v he_o to_o be_v keep_v until_o i_o may_v send_v he_o unto_o caesar_n 13_o and_o after_o certain_a day_n this_o long_a narration_n tend_v to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o though_o the_o handle_n of_o the_o cause_n be_v break_v of_o yet_o be_v paul_n band_n famous_a and_o that_o he_o be_v nevertheless_o bring_v out_o of_o prison_n that_o he_o may_v make_v profession_n of_o his_o faith_n &_o dispute_v touch_v the_o gospel_n before_o a_o famous_a auditory_a and_o again_o that_o though_o he_o be_v contemn_v yet_o be_v he_o not_o count_v a_o wicked_a person_n lest_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v abase_v by_o his_o slander_n and_o reproach_n yea_o that_o he_o have_v more_o liberty_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v in_o prison_n then_o if_o he_o have_v live_v free_a in_o a_o private_a house_n king_n agrippa_z and_o bernice_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o agrippa_n be_v son_n to_o agrippa_n the_o elder_a who_o filthy_a and_o detestable_a death_n be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n when_o this_o man_n be_v make_v king_n of_o chalcis_n in_o his_o uncle_n steed_n after_o the_o decease_n of_o his_o father_n he_o do_v afterward_o obtain_v a_o more_o large_a dominion_n bernice_n of_o who_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o this_o place_n be_v his_o own_o natural_a sister_n which_o be_v first_o marry_v to_o herod_n king_n of_o chalcis_n her_o uncle_n and_o do_v keep_v herself_o widow_n a_o certain_a season_n after_o his_o death_n yet_o she_o do_v not_o live_v honest_o &_o chaste_o during_o that_o time_n for_o she_o too_o great_a familiarity_n with_o her_o brother_n agrippa_n be_v suspect_v and_o to_o the_o end_n she_o may_v not_o be_v count_v a_o incestuous_a person_n she_o marry_v with_o polemon_n king_n of_o cilicia_n notwithstanding_o because_o she_o give_v herself_o more_o to_o lust_n than_o chastity_n she_o forsake_v he_o the_o historiographer_n do_v no_o where_n say_v that_o she_o be_v her_o brother_n wife_n and_o josephus_n in_o his_o life_n assign_v she_o a_o dominion_n of_o her_o own_o in_o a_o part_n of_o galilee_n therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o be_v harden_v in_o their_o wickedness_n they_o dwell_v together_o not_o regard_v what_o man_n do_v say_v yet_o do_v they_o abstain_v from_o marriage_n lest_o their_o incestuous_a marriage_n shall_v bewray_v and_o also_o augment_v their_o crime_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_n that_o he_o come_v for_o honour_n sake_n to_o salute_v the_o governor_n who_o do_v reign_v only_o at_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o another_o and_o do_v depend_v upon_o the_o neck_n and_o favour_n of_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n which_o he_o be_v to_o retain_v and_o nourish_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o governor_n 14_o when_o many_o day_n therefore_o when_o after_o some_o time_n be_v spend_v they_o want_v matter_n of_o talk_n as_o idle_a man_n use_v to_o invent_v somewhat_o whereon_o they_o may_v talk_v mention_n be_v make_v of_o paul_n for_o luke_n mean_v to_o note_v that_o when_o he_o say_v that_o after_o many_o day_n be_v idle_o spend_v festus_n tell_v the_o king_n of_o a_o certain_a man_n which_o lay_v bind_v and_o although_o he_o do_v here_o both_o touch_v the_o malice_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o also_o make_v a_o show_n of_o wonderful_a equity_n on_o his_o part_n yet_o in_o that_o he_o short_o after_o clear_v the_o party_n which_o be_v accuse_v he_o condemn_v himself_o unaware_o when_o as_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o appeal_v that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v carry_v to_o jerusalem_n but_o when_o festus_n commend_v the_o roman_n he_o show_v what_o do_v beseem_v judge_n and_o if_o nature_n do_v tell_v profane_a man_n thus_o much_o that_o they_o must_v admit_v no_o such_o favour_n as_o may_v oppress_v the_o guiltless_a how_o much_o more_o must_v judge_n who_o have_v the_o light_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v careful_a to_o avoid_v all_o corruption_n 18_o they_o lay_v no_o such_o crime_n to_o his_o charge_n i_o marvel_v why_o festus_n do_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o crime_n object_v to_o paul_n as_o he_o suppose_v see_v he_o be_v accuse_v of_o sedition_n but_o we_o may_v again_o conject_v by_o this_o yea_o plain_o know_v that_o their_o accusation_n be_v so_o vain_a that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v bring_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n as_o if_o a_o man_n do_v utter_v a_o slanderous_a speech_n unaduised_o for_o which_o cause_n he_o say_v that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o cause_n do_v consist_v in_o question_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o he_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o those_o offence_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v punish_v by_o man_n law_n and_o the_o controversy_n which_o be_v between_o paul_n and_o the_o jew_n not_o that_o religion_n ought_v to_o be_v corrupt_v free_o or_o that_o their_o malapartnesse_n be_v tolerable_a who_o overthrow_n the_o worship_n of_o god_n with_o their_o own_o invention_n but_o because_o the_o
faith_n and_o though_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v speak_v general_o of_o the_o resurrection_n yet_o we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o text_n that_o he_o begin_v with_o a_o far_a point_n and_o that_o he_o do_v comprehend_v those_o circumstance_n which_o do_v proper_o appertain_v unto_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o complain_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v accuse_v he_o because_o he_o maintain_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o father_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o beginning_n and_o also_o the_o issue_n of_o the_o matter_n that_o the_o covenant_n which_o god_n have_v make_v with_o the_o father_n be_v refer_v unto_o eternal_a salvation_n wherefore_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o disputation_n that_o the_o jewish_a religion_n be_v nothing_o worth_a unless_o they_o take_v heed_n to_o the_o heaven_n and_o do_v also_o lift_v up_o their_o eye_n unto_o christ_n the_o author_n of_o the_o new_a life_n they_o do_v boast_v that_o they_o be_v choose_v from_o among_o all_o people_n of_o the_o world_n but_o their_o adoption_n do_v profit_v they_o nothing_o unless_o they_o do_v trust_v to_o the_o promise_a mediator_n and_o look_v unto_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n therefore_o we_o must_v conceive_v much_o more_o than_o luke_n do_v plain_o express_v and_o sure_o his_o narration_n tend_v to_o no_o other_o end_n save_v only_o that_o we_o may_v know_v of_o what_o thing_n paul_n entreat_v but_o what_o this_o be_v and_o in_o what_o word_n he_o utter_v it_o we_o can_v tell_v nevertheless_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o gather_v out_o of_o a_o brief_a sum_n those_o thing_n which_o appertain_v unto_o this_o disputation_n which_o be_v free_o handle_v before_o agrippa_n when_o paul_n have_v free_a liberty_n grant_v to_o he_o to_o plead_v his_o own_o cause_n 7_o whereunto_o our_o twelve_o tribe_n paul_n complain_v before_o agrippa_n that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o the_o priest_n set_v themselves_o against_o the_o common_a hope_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v to_o what_o end_n do_v those_o of_o our_o nation_n who_o worship_n god_n careful_o and_o spend_v both_o day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o godliness_n sigh_v in_o their_o prayer_n save_v only_o that_o they_o may_v at_o length_n come_v unto_o eternal_a life_n but_o the_o same_o be_v the_o mark_n whereat_o i_o aim_v in_o all_o my_o doctrine_n because_o when_o the_o grace_n of_o redemption_n be_v set_v before_o man_n the_o gate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v set_v open_a therewithal_o and_o when_o i_o preach_v the_o author_n of_o salvation_n raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a i_o offer_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o immortality_n in_o his_o person_n so_o that_o the_o former_a confirmation_n of_o his_o doctrine_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n when_o he_o cite_v the_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o father_n now_o in_o the_o second_o place_n he_o add_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o best_a way_n to_o maintain_v and_o avouch_v the_o opinion_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n go_v foremost_a and_o that_o then_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n come_v next_o though_o we_o ought_v therewithal_o wise_o to_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o paul_n do_v teach_v we_o in_o this_o place_n by_o his_o own_o example_n for_o though_o he_o know_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v pretend_v the_o visure_n of_o the_o church_n against_o he_o yet_o he_o do_v bold_o affirm_v that_o the_o sincere_a worshipper_n of_o god_n be_v on_o his_o side_n and_o he_o be_v content_a with_o their_o defence_n for_o when_o he_o mean_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n he_o do_v not_o speak_v general_o of_o all_o those_o which_o come_v of_o jacob_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n but_o he_o mean_v those_o only_a which_o do_v retain_v the_o true_a study_n of_o godliness_n for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o unmeet_a thing_n to_o commend_v the_o nation_n general_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n which_o be_v only_o in_o a_o few_o the_o papist_n deal_v very_o disordered_o in_o both_o who_o by_o the_o voice_n and_o consent_n of_o man_n oppress_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o give_v also_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o a_o filthy_a rabblement_n of_o unlearned_a and_o impure_a man_n without_o any_o colour_n or_o shame_n but_o if_o we_o will_v prove_v that_o we_o think_v as_o the_o true_a church_n think_v we_o must_v begin_v with_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n then_o those_o must_v be_v gather_v unto_o they_o who_o godliness_n be_v know_v and_o manifest_a if_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n be_v not_o on_o our_o side_n we_o need_v not_o great_o to_o care_n and_o the_o true_a affection_n of_o true_a religion_n be_v prove_v by_o continuance_n &_o vehemency_n which_o be_v of_o singular_a force_n at_o that_o time_n principal_o when_o the_o jew_n be_v in_o great_a misery_n 8_o why_o shall_v i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o prove_v that_o both_o by_o reason_n and_o also_o by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o he_o teach_v concern_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o heavenly_a life_n but_o for_o good_a cause_n do_v he_o callbacke_v those_o unto_o who_o he_o speak_v unto_o the_o power_n of_o god_n lest_o they_o judge_v thereof_o according_a to_o their_o own_o weak_a capacity_n for_o nothing_o can_v more_o hardly_o sink_v into_o man_n brain_n than_o that_o man_n body_n shall_v be_v restore_v when_o as_o they_o be_v once_o consume_v therefore_o see_v it_o be_v a_o mystery_n far_o surpass_v man_n wit_n let_v the_o faithful_a remember_v how_o far_o the_o infinite_a power_n of_o god_n do_v reach_v and_o not_o what_o they_o themselves_o comprehend_v 3.21_o phil._n 3.21_o as_o the_o same_o paul_n teach_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n to_o the_o philippian_n for_o when_o he_o have_v say_v that_o our_o vile_a body_n shall_v be_v make_v like_o to_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n he_o add_v immediate_o according_a to_o the_o mighty_a work_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o but_o man_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n injurious_a to_o god_n who_o will_v not_o have_v his_o arm_n reach_v any_o far_a than_o their_o understanding_n and_o reason_n can_v reach_v so_o that_o so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v they_o will_v desire_v to_o restrain_v the_o greatness_n of_o his_o work_n which_o surpass_v heaven_n and_o earth_n unto_o their_o strait_n but_o on_o the_o otherside_n paul_n command_v we_o to_o consider_v what_o god_n be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o be_v lift_v uppe_o above_o the_o world_n we_o may_v learn_v to_o conceive_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n not_o according_a to_o the_o weak_a capacity_n of_o our_o mind_n but_o according_a to_o his_o omnipotency_n 9_o and_o i_o very_o think_v that_o i_o ought_v to_o do_v many_o thing_n against_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n 10_o which_o thing_n i_o also_o do_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o i_o shut_v uppe_o many_o of_o the_o saint_n in_o prison_n have_v receive_v power_n from_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o when_o they_o be_v put_v to_o death_n i_o give_v sentence_n 11_o and_o punish_v they_o oftentimes_o throughout_o all_o synagogue_n i_o enforce_v they_o to_o blaspheme_v and_o be_v yet_o more_o mad_a upon_o they_o i_o do_v persecute_v they_o even_o into_o strange_a city_n 12_o and_o as_o i_o go_v to_o damascus_n for_o this_o intent_n with_o authority_n and_o commission_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n 13_o at_o midday_n o_o king_n i_o see_v in_o the_o way_n a_o light_n from_o heaven_n pass_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o sun_n shine_v round_o about_o i_o and_o those_o which_o iourney_v with_o i_o 14_o and_o when_o we_o be_v all_o fall_v to_o the_o earth_n i_o hear_v a_o voice_n speak_v unto_o i_o and_o say_v in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o it_o be_v hard_a for_o thou_o to_o kick_v against_o prick_v 15_o and_o i_o say_v who_o be_v thou_o lord_n but_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o i_o be_o jesus_n who_o thou_o persecute_v 16_o but_o rise_v and_o stand_v up_o upon_o thy_o foot_n for_o to_o this_o end_n do_v i_o appear_v unto_o thou_o that_o i_o may_v make_v thou_o a_o minister_n and_o witness_n both_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o thou_o have_v see_v and_o also_o of_o those_o thing_n wherein_o i_o will_v appear_v unto_o thou_o 17_o deliver_v thou_o from_o the_o people_n and_o from_o the_o gentile_n unto_o who_o now_o i_o send_v thou_o 18_o that_o thou_o may_v open_v their_o eye_n that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v from_o darkness_n to_o light_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v forgiveness_n
the_o commentary_n of_o m._n john_n calvin_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n faithful_o translate_v out_o of_o latin_a into_o english_a for_o the_o great_a profit_n of_o our_o countryman_n by_o christopher_n fetherstone_n student_n in_o divinity_n londini_fw-la impensis_fw-la g._n bishop_n 1585._o to_o the_o right_n honourable_a the_o lord_n henry_n earl_n of_o huntingdon_n lord_n hastings_n etc._n etc._n knight_n of_o the_o most_o honourable_a order_n of_o the_o garter_n and_o lord_n precedent_n of_o the_o queen_n majesty_n counsel_n establish_v in_o the_o north_n part_n christopher_n fetherstone_n wish_v increase_v of_o spiritual_a gift_n long_a life_n and_o happy_a day_n if_o that_o right_a honourable_a i_o shall_v prefix_v any_o long_a and_o tedious_a preface_n before_o this_o work_n in_o commendation_n of_o your_o honour_n i_o shall_v of_o some_o be_v suspect_v of_o flattery_n if_o in_o praise_n of_o these_o learned_a commentary_n it_o shall_v seem_v a_o thing_n superfluous_a see_v they_o sufficient_o commend_v themselves_o if_o in_o excuse_n of_o those_o fault_n which_o be_v by_o i_o in_o translate_n hereof_o commit_v some_o censure_a cato_n will_v condemn_v i_o because_o i_o will_v take_v in_o hand_n a_o work_n so_o weighty_a be_v not_o able_a to_o be_v without_o fault_n and_o by_o crave_v pardon_n for_o fault_n lay_v open_a my_o folly_n omit_v therefore_o these_o thing_n which_o may_v carry_v with_o they_o such_o inconvenience_n i_o hasten_v unto_o that_o whereof_o i_o be_o chief_o to_o speak_v namely_o to_o lay_v open_a the_o cause_n move_v i_o to_o dedicate_v this_o my_o simple_a translation_n unto_o your_o honor._n your_o desert_n of_o god_n church_n your_o singular_a zeal_n your_o unfeigned_a faith_n your_o sincere_a profession_n your_o especial_a care_n to_o advance_v god_n glory_n and_o to_o root_v out_o papistry_n your_o faithfulness_n toward_o your_o prince_n have_v be_v such_o that_o this_o realm_n general_o but_o my_o countryman_n in_o the_o north_n part_n my_o native_a soil_n special_o have_v &_o shall_v have_v great_a cause_n to_o praise_n god_n for_o you_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o visitation_n even_o when_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n of_o his_o great_a mercy_n to_o behold_v they_o with_o favourable_a countenance_n and_o to_o take_v from_o they_o in_o great_a measure_n that_o blindness_n and_o superstition_n wherein_o they_o have_v be_v long_a time_n nousle_v and_o be_v fast_o breed_v by_o the_o bone_n be_v not_o yet_o through_o want_n of_o mean_n get_v out_o of_o the_o flesh_n see_v all_o these_o virtue_n be_v in_o you_o to_o be_v find_v see_v both_o this_o church_n and_o country_n have_v find_v you_o so_o beneficial_a who_o ought_v not_o these_o thing_n to_o provoke_v to_o show_v all_o thankfulness_n towards_o your_o honour_n again_o when_o this_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v first_o pen_v in_o gr_n …_o by_o luke_n it_o be_v dedicate_v to_o noble_a theophilus_n when_o m._n caluin_n do_v the_o second_o time_n publish_v his_o commentary_n thereupon_o in_o latin_a he_o present_v they_o unto_o one_o who_o be_v in_o mind_n a_o noble_a theophilus_n lest_o therefore_o this_o work_n now_o publish_v in_o english_a shall_v by_o dedication_n be_v any_o whit_n debase_v i_o have_v make_v choice_n of_o your_o honour_n be_v no_o less_o a_o noble_a theophilus_n than_o those_o before_o mention_v another_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o cause_n as_o a_o encouragement_n be_v that_o courtesy_n which_o your_o honour_n show_v to_o those_o which_o present_v unto_o you_o any_o exercise_n of_o learning_n how_o simple_a soever_o they_o be_v whereof_o i_o have_v have_v full_a good_a experience_n even_o in_o my_o tender_a year_n namely_o at_o such_o time_n as_o i_o be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o city_n of_o carlisle_n under_o that_o man_n in_o his_o call_n painful_a and_o to_o the_o commonwealth_n profitable_a m._n hayes_n who_o for_o that_o duty_n which_o to_o he_o i_o owe_v i_o name_n at_o which_o time_n though_o those_o exercise_n which_o unto_o your_o honour_n we_o then_o present_v be_v simple_a yet_o be_v they_o so_o courteous_o of_o you_o receive_v that_o the_o remembrance_n thereof_o do_v even_o now_o encourage_v i_o to_o presume_v to_o offer_v unto_o you_o some_o weighty_a matter_n the_o last_o but_o not_o the_o least_o be_v the_o consideration_n of_o that_o great_a &_o undeserued_a kindness_n which_o all_o my_o friend_n in_o general_a but_o especial_o my_o brother_n your_o honour_n servant_n have_v find_v at_o your_o hand_n which_o to_o rip_v up_o at_o large_a will_v be_v too_o tedious_a in_o their_o behalf_n therefore_o right_a honourable_a as_o also_o in_o my_o own_o as_o a_o small_a testimony_n of_o a_o thankful_a heart_n i_o present_v unto_o your_o honour_n this_o work_n simple_a if_o you_o respect_v the_o translation_n but_o most_o excellent_a if_o you_o consider_v the_o matter_n and_o thus_o humble_o crave_v pardon_n for_o my_o boldness_n and_o much_o more_o humble_o beseech_v the_o lord_n to_o bless_v you_o in_o the_o read_n hereof_o i_o conclude_v fear_v prolixity_n the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n bless_v you_o and_o grant_v that_o as_o you_o have_v be_v heretofore_o a_o good_a theophilus_n so_o you_o may_v continue_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o increase_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o profit_n of_o this_o common_a wealth_n from_o maighfield_n in_o sussex_n this_o 12._o of_o october_n 1585._o your_o honour_n most_o humble_a and_o obedient_a and_o in_o christ_n at_o commandment_n christopher_n fetherstone_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n thou_o have_v at_o length_n christian_n reader_n through_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n wherewith_o he_o have_v bless_v my_o labour_n those_o learned_a commentary_n of_o m._n caluin_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n though_o simple_o yet_o faithful_o turn_v into_o english_a &_o though_o of_o many_o i_o be_v the_o unmeet_a to_o attempt_v this_o travel_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o earnest_a request_n of_o my_o godly_a friend_n that_o unless_o i_o shall_v have_v take_v it_o in_o hand_n i_o shall_v have_v seem_v void_a of_o courtesy_n and_o also_o of_o care_n to_o profit_n god_n his_o church_n i_o will_v not_o stand_v to_o rip_v up_o those_o commodity_n which_o thou_o by_o read_v these_o commentary_n may_v reap_v but_o i_o leave_v they_o to_o thy_o own_o experience_n what_o my_o travel_n have_v be_v in_o this_o work_n those_o who_o have_v endure_v like_o toil_n can_v best_o judge_v and_o forasmuch_o as_o i_o know_v well_o that_o after_o great_a pain_n take_v some_o thing_n have_v escape_v i_o i_o beseech_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n condemn_v i_o not_o rash_o but_o rather_o amend_v they_o friendly_a if_o thou_o shall_v grow_v forward_o in_o knowledge_n by_o read_v this_o work_n than_o praise_n god_n who_o have_v by_o this_o mean_v make_v thou_o profit_n god_n give_v thou_o good_a success_n in_o read_v that_o thereby_o thou_o may_v both_o be_v better_o learn_v and_o also_o better_o live_v thou_o in_o the_o lord_n christopher_n fetherstone_n to_o the_o most_o renown_a prince_n the_o l._n nicolas_n radziwill_n duke_n in_o olika_n county_n palatine_n of_o vilna_n chief_a marshal_n and_o head_n chauncellar_n of_o the_o great_a dukedom_n lethuania_n etc._n etc._n his_o lord_n high_o to_o be_v reverence_v john_n caluin_n whereas_o i_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o name_n of_o those_o king_n unto_o who_o i_o have_v dedicate_v these_o my_o commentary_n lest_o the_o change_n incur_v the_o crime_n of_o lightness_n among_o certain_a unskilful_a man_n i_o must_v brief_o render_v some_o reason_n thereof_o for_o although_o both_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o father_n who_o be_v dead_a do_v retain_v that_o reverence_n with_o i_o which_o it_o deserve_v and_o i_o do_v also_o as_o become_v i_o reverence_v the_o son_n yet_o the_o importunatenes_n of_o certain_a do_v enforce_v i_o to_o put_v out_o their_o name_n in_o this_o second_o edition_n who_o be_v incense_v against_o i_o with_o a_o furious_a hatred_n and_o fear_n lest_o the_o majesty_n of_o king_n do_v purchase_v some_o favour_n to_o my_o writing_n do_v boast_v abroad_o that_o they_o do_v conceive_v sore_a displeasure_n that_o their_o name_n be_v mix_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o they_o themselves_o disallow_v i_o leave_v it_o indifferent_a whether_o that_o be_v true_a or_o no_o neither_o do_v i_o pass_v forasmuch_o as_o i_o do_v neither_o hunt_n after_o any_o private_a gain_n ne_o yet_o seek_v to_o win_v favour_n but_o because_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o a_o undecent_a and_o filthy_a thing_n to_o enforce_v those_o book_n upon_o man_n which_o be_v unwilling_a to_o entertain_v they_o which_o do_v find_v willing_a reader_n enough_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o declare_v now_o that_o i_o never_o do_v think_v any_o thing_n less_o but_o that_o i_o do_v hope_n for_o more_o courtesy_n
liberty_n to_o lie_v that_o we_o may_v have_v no_o certain_a thing_n leave_v we_o after_o christ_n ascension_n so_o that_o unless_o this_o work_n of_o luke_n be_v extant_a it_o may_v seem_v that_o christ_n be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n leave_v no_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n or_o resurrection_n upon_o earth_n for_o all_o shall_v have_v vanish_v away_o with_o his_o body_n we_o shall_v not_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o receive_v into_o his_o celestial_a glory_n that_o nevertheless_o he_o bear_v rule_v in_o all_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v not_o know_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v publish_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o come_v from_o they_o unto_o we_o though_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o other_o we_o shall_v not_o know_v that_o they_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lest_o they_o shall_v teach_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o be_v divine_a to_o the_o end_n our_o faith_n may_v be_v ground_v only_o upon_o the_o unfallible_a verity_n of_o god_n last_o of_o all_o we_o shall_v not_o know_v that_o that_o prophecy_n of_o esaias_n be_v fulfil_v wherein_o he_o foretell_v that_o the_o law_n shall_v come_v out_o of_o zion_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n see_v this_o book_n proceed_v no_o doubt_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n take_v from_o we_o all_o doubt_n of_o these_o thing_n we_o must_v count_v the_o same_o as_o a_o great_a treasure_n as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o not_o without_o cause_n and_o now_o again_o confirm_v the_o same_o the_o commentary_n of_o m._n jo._n caluin_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n chap._n i._n 1_o the_o former_a speech_n true_o have_v we_o have_v o_o theophilus_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o teach_v 2_o even_o until_o that_o day_n wherein_o after_o he_o have_v give_v commandment_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o apostle_n which_o he_o have_v choose_v he_o be_v take_v up_o 1_o that_o he_o may_v pass_v over_o unto_o those_o thing_n which_o follow_v the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n he_o brief_o gather_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o those_o which_o before_o he_o have_v handle_v in_o the_o former_a book_n that_o he_o may_v annexe_v this_o thereunto_o and_o he_o brief_o set_v down_o this_o description_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o be_v a_o narration_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o christ_n do_v &_o say_v so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v conversant_a upon_o earth_n furthermore_o whereas_o they_o interpret_v this_o common_o that_o there_o be_v first_o in_o christ_n purity_n of_o life_n before_o such_o time_n as_o he_o begin_v to_o preach_v it_o make_v nothing_o unto_o luke_n his_o mind_n truth_n it_o be_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o good_a and_o godly_a teacher_n ought_v so_o to_o be_v frame_v that_o he_o speak_v first_o with_o his_o life_n then_o with_o his_o tongue_n otherwise_o he_o shall_v differ_v nothing_o from_o a_o stage_n player_n 24.19_o luk._n 24.19_o but_o luke_n have_v respect_n rather_o unto_o that_o which_o he_o have_v say_v about_o the_o end_n of_o his_o gospel_n namely_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o prophet_n mighty_a in_o deed_n and_o word_n that_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o do_v excel_v no_o less_o in_o deed_n than_o in_o word_n although_o there_o be_v but_o small_a difference_n betwixt_o these_o two_o place_n for_o the_o mightiness_n of_o work_n which_o be_v commend_v there_o do_v belong_v unto_o his_o miracle_n but_o this_o to_o do_v do_v reach_n further_o in_o my_o opinion_n namely_o that_o under_o the_o same_o be_v comprehend_v all_o the_o famous_a act_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o his_o ministry_n wherein_o his_o death_n &_o resurrection_n be_v the_o chief_a for_o the_o office_n of_o the_o messiah_n do_v not_o only_o consist_v in_o doctrine_n but_o it_o be_v also_o behoveful_a that_o he_o shall_v make_v peace_n between_o god_n and_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o redeemer_n of_o the_o people_n a_o restorer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o a_o author_n of_o everlasting_a felicity_n all_o these_o thing_n i_o say_v as_o they_o be_v promise_v of_o the_o messiah_n so_o be_v they_o look_v for_o at_o his_o hand_n now_o we_o see_v that_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n consist_v of_o these_o two_o part_n namely_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n &_o of_o his_o act_n for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o do_v not_o only_o bring_v unto_o man_n that_o embassage_n which_o be_v give_v he_o in_o charge_n of_o his_o father_n but_o also_o perform_v all_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v require_v of_o the_o messiah_n he_o begin_v his_o kingdom_n he_o pacify_v god_n with_o his_o sacrifice_n he_o purge_v man_n sin_n with_o his_o own_o precious_a blood_n he_o subdue_v death_n and_o the_o devil_n he_o restore_v we_o unto_o true_a liberty_n he_o purchase_v righteousness_n &_o life_n for_o us._n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o whatsoever_o he_o either_o do_v or_o say_v may_v be_v certain_a he_o prove_v himself_o by_o miracle_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o that_o this_o word_n to_o do_v be_v extend_v unto_o his_o miracle_n also_o but_o it_o must_v not_o be_v restrain_v only_o unto_o the_o same_o here_o must_v we_o note_v that_o those_o which_o have_v only_o the_o bare_a knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n have_v not_o the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o make_v manifest_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o act_n of_o christ_n be_v adjoin_v thereunto_o for_o this_o be_v a_o holy_a knot_n which_o no_o man_n may_v dissolve_v therefore_o whensoever_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o adjoine_v thereunto_o his_o work_n as_o seal_n whereby_o the_o truth_n thereof_o be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v and_o the_o effect_n declare_v furthermore_o that_o we_o may_v reap_v commodity_n by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n and_o also_o that_o miracle_n may_v have_v their_o use_n we_o must_v always_o have_v respect_n unto_o he_o that_o speak_v for_o this_o be_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o christianity_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o he_o begin_v i_o do_v not_o great_o mislike_v the_o interpretation_n which_o some_o give_v of_o this_o place_n that_o luke_n say_v rather_o of_o all_o then_o all_o because_o it_o be_v possible_a in_o some_o measure_n to_o entreat_v of_o the_o work_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o to_o set_v down_o the_o whole_a course_n that_o the_o narration_n may_v be_v perfect_a be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n like_a as_o john_n do_v declare_v that_o the_o world_n can_v not_o contain_v the_o book_n 21.25_o john_n 21.25_o that_o be_v also_o to_o be_v note_v that_o luke_n say_v that_o he_o begin_v his_o history_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v declare_v the_o nativity_n of_o christ_n he_o pass_v over_o unto_o the_o twelve_o year_n of_o his_o age_n 2.42_o luke_n 2.42_o and_o after_o he_o have_v brief_o speak_v of_o his_o disputation_n have_v in_o the_o temple_n with_o the_o doctor_n pass_v over_o xviii_o year_n without_o speak_v any_o thing_n of_o they_o he_o enter_v the_o just_a narration_n of_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v therefore_o manifest_a that_o those_o work_n and_o say_n only_o which_o make_v any_o thing_n unto_o the_o sum_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v note_v in_o this_o place_n for_o after_o that_o christ_n come_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n clothe_v with_o our_o flesh_n he_o live_v private_o at_o home_n until_o he_o be_v xxx_o year_n of_o age_n at_o which_o time_n his_o father_n put_v upon_o he_o another_o manner_n of_o person_n god_n will_v have_v he_o to_o lead_v the_o former_a part_n of_o his_o life_n obscure_o to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n may_v be_v more_o excellent_a which_o do_v edify_v our_o faith_n the_o former_a speech_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o i_o to_o translate_v this_o on_o this_o wise_a because_o logon_fw-la poiesdhai_fw-la be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o grecian_n which_o verba_fw-la facere_fw-la or_o to_o speak_v be_v with_o the_o latin_n as_o budaeus_fw-la do_v note_n and_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o contrariety_n of_o the_o second_o part_n which_o he_o take_v in_o hand_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o evangelist_n determine_v with_o himself_o afresh_o to_o write_v have_v new_a matter_n whereupon_o to_o write_v even_o until_o that_o day_n therefore_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o he_o have_v ascend_v say_v paul_n that_o he_o may_v fulfil_v all_o thing_n 4.10_o ephes_n 4.10_o our_o faith_n gather_v other_o fruit_n thereby_o but_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o note_v in_o this_o place_n that_o our_o redemption_n be_v full_o complete_a and_o finish_v then_o when_o christ_n do_v ascend_v unto_o his_o
earthly_a affection_n &_o so_o have_v strip_v we_o out_o of_o the_o vice_n of_o our_o flesh_n he_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o world_n and_o like_v as_o eternal_a death_n be_v prepare_v for_o all_o those_o which_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n so_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v renew_v in_o we_o that_o we_o may_v go_v forward_o in_o the_o spiritual_a life_n we_o draw_v near_o unto_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o society_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n therefore_o god_n will_v reign_v in_o and_o among_o we_o now_o that_o he_o may_v at_o length_n make_v we_o partaker_n of_o his_o kingdom_n hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o christ_n do_v principal_o entreat_v of_o the_o corruption_n of_o mankind_n of_o the_o tyranny_n of_o sin_n who_o bondslave_n we_o be_v of_o the_o curse_n &_o guiltiness_n of_o eternal_a death_n whereunto_o we_o all_o be_v subject_a &_o also_o of_o the_o mean_n to_o obtain_v salvation_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n of_o the_o deny_v of_o the_o flesh_n of_o spiritual_a righteousness_n of_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o of_o such_o like_a thing_n and_o if_o we_o will_v be_v right_o instruct_v in_o christianity_n we_o must_v apply_v our_o study_n to_o these_o thing_n 4_o gather_v they_o together_o he_o command_v etc._n etc._n they_o have_v before_o do_v the_o duty_n of_o apostle_n but_o that_o last_v but_o a_o while_n and_o secondlie_o so_o far_o forth_o that_o they_o may_v with_o their_o preach_n awake_v the_o jew_n to_o hear_v their_o master_n and_o so_o that_o commandment_n to_o teach_v which_o christ_n have_v give_v they_o while_o he_o live_v with_o they_o upon_o earth_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a entrance_n into_o their_o apostleship_n which_o be_v to_o come_v for_o which_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o ripe_a therefore_o their_o ordinary_a function_n be_v not_o lay_v upon_o they_o until_o such_o time_n as_o christ_n be_v rise_v again_o but_o they_o stir_v up_o their_o nation_n as_o i_o have_v say_v like_o crier_n that_o they_o may_v give_v care_n to_o christ_n and_o then_o at_o length_n after_o the_o resurrection_n they_o be_v make_v apostle_n to_o publish_v abroad_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o and_o whereas_o after_o they_o be_v make_v apostle_n christ_n command_v they_o as_o yet_o to_o abstain_v from_o their_o office_n that_o be_v do_v not_o with_o out_o just_a cause_n yea_o many_o cause_n may_v be_v allege_v why_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o that_o filthy_a forsake_v of_o their_o master_n be_v yet_o fresh_a many_o note_n and_o token_n of_o unbelief_n be_v yet_o fresh_a whereas_o they_o have_v be_v so_o thorough_o teach_v and_o have_v so_o sudden_o forget_v all_o they_o show_v a_o manifest_a token_n of_o their_o great_a dulness_n of_o wit_n neither_o be_v they_o free_a from_o sluggishness_n which_o can_v not_o otherwise_o fit_o be_v purge_v than_o by_o defer_v the_o promise_a grace_n that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o sharpen_v their_o desire_n but_o this_o cause_n be_v chief_o to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v appoint_v a_o certain_a time_n for_o the_o send_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o the_o miracle_n may_v be_v the_o more_o apparent_a again_o he_o suffer_v they_o to_o rest_v a_o while_n that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o set_v forth_o the_o greatness_n of_o that_o business_n which_o he_o be_v about_o to_o commit_v unto_o they_o and_o thereby_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n confirm_v because_o the_o apostle_n be_v forbid_v to_o address_v themselves_o to_o preach_v the_o same_o until_o they_o shall_v be_v well_o prepare_v in_o succession_n of_o time_n and_o they_o be_v command_v to_o stay_v together_o because_o they_o shall_v all_o have_v one_o spirit_n give_v they_o if_o they_o have_v be_v disperse_v the_o unity_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v so_o well_o know_v though_o they_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o afterward_o in_o diverse_a place_n yet_o because_o they_o bring_v that_o which_o they_o have_v from_o one_o &_o the_o same_o fountain_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o always_o have_v have_v alone_a mouth_n furthermore_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o they_o shall_v begin_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o jerusalem_n that_o the_o prophecy_n may_v be_v fulfil_v there_o shall_v a_o law_n go_v out_o of_o zion_n 2.3_o esai_n 2.3_o &_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o jerusalem_n although_o the_o participle_n sunalizomenos_fw-mi may_v be_v diverse_o translate_v yet_o erasmus_n his_o translation_n do_v please_v i_o best_o because_o the_o signification_n of_o gather_v together_o will_v agree_v better_o with_o the_o text_n they_o shall_v wait_v for_o the._n it_o be_v meet_v that_o these_o shall_v be_v accustom_v to_o obey_v first_o who_o shall_v short_o after_o lie_v christ_n yoke_n upon_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o world_n and_o sure_o they_o have_v teach_v we_o by_o their_o example_n that_o we_o must_v work_v and_o rest_n at_o the_o lord_n pleasure_n alone_o for_o if_o during_o our_o life_n we_o go_v on_o warfare_n under_o his_o banner_n and_o conduct_v sure_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v no_o less_o authority_n over_o we_o than_o any_o earthly_a captain_n have_v in_o his_o army_n therefore_o as_o warlike_a discipline_n require_v this_o that_o no_o man_n wag_v unless_o he_o be_v command_v by_o the_o captain_n so_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o we_o either_o to_o go_v out_o or_o to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n until_o the_o lord_n give_v the_o watchword_n and_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o blow_v the_o retreat_n we_o must_v stay_v moreover_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n through_o hope_n but_o we_o must_v mark_v the_o nature_n of_o hope_n as_o it_o be_v describe_v in_o this_o place_n for_o that_o be_v not_o hope_n which_o every_o man_n feign_v to_o himself_o unaduised_o but_o that_o which_o be_v ground_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n therefore_o christ_n do_v not_o suffer_v his_o apostle_n to_o look_v for_o whatsoever_o they_o will_v but_o he_o add_v express_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n furthermore_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o witness_n thereof_o because_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o sure_a and_o certain_a that_o although_o all_o the_o engine_n of_o hell_n gainestande_v we_o yet_o this_o may_v remain_v sure_o fix_v in_o our_o mind_n that_o we_o have_v believe_v god_n 1.12_o 2._o tim._n 1.12_o i_o know_v say_v paul_n who_o i_o have_v believe_v and_o here_o he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o john_n the_o 14._o and_o 15._o and_o 16._o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v continue_v with_o you_o i_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 7.38_o john_n 14.16.14.25_o john_n 15.26_o john_n 16.7_o john_n 7.38_o etc._n etc._n again_o i_o have_v speak_v these_o thing_n unto_o you_o while_o i_o be_o with_o you_o and_o the_o spirit_n who_o my_o father_n shall_v send_v in_o my_o name_n shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v from_o my_o father_n he_o shall_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o and_o again_o if_o i_o shall_v go_v hence_o i_o will_v send_v you_o the_o comforter_n who_o shall_v reprove_v the_o world_n and_o he_o have_v say_v long_o before_o he_o which_o believe_v in_o i_o out_o of_o his_o belly_n shall_v flow_v river_n of_o live_a water_n 5_o because_o john_n true_o christ_n repeat_v this_o unto_o his_o apostle_n out_o of_o johns_n own_o word_n for_o some_o part_n of_o they_o have_v hear_v that_o at_o johns_n mouth_n which_o the_o evangelist_n report_n i_o true_o baptise_v you_o with_o water_n but_o he_o that_o come_v after_o i_o shall_v baptise_v you_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n now_o christ_n pronounce_v that_o they_o shall_v well_o perceive_v that_o that_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n which_o he_o say_v furthermore_o this_o serve_v great_o to_o confirm_v the_o sentence_n next_o go_v before_o for_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o thus_o john_n be_v send_v to_o baptise_v with_o water_n he_o fulfil_v his_o function_n as_o it_o become_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v send_v to_o baptise_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o he_o do_v his_o duty_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o but_o he_o must_v do_v that_o which_o his_o father_n have_v command_v he_o to_o do_v and_o for_o which_o also_o he_o come_v down_o into_o the_o earth_n but_o it_o seem_v a_o very_a absurd_a thing_n to_o restrain_v that_o unto_o the_o visible_a send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v speak_v
be_v drive_v headlong_o into_o blind_a fury_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v marvel_v that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o at_o this_o day_n so_o blind_a in_o so_o great_a light_n if_o they_o be_v so_o deaf_a when_o such_o manifest_a doctrine_n be_v deliver_v yea_o if_o they_o wanton_o refuse_v salvation_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o for_o if_o the_o wonderful_a and_o strange_a work_n of_o god_n wherein_o he_o do_v wonderful_o set_v forth_o his_o power_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o mock_n of_o man_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o think_v taste_v of_o nothing_o but_o of_o that_o which_o be_v common_a although_o luke_n do_v signify_v unto_o we_o that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o worst_a sort_n or_o altogether_o past_a hope_n which_o do_v laugh_v &_o mock_v but_o he_o mean_v rather_o to_o declare_v how_o the_o common_a sort_n be_v affect_v when_o they_o see_v this_o miracle_n and_o true_o it_o have_v be_v always_o so_o in_o the_o world_n for_o very_o few_o have_v be_v touch_v with_o the_o true_a feel_n of_o god_n as_o often_o as_o he_o have_v reveal_v himself_o neither_o be_v it_o any_o marvel_v for_o religion_n be_v a_o rare_a virtue_n and_o a_o virtue_n which_o few_o man_n have_v which_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o beginning_n of_o understanding_n nevertheless_o howsoever_o the_o more_o part_n of_o man_n through_o a_o certain_a hard_a stifneckednes_n do_v reject_v the_o consideration_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v they_o never_o without_o fruit_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o this_o history_n 14_o but_o peter_n stand_v with_o the_o eleven_o lift_v up_o his_o voice_n and_o speak_v unto_o they_o you_o man_n of_o judea_n and_o all_o you_o which_o dwell_v at_o jerusalem_n let_v this_o be_v know_v unto_o you_o and_o with_o your_o ear_n hear_v my_o word_n 15_o for_o these_o man_n be_v not_o drink_v as_o you_o suppose_v for_o it_o be_v the_o three_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n 16_o but_o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n joel_n 17_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o last_o day_n say_v god_n i_o will_v pour_v out_o of_o my_o spirit_n upon_o all_o flesh_n and_o your_o son_n and_o your_o daughter_n shall_v prophesy_v and_o your_o young_a man_n shall_v see_v vision_n and_o your_o elder_n shall_v dream_v dream_n 18_o very_o i_o will_v pour_v out_o of_o my_o spirit_n in_o those_o day_n upon_o my_o servant_n and_o upon_o my_o handmaid_n and_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v 19_o and_o i_o will_v show_v wonder_n in_o heaven_n above_o &_o sign_n upon_o the_o earth_n beneath_o blood_n and_o fire_n and_o the_o vapour_n of_o smoke_n 20_o the_o sun_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o darkness_n and_o the_o moon_n into_o blood_n before_o the_o great_a and_o notable_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v come_v 21_o and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o shall_v be_v save_v 14_o and_o peter_n stand_v by_o this_o word_n stand_v he_o do_v signify_v that_o there_o be_v a_o grave_a sermon_n make_v in_o the_o assembly_n for_o they_o do_v rise_v when_o they_o speak_v unto_o the_o people_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v the_o better_o hear_v the_o sum_n of_o this_o sermon_n be_v this_o he_o gather_v that_o christ_n be_v already_o reveal_v and_o give_v by_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o they_o see_v yet_o first_o he_o refute_v that_o false_a opinion_n in_o that_o they_o think_v that_o the_o disciple_n be_v drink_v this_o refutation_n consist_v upon_o a_o probable_a argument_n because_o man_n use_v not_o to_o be_v drink_v betimes_o in_o the_o morning_n for_o as_o paul_n say_v those_o which_o be_v drink_v be_v drink_v in_o the_o night_n 5.6_o 1._o thes_n 5.6_o for_o they_o fly_v the_o light_n for_o shame_n and_o sure_o so_o great_a be_v the_o filthiness_n of_o this_o vice_n that_o for_o good_a cause_n it_o hate_v the_o light_n and_o yet_o this_o argument_n be_v not_o always_o good_a for_o jesaias_n do_v inveigh_v in_o his_o time_n against_o those_o which_o do_v rise_v early_o to_o follow_v drunkenness_n and_o at_o this_o day_n there_o be_v many_o who_o like_a hog_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o awake_v run_v to_o quaff_v but_o because_o this_o be_v a_o common_a custom_n amongst_o man_n peter_n say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o likely_a thing_n those_o which_o have_v but_o even_o small_a skill_n in_o antiquity_n do_v know_v that_o the_o civil_a day_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n until_o the_o go_v down_o thereof_o be_v divide_v into_o twelve_o hour_n so_o that_o the_o hour_n be_v long_o in_o summer_n and_o short_a in_o winter_n therefore_o that_o which_o shall_v now_o be_v the_o nine_o before_o noon_n in_o winter_n and_o in_o summer_n the_o eight_o be_v the_o third_o hour_n among_o the_o old_a people_n therefore_o whereas_o peter_n do_v only_o light_o remove_v the_o opinion_n of_o drunkenness_n he_o do_v it_o for_o this_o cause_n because_o it_o have_v be_v superfluous_a to_o have_v stand_v about_o any_o long_a excuse_n therefore_o as_o in_o a_o matter_n which_o be_v certain_a and_o out_o of_o doubt_n he_o do_v rather_o pacify_v those_o which_o mock_v than_o labour_n to_o teach_v they_o and_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o refute_v they_o by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n as_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o joel._n for_o when_o he_o say_v that_o that_o be_v now_o come_v to_o pass_v which_o be_v foretell_v he_o touch_v brief_o their_o unthankfulness_n because_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v such_o a_o excellent_a benefit_n promise_v unto_o they_o in_o time_n past_a which_o they_o now_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n and_o whereas_o he_o upbraid_v the_o fault_n of_o a_o few_o unto_o all_o he_o do_v it_o not_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v make_v they_o all_o guilty_a of_o the_o same_o fault_n but_o because_o a_o fit_a occasion_n be_v offer_v by_o their_o mock_n to_o teach_v they_o all_o together_o he_o do_v not_o foreslow_a the_o same_o 17_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o last_o day_n by_o this_o effect_n he_o proove_v that_o the_o messiah_n be_v already_o reveal_v 2.29_o joel._n 2.29_o joel_n in_o deed_n do_v not_o express_v the_o last_o day_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o entreat_v of_o the_o perfect_a restore_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o that_o prophecy_n belong_v unto_o the_o last_o age_n alone_o wherefore_o that_o which_o peter_n bring_v do_v no_o whit_n dissent_v from_o joel_n his_o meaning_n but_o he_o do_v only_o add_v this_o word_n for_o exposition_n sake_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v know_v that_o the_o church_n can_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n be_v restore_v which_o be_v then_o decay_v but_o by_o be_v renew_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n again_o because_o the_o repair_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v like_a unto_o a_o new_a world_n therefore_o peter_n say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o last_o day_n and_o sure_o this_o be_v a_o common_a and_o familiar_a thing_n among_o the_o jew_n that_o all_o those_o great_a promise_n concern_v the_o bless_a and_o well_o order_v state_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v fulfil_v until_o christ_n by_o his_o come_n shall_v restore_v all_o thing_n wherefore_o it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n among_o they_o that_o that_o which_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o joel_n do_v appertain_v unto_o the_o last_o time_n now_o by_o the_o last_o day_n or_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v mean_v the_o stable_n and_o firm_a condition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o manifestation_n or_o reveal_n of_o christ_n i_o will_v pour_v out_o of_o my_o spirit_n he_o intend_v to_o prove_v as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v repair_v by_o none_o other_o mean_n save_v only_o by_o the_o give_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n therefore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v all_o hope_n that_o the_o restore_n draw_v near_o he_o accuse_v they_o of_o sluggishness_n because_o they_o do_v not_o once_o think_v upon_o the_o way_n and_o mean_n thereof_o and_o when_o the_o prophet_n say_v i_o will_v pour_v out_o it_o be_v without_o all_o question_n that_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o word_n to_o note_v the_o great_a abundance_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o we_o must_v take_v i_o will_v pour_v out_o of_o my_o spirit_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v simple_o i_o will_v pour_v out_o my_o spirit_n for_o these_o latter_a word_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n but_o peter_n follow_v the_o grecian_n who_o translate_v the_o hebrew_n word_n eth_z hapo_n therefore_o some_o man_n do_v in_o vain_a more_o subtle_o play_v the_o philosopher_n because_o how_o soever_o the_o word_n be_v
change_v yet_o must_v we_o still_o retain_v and_o keep_v the_o prophet_n his_o meaning_n nevertheless_o when_o god_n be_v say_v to_o pour_v out_o his_o spirit_n i_o confess_v it_o must_v be_v thus_o understand_v that_o he_o make_v manifold_a variety_n and_o change_n of_o gift_n to_o flow_v unto_o man_n from_o his_o spirit_n as_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o only_a fountain_n the_o fountain_n which_o can_v never_o be_v draw_v dry_a for_o as_o paul_n do_v testify_v there_o be_v diverse_a gift_n 12.4_o 1._o cor._n 12.4_o and_o yet_o but_o one_o spirit_n and_o hence_o do_v we_o gather_v a_o profitable_a doctrine_n that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o more_o excellent_a thing_n give_v we_o of_o god_n than_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n yea_o that_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v nothing_o worth_a if_o this_o be_v want_v for_o when_o god_n will_v brief_o promise_v salvation_n to_o his_o people_n he_o affirm_v that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o his_o spirit_n hereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o can_v obtain_v no_o good_a thing_n until_o we_o have_v the_o spirit_n give_v us._n and_o true_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o key_n which_o open_v unto_o we_o the_o door_n that_o we_o may_v enter_v into_o all_o the_o treasure_n of_o spiritual_a good_a thing_n and_o that_o we_o may_v also_o have_v entrance_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n upon_o all_o flesh_n it_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v of_o what_o force_n this_o generality_n be_v for_o first_o it_o be_v set_v down_o general_o all_o flesh_n after_o that_o the_o partition_n be_v add_v whereby_o the_o prophet_n do_v signify_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o difference_n of_o age_n or_o kind_n but_o that_o god_n admit_v all_o one_o with_o another_o unto_o the_o partake_n of_o his_o grace_n it_o be_v say_v therefore_o all_o flesh_n because_o both_o young_a and_o old_a man_n and_o woman_n be_v thereby_o signify_v yet_o here_o may_v a_o question_n be_v move_v why_o god_n do_v promise_n that_o unto_o his_o people_n as_o some_o new_a and_o unwoonted_a good_a thing_n which_o he_o be_v wont_v to_o do_v for_o they_o from_o the_o begin_n throughout_o all_o age_n for_o there_o be_v no_o age_n void_a of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o answer_n of_o this_o question_n be_v set_v down_o in_o these_o two_o word_n i_o will_v pour_v out_o and_z upon_o all_o flesh_n for_o we_o must_v here_o note_v a_o double_a contrariety_n between_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n for_o the_o pour_v out_o as_o i_o have_v say_v do_v signify_v great_a plenty_n when_o as_o there_o be_v under_o the_o law_n a_o more_o scarce_o distribution_n for_o which_o cause_n john_n also_o do_v say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o give_v until_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n all_o flesh_n do_v signify_v a_o infinite_a multitude_n where_o as_o god_n in_o time_n past_a do_v vouchsafe_v to_o bestow_v such_o plenty_n of_o his_o spirit_n only_o upon_o a_o few_o furthermore_o in_o both_o comparison_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o father_n under_o the_o law_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o selfsame_o grace_n whereof_o we_o be_v partaker_n but_o the_o lord_n do_v show_v that_o we_o be_v above_o they_o as_o we_o be_v in_o deed_n i_o say_v that_o all_o godly_a man_n sithence_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o understanding_n of_o righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n wherewith_o the_o lord_n do_v at_o this_o day_n illuminate_v and_o regenerate_v we_o but_o there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o which_o have_v the_o light_n of_o knowledge_n give_v they_o then_o if_o they_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o great_a multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o christ_n do_v sudden_o gather_v together_o by_o his_o come_n again_o their_o knowledge_n be_v but_o obscure_a and_o slender_a and_o as_o it_o be_v cover_v with_o a_o veil_n if_o it_o be_v compare_v with_o that_o which_o we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n where_o christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n do_v shine_v with_o perfect_a brightness_n as_o it_o be_v at_o noon_n day_n neither_o do_v that_o any_o whit_n hurt_v or_o hinder_v that_o a_o few_o have_v such_o a_o excellent_a faith_n that_o peradventure_o they_o have_v no_o equal_a at_o this_o day_n for_o their_o understanding_n do_v nevertheless_o smell_v or_o savour_n of_o the_o instruction_n and_o schoolemastershippe_n of_o the_o law_n for_o that_o be_v always_o true_a that_o godly_a king_n and_o prophet_n have_v not_o see_v nor_o hear_v those_o thing_n which_o christ_n have_v reveal_v by_o his_o come_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n the_o prophet_n joel_n may_v commend_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o affirm_v and_o foretell_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n shall_v be_v more_o plentiful_a in_o time_n thereof_o 10.24_o mat._n 13.17_o luke_n 10.24_o and_o again_o that_o it_o shall_v come_v unto_o more_o man_n and_o your_o son_n shall_v prophesy_v by_o the_o word_n prophecy_n he_o mean_v to_o note_v the_o rare_a and_o singular_a gift_n of_o understanding_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n tend_v that_o partition_n which_o follow_v afterward_o your_o young_a man_n shall_v see_v vision_n and_o your_o old_a man_n shall_v dream_v dream_n for_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o number_n that_o these_o be_v the_o two_o ordinary_a way_n whereby_o god_n do_v reveal_v himself_o to_o the_o prophet_n for_o in_o that_o place_n when_o the_o lord_n exempt_v moses_n from_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o prophet_n 12.6_o num._n 12.6_o he_o say_v i_o appear_v unto_o my_o servant_n by_o a_o vision_n or_o by_o a_o dream_n but_o i_o speak_v unto_o moses_n face_n to_o face_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o two_o kind_n be_v put_v after_o the_o general_a word_n for_o a_o confirmation_n yet_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n that_o they_o shall_v all_o be_v prophet_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v pour_v out_o from_o heaven_n but_o here_o it_o be_v object_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n even_o in_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o neither_o yet_o in_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a i_o answer_v that_o the_o prophet_n do_v common_o use_v to_o shadow_v under_o trope_n most_o fit_a for_o their_o time_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n they_o name_v the_o altar_n the_o sacrifice_n the_o offering_n of_o gold_n silver_n and_o frankincense_n notwithstanding_o we_o know_v that_o the_o altar_n do_v cease_v the_o sacrifice_n be_v abolish_v whereof_o there_o be_v some_o use_n in_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o that_o the_o lord_n require_v some_o high_a thing_n at_o our_o hand_n than_o earthly_a riches_n that_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n but_o the_o prophet_n while_o they_o apply_v their_o style_n unto_o the_o capacity_n of_o their_o time_n comprehend_v under_o figure_n wherewith_o the_o people_n be_v then_o well_o acquaint_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o see_v otherwise_o reveal_v and_o show_v now_o like_v as_o when_o he_o promise_v else_o where_o 66.21_o isaie_n 66.21_o that_o he_o will_v make_v priest_n of_o levite_n and_o levite_n of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o man_n this_o be_v his_o meaning_n that_o under_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n every_o base_a person_n shall_v be_v extol_v unto_o a_o honourable_a estate_n therefore_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o have_v the_o true_a and_o natural_a meaning_n of_o this_o place_n we_o must_v not_o urge_v the_o word_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o old_a order_n of_o the_o law_n but_o we_o must_v only_o seek_v the_o truth_n without_o figure_n and_o that_o be_v it_o that_o the_o apostle_n through_o the_o sudden_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v entreat_v of_o the_o heavenly_a mystery_n propheticallie_o that_o be_v to_o say_v divine_o and_o above_o the_o common_a order_n therefore_o this_o word_n prophecy_n do_v signify_v nothing_o else_o save_v only_o the_o rare_a and_o excellent_a gift_n of_o understanding_n as_o if_o joel_n shall_v say_v under_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n there_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o few_o prophet_n only_o unto_o who_o god_n may_v reveal_v his_o secret_n but_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v endue_v with_o spiritual_a wisdom_n even_o to_o the_o prophetical_a excellency_n as_o it_o be_v also_o in_o jeremie_n every_o man_n shall_v no_o long_o teach_v his_o neighbour_n 13.34_o jere._n 13.34_o because_o they_o shall_v all_o know_v i_o from_o the_o least_o unto_o the_o great_a and_o in_o these_o word_n peter_n invit_v the_o jew_n unto_o who_o he_o speak_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o grace_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o lord_n be_v ready_a to_o pour_v out_o that_o spirit_n far_o and_o wide_a which_o he_o have_v pour_v upon_o us._n
do_v seek_v our_o felicity_n without_o the_o world_n moreover_o man_n do_v bring_v misery_n upon_o themselves_o through_o their_o unthankfulness_n for_o the_o servant_n which_o know_v his_o master_n will_n 12.47_o luk._n 12.47_o and_o do_v not_o obey_v be_v worthy_a of_o great_a &_o more_o stripe_n the_o more_o familiar_o that_o god_n do_v communicate_v with_o we_o in_o christ_n the_o more_o do_v our_o ungodliness_n grow_v and_o break_v out_o into_o open_a contumacy_n so_o that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o when_o christ_n reveal_v there_o appear_v many_o token_n of_o god_n vengeance_n on_o the_o other_o side_n for_o as_o much_o as_o man_n do_v hereby_o more_o grievous_o provoke_v god_n against_o they_o &_o kindle_v his_o wrath_n through_o wicked_a contempt_n sure_o in_o that_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n be_v fearful_a it_o be_v a_o accidental_a thing_n whether_o god_n will_v correct_v our_o slothfulness_n to_o bring_v we_o under_o which_o be_v yet_o unapt_a to_o be_v teach_v or_o whether_o he_o will_v punish_v our_o unthankfulnes_n for_o it_o bring_v with_o it_o of_o itself_o nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v pleasant_a but_o the_o contempt_n of_o god_n grace_n do_v provoke_v he_o to_o horrible_a anger_n not_o without_o cause_n 21_o who_o so_o ever_o shall_v call_v upon_o a_o excellent_a place_n for_o as_o god_n do_v prick_v we_o forward_o like_o sluggish_a ass_n with_o threaten_n &_o terror_n to_o seek_v salvation_n so_o after_o that_o he_o have_v bring_v darkness_n upon_o the_o face_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n yet_o do_v he_o show_v a_o mean_n whereby_o salvation_n may_v shine_v before_o our_o eye_n to_o wit_n if_o we_o shall_v call_v upon_o he_o for_o we_o must_v diligent_o note_v this_o circumstance_n if_o god_n shall_v promise_v salvation_n simple_o it_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n but_o it_o be_v a_o far_o great_a when_o as_o he_o promise_v the_o same_o amid_o manifold_a dungeon_n of_o death_n while_o that_o say_v he_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v out_o of_o order_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o destruction_n shall_v possess_v all_o thing_n only_o call_v upon_o i_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v therefore_o howsoever_o man_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o the_o gulf_n of_o misery_n yet_o be_v there_o set_v before_o he_o a_o way_n to_o escape_v we_o must_v also_o note_v the_o universal_a word_n who_o so_o ever_o for_o god_n admit_v all_o man_n unto_o himself_o without_o exception_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n do_v he_o invite_v they_o to_o salvation_n 10.20_o rom._n 10.20_o as_o paul_n gather_v in_o the_o ten_o chap_v to_o the_o roman_n and_o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v set_v it_o down_o before_o thou_o lord_n which_o hear_v the_o prayer_n unto_o thou_o shall_v all_o flesh_n come_v therefore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o no_o man_n be_v exclude_v from_o call_v upon_o god_n the_o gate_n of_o salvation_n be_v set_v open_a unto_o all_o man_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o thing_n which_o keep_v we_o back_o from_o enter_v in_o save_v only_o our_o own_o unbelief_n i_o speak_v of_o all_o unto_o who_o god_n do_v make_v manifest_v himself_o by_o the_o gospel_n but_o like_a as_o those_o which_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v sure_a of_o salvation_n so_o we_o must_v think_v that_o without_o the_o same_o we_o be_v thrice_o miserable_a and_o undo_v and_o when_o as_o our_o salvation_n be_v place_v in_o call_v upon_o god_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n take_v from_o faith_n for_o as_o much_o as_o this_o invocation_n be_v ground_v in_o faith_n alone_o there_o be_v also_o another_o circumstance_n no_o less_o worthy_a the_o note_n in_o that_o the_o prophet_n do_v signify_v that_o the_o call_n upon_o god_n do_v proper_o appertain_v and_o agree_v unto_o the_o last_o day_n for_o although_o he_o will_v be_v call_v upon_o in_o all_o age_n notwithstanding_o since_o that_o he_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o father_n in_o christ_n we_o have_v the_o more_o easy_a access_n unto_o he_o which_o thing_n ought_v both_o the_o more_o to_o embolden_v we_o and_o to_o take_v from_o we_o all_o sluggishness_n as_o he_o himself_o do_v also_o reason_n that_o by_o this_o privilege_n our_o forwardness_n to_o pray_v be_v double_v to_o we_o hitherto_o have_v you_o ask_v nothing_o in_o my_o name_n ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v heretofore_o although_o i_o do_v not_o yet_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o mediator_n and_o advocate_n in_o the_o flesh_n yet_o do_v you_o pray_v but_o now_o when_o you_o shall_v have_v i_o to_o be_v your_o patron_n with_o how_o much_o more_o courage_n ought_v you_o to_o do_v that_o 22_o you_o man_n of_o israel_n hear_v these_o word_n jesus_n of_o nazareth_n a_o man_n show_v towards_o you_o of_o god_n by_o power_n and_o wonder_n and_o sign_n which_o god_n do_v by_o he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o as_o you_o yourselves_o know_v 23_o him_n i_o say_v have_v you_o take_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o determinate_a counsel_n and_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o have_v slay_v he_o have_v fasten_v he_o to_o the_o cross_n 24_o who_o god_n have_v raise_v up_o have_v loose_v the_o sorrow_n of_o death_n forasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v hold_v of_o it_o 22_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n now_o do_v peter_n apply_v unto_o his_o purpose_n the_o prophecy_n of_o joel_n namely_o that_o the_o jew_n may_v thereby_o know_v that_o the_o time_n of_o restore_v be_v present_a and_o that_o christ_n be_v give_v they_o for_o this_o purpose_n for_o this_o promise_n be_v not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v fulfil_v save_v only_o by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o mediator_n and_o this_o be_v the_o right_a use_n of_o all_o those_o gift_n which_o we_o have_v by_o christ_n while_o that_o they_o bring_v we_o unto_o christ_n as_o unto_o a_o fountain_n but_o he_o come_v hither_o by_o little_a and_o little_a for_o he_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o in_o the_o beginning_n affirm_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n but_o he_o say_v only_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n send_v of_o god_n and_o that_o do_v he_o prove_v by_o his_o miracle_n afterward_o he_o add_v that_o he_o rise_v from_o death_n when_o he_o be_v slay_v whereby_o it_o appear_v more_o certain_o and_o more_o full_o that_o he_o be_v not_o some_o one_o of_o the_o prophet_n but_o the_o very_a son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v promise_v to_o be_v the_o repairer_n of_o all_o thing_n let_v this_o therefore_o be_v the_o first_o member_n that_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n be_v a_o man_n approve_v of_o god_n by_o manifest_a testimony_n so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v despise_v as_o some_o base_a and_o obscure_a person_n the_o old_a interpreter_n do_v not_o evil_a translate_v hupodhedheigmenon_fw-mi approve_v and_o erasmus_n be_v deceive_v who_o think_v that_o he_o do_v read_v it_o otherwise_o and_o he_o himself_o do_v not_o express_v luke_n his_o mind_n when_o as_o he_o translate_v it_o give_v for_o see_v that_o word_n do_v signify_v among_o the_o grecian_n to_o show_v whereupon_o the_o mathematician_n also_o call_v those_o argument_n whereby_o they_o set_v a_o thing_n as_o it_o be_v before_o a_o man_n eye_n apodexeis_n or_o demonstration_n luke_n mean_v to_o say_v that_o jesus_n come_v not_o unknown_a and_o without_o any_o testimony_n or_o approbation_n but_o that_o those_o miracle_n which_o god_n show_v by_o he_o serve_v to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v be_v famous_a and_o excellent_a therefore_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v show_v towards_o the_o jew_n because_o god_n will_v have_v his_o son_n to_o be_v account_v excellent_a and_o great_a among_o they_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o miracle_n be_v not_o appoint_v for_o other_o nation_n but_o for_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o jesus_n be_v send_v unto_o they_o of_o god_n by_o great_a work_n he_o call_v miracle_n by_o these_o three_o name_n and_o because_o god_n do_v show_v forth_o his_o power_n in_o they_o after_o a_o new_a &_o unwonted_a sort_n or_o do_v at_o least_o procure_v great_a admiration_n they_o be_v for_o good_a cause_n call_v great_a work_n for_o we_o be_v common_o more_o move_v when_o any_o extraordinary_a thing_n do_v happen_v in_o which_o respect_n they_o be_v also_o call_v wonder_n because_o they_o make_v we_o astonish_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v they_o call_v sign_n because_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v man_n mind_n to_o stay_v there_o but_o to_o be_v lift_v up_o high_a as_o they_o be_v refer_v unto_o another_o end_n he_o put_v in_o three_o word_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o more_o extol_v christ_n his_o miracle_n and_o enforce_v the_o people_n by_o this_o heap_v and_o lay_v of_o word_n together_o to_o consider_v the_o same_o furthermore_o
he_o make_v not_o christ_n the_o chief_a author_n but_o only_o the_o minister_n because_o as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v he_o determine_v to_o go_v forward_o by_o degree_n notwithstanding_o here_o may_v a_o question_n be_v ask_v whether_o miracle_n do_v suffice_v to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a and_o just_a approbation_n or_o no_o because_o by_o this_o mean_n enchanter_n may_v cause_v their_o legierdemaine_a to_o be_v believe_v i_o answer_v that_o the_o juggle_a cast_v of_o satan_n do_v much_o differ_v from_o the_o power_n of_o god_n christ_n say_v elsewhere_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v in_o wonder_n 2.9_o 2._o thes_n 2.9_o but_o he_o add_v by_o and_o by_o in_o lie_v wonder_n if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o we_o can_v easy_o discern_v because_o he_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v so_o great_a colour_n that_o they_o shall_v deceive_v if_o it_o can_v be_v the_o very_a elect_a i_o answer_v again_o that_o this_o error_n proceed_v only_o from_o our_o own_o want_n of_o wit_n because_o we_o be_v so_o dull_a for_o god_n do_v show_v his_o power_n manifest_o enough_o therefore_o there_o be_v sufficient_a approbation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o ministry_n in_o the_o miracle_n which_o god_n do_v work_v so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o blind_a and_o whereas_o it_o be_v not_o of_o sufficient_a force_n among_o the_o wicked_a because_o they_o may_v now_o &_o then_o be_v deceive_v with_o the_o false_a miracle_n of_o satan_n this_o must_v be_v impute_v unto_o their_o own_o blindness_n but_o whosoever_o have_v a_o pure_a heart_n he_o do_v also_o know_v god_n with_o the_o pure_a eye_n of_o his_o mind_n so_o often_o as_o he_o do_v show_v himself_o neither_o can_v satan_n otherwise_o delude_v we_o save_v only_o when_o through_o the_o wickedness_n of_o our_o heart_n our_o judgement_n be_v corrupt_a and_o our_o eye_n blind_v or_o at_o least_o blear_v through_o our_o own_o slothfulness_n 23_o he_o have_v you_o slay_v he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o cause_n chief_o that_o the_o resurrection_n may_v the_o more_o assure_o be_v believe_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n full_a well_o know_v among_o the_o jew_n that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v therefore_o in_o that_o he_o rise_v again_o it_o be_v a_o great_a and_o wonderful_a token_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v prick_v their_o conscience_n with_o the_o feel_n of_o sin_n he_o say_v that_o they_o slay_v he_o not_o that_o they_o crucify_v he_o with_o their_o own_o hand_n but_o because_o the_o people_n with_o one_o voice_n desire_v to_o have_v he_o put_v to_o death_n and_o although_o many_o of_o the_o hearer_n unto_o who_o he_o speak_v do_v not_o consent_v unto_o that_o wicked_a and_o ungodlie_a cruelty_n yet_o do_v he_o just_o impute_v the_o same_o to_o the_o nation_n because_o all_o of_o they_o have_v defile_v themselves_o either_o with_o their_o silence_n or_o else_o through_o their_o carelessness_n neither_o have_v the_o cloak_n and_o colour_n of_o ignorance_n any_o place_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v show_v before_o of_o god_n this_o giltines_n therefore_o under_o which_o he_o bring_v they_o be_v a_o preparation_n unto_o repentance_n by_o the_o determinate_a counsel_n he_o remove_v a_o stumble_a block_n because_o it_o seem_v at_o the_o first_o blush_n to_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o inconvenient_a that_o that_o man_n who_o god_n have_v so_o great_o adorn_v be_v afterward_o lay_v open_a to_o all_o manner_n mock_v do_v suffer_v so_o reproachful_a a_o death_n therefore_o because_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n do_v common_o use_v to_o trouble_v we_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n for_o this_o cause_n peter_n declare_v that_o he_o suffer_v nothing_o by_o chance_n or_o because_o he_o want_v power_n to_o deliver_v himself_o but_o because_o it_o be_v so_o determine_v and_o appoint_v by_o god_n for_o this_o knowledge_n alone_o that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n do_v cut_v off_o all_o occasion_n of_o foolish_a and_o wicked_a cogitation_n and_o do_v prevent_v all_o offence_n which_o may_v otherwise_o be_v conceive_v for_o we_o must_v know_v this_o that_o god_n do_v decree_v nothing_o in_o vain_a or_o rash_o whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n for_o which_o he_o will_v have_v christ_n to_o suffer_v the_o same_o knowledge_n of_o god_n providence_n be_v a_o step_n to_o consider_v the_o end_n and_o fruit_n of_o christ_n his_o death_n for_o this_o meet_v we_o by_o &_o by_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n that_o the_o just_a be_v deliver_v for_o our_o sin_n &_o that_o his_o blood_n be_v the_o price_n of_o our_o death_n and_o here_o be_v a_o notable_a place_n touch_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o aswell_o our_o life_n as_o our_o death_n be_v govern_v by_o it_o luke_n intreat_v in_o deed_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o his_o person_n we_o have_v a_o mirror_n which_o do_v represent_v unto_o we_o the_o universal_a providence_n of_o god_n which_o do_v stretch_v itself_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o do_v it_o special_o shine_v unto_o we_o who_o be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n luke_n set_v down_o two_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n the_o foreknowledge_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n and_o although_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n be_v former_a in_o order_n because_o god_n do_v first_o see_v what_o he_o will_v determine_v before_o he_o do_v in_o deed_n determine_v the_o same_o yet_o do_v he_o put_v the_o same_o after_o the_o counsel_n and_o decree_n of_o god_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o god_n will_v nothing_o neither_o appoint_v any_o thing_n save_o that_o which_o he_o have_v long_o before_o direct_v to_o his_o end_n for_o man_n do_v oftentimes_o rash_o decree_v many_o thing_n because_o they_o decree_v they_o sudden_o therefore_o to_o the_o end_n peter_n may_v teach_v that_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n be_v not_o without_o reason_n he_o couple_v also_o therewithal_o his_o foreknowledge_n now_o we_o must_v distinguish_v these_o two_o and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o diligent_o because_o many_o be_v deceive_v in_o this_o point_n for_o pass_v over_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n wherewith_o he_o do_v guide_v and_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n they_o catch_v at_o his_o bare_a foreknowledge_n thence_o come_v that_o common_a distinction_n that_o although_o god_n do_v foresee_v all_o thing_n yet_o do_v he_o lay_v no_o necessity_n upon_o his_o creature_n and_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n do_v know_v this_o thing_n or_o that_o thing_n before_o for_o this_o cause_n because_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v but_o as_o we_o see_v that_o peter_n do_v teach_v that_o god_n do_v not_o only_o foresee_v that_o which_o befall_v christ_n but_o it_o be_v decree_v by_o he_o and_o hence_o must_v be_v gather_v a_o general_a doctrine_n because_o god_n do_v no_o less_o show_v his_o providence_n in_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n than_o in_o ordain_v and_o appoint_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o god_n not_o only_o to_o know_v before_o thing_n to_o come_v but_o of_o his_o own_o will_n to_o determine_v what_o he_o will_v have_v do_v this_o second_o thing_n do_v peter_n declare_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o certain_a and_o determinate_a counsel_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n be_v another_o thing_n than_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o govern_v and_o order_v all_o thing_n some_o which_o be_v of_o quick_a sight_n confess_v that_o god_n do_v not_o only_o foreknow_v but_o also_o govern_v with_o his_o beck_n what_o thing_n soever_o be_v do_v in_o the_o world_n nevertheless_o they_o imagine_v a_o confuse_a government_n as_o if_o god_n do_v give_v liberty_n to_o his_o creature_n to_o follow_v their_o own_o nature_n they_o say_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v rule_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n because_o in_o give_v light_n to_o we_o he_o do_v his_o duty_n which_o be_v once_o enjoin_v he_o by_o god_n they_o think_v that_o man_n have_v free_a will_n after_o this_o sort_n leave_v he_o because_o his_o nature_n be_v dispose_v or_o incline_v unto_o the_o free_a choice_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a but_o they_o which_o think_v so_o do_v feign_v that_o god_n sit_v idle_a in_o heaven_n the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o far_o otherwise_o which_o ascribe_v unto_o god_n a_o special_a government_n in_o all_o thing_n &_o in_o man_n action_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o ponder_v &_o consider_v to_o what_o end_n it_o teach_v this_o for_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o dote_a speculation_n wherewith_o we_o see_v many_o carry_v away_o the_o scripture_n will_v exercise_v our_o faith_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o we_o be_v defend_v
of_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n but_o he_o do_v simple_o declare_v that_o the_o whole_a strength_n of_o baptism_n be_v contain_v in_o christ_n although_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v lay_v hold_v on_o by_o faith_n without_o the_o father_n by_o who_o he_o be_v give_v we_o and_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o which_o he_o renew_v and_o sanctifi_v us._n the_o answer_n consist_v whole_o in_o this_o that_o he_o intreat_v not_o in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o certain_a form_n of_o baptise_v but_o the_o faithful_a be_v call_v back_o unto_o christ_n in_o who_o alone_o we_o have_v whatsoever_o baptism_n do_v prefigure_v unto_o us._n for_o we_o be_v both_o make_v clean_o by_o his_o blood_n and_o also_o we_o enter_v into_o a_o new_a life_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o they_o be_v touch_v with_o wonder_v when_o they_o see_v the_o apostle_n sudden_o begin_v to_o speak_v with_o strange_a tongue_n peter_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o gift_n if_o they_o will_v pass_v over_o unto_o christ_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n be_v the_o principal_a thing_n and_o this_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o addition_n that_o christ_n shall_v show_v forth_o unto_o they_o his_o power_n by_o some_o visible_a gift_n neither_o ought_v this_o place_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o sanctification_n which_o be_v give_v general_o to_o all_o the_o godly_a therefore_o he_o promise_v they_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereof_o they_o see_v a_o pattern_n in_o the_o diversity_n of_o tongue_n therefore_o this_o do_v not_o proper_o appertain_v unto_o us._n for_o because_o christ_n mean_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o beginning_n of_o his_o kingdom_n with_o those_o miracle_n they_o last_v but_o for_o a_o time_n yet_o because_o the_o visible_a grace_n which_o the_o lord_n do_v distribute_v to_o his_o do_v show_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o glass_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o giver_n of_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o that_o which_o peter_n say_v do_v in_o some_o respect_n appertain_v unto_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n you_o shall_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o although_o we_o do_v not_o receive_v it_o that_o we_o may_v speak_v with_o tongue_n 5.24_o rom._n 10.10_o john_n 5.24_o that_o we_o may_v be_v prophet_n that_o we_o may_v cure_v the_o sick_a that_o we_o may_v work_v miracle_n yet_o be_v it_o give_v we_o for_o a_o better_a use_n that_o we_o may_v believe_v with_o the_o heart_n unto_o righteousness_n that_o our_o tongue_n may_v be_v frame_v unto_o true_a confession_n that_o we_o may_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n that_o we_o which_o be_v poor_a and_o empty_a may_v be_v make_v rich_a that_o we_o may_v withstand_v satan_n and_o the_o world_n stout_o therefore_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n shall_v always_o be_v annex_v unto_o baptism_n unless_o the_o let_v be_v in_o ourselves_o 39_o for_o the_o promise_n appertain_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o this_o shall_v be_v express_o add_v that_o the_o jew_n may_v certain_o think_v and_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n do_v belong_v as_o well_o to_o they_o as_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o peter_n proove_v it_o thus_o because_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v make_v unto_o they_o for_o we_o must_v always_o look_v unto_o this_o because_o we_o can_v otherwise_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n save_v only_o by_o his_o word_n but_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v the_o general_a word_n unless_o we_o know_v that_o the_o same_o be_v appoint_v for_o us._n therefore_o peter_n say_v that_o those_o benefit_n which_o they_o see_v in_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n in_o office_n be_v in_o time_n past_o promise_v to_o the_o jew_n because_o this_o be_v require_v necessary_o for_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n that_o every_o one_o be_v full_o persuade_v of_o this_o that_o he_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o unto_o who_o god_n speak_v final_o this_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o a_o true_a faith_n when_o i_o be_o thus_o persuade_v that_o salvation_n be_v i_o because_o that_o promise_n appertain_v unto_o i_o which_o offer_v the_o same_o and_o hereby_o we_o have_v also_o a_o great_a confirmation_n when_o as_o the_o promise_n be_v extend_v unto_o those_o who_o be_v before_o a_o far_o off_o for_o god_n have_v make_v the_o covenant_n with_o the_o jew_n if_o the_o force_n and_o fruit_n thereof_o come_v also_o unto_o the_o gentile_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o jew_n shall_v doubt_v of_o themselves_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v find_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n firm_a and_o stable_a 17.7_o exod._n 4.22_o gene._n 17.7_o and_o we_o must_v note_v these_o three_o degree_n that_o the_o promise_n be_v first_o make_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o then_o to_o their_o child_n and_o last_o of_o all_o that_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v impart_v to_o the_o gentile_n we_o know_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o jew_n be_v prefer_v before_o other_o people_n for_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o beget_v in_o god_n family_n yea_o they_o be_v then_o separate_v from_o other_o people_n by_o a_o singular_a privilege_n therefore_o peter_n observe_v a_o good_a order_n when_o he_o give_v the_o jew_n the_o pre-eminence_n whereas_o he_o adjoin_v their_o child_n unto_o they_o it_o depend_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o promise_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o seed_n after_o thou_o where_o god_n do_v reckon_v the_o child_n with_o the_o father_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n this_o place_n therefore_o do_v abundant_o refute_v the_o manifest_a error_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n which_o will_v not_o have_v infant_n which_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o be_v baptize_v as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o church_n they_o espy_v a_o start_a hole_n in_o the_o allegorical_a sense_n and_o they_o expound_v it_o thus_o that_o by_o child_n be_v mean_v those_o which_o be_v spiritual_o beget_v but_o this_o gross_a impudence_n do_v nothing_o help_v they_o it_o be_v plain_a and_o evident_a that_o peter_n speak_v thus_o because_o god_n do_v addopt_v one_o nation_n peculiar_o and_o circumcision_n do_v declare_v that_o the_o right_n of_o adoption_n be_v common_a even_o unto_o infant_n therefore_o even_o as_o god_n make_v his_o covenant_n with_o isaad_n be_v as_o yet_o unborn_a because_o he_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n so_o peter_n teach_v that_o all_o the_o child_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o same_o covenant_n because_o this_o promise_n be_v always_o in_o force_n i_o will_v be_v the_o god_n of_o your_o seed_n and_o to_o those_o which_o be_v a_o far_o of_o the_o gentile_n be_v name_v in_o the_o last_o place_n which_o be_v before_o stranger_n for_o those_o which_o refer_v it_o unto_o those_o jew_n which_o be_v exile_v a_o far_o off_o and_o drive_v into_o far_a country_n they_o be_v great_o disceive_v for_o he_o speak_v not_o in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o distance_n of_o place_n but_o he_o note_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_n that_o they_o be_v first_o join_v to_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o so_o consequent_o become_v of_o his_o family_n or_o household_n but_o the_o gentile_n be_v banish_v from_o his_o kingdom_n paul_n use_v the_o same_o speech_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 2.11_o ephes_n 2.11_o that_o the_o gentile_n which_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o promise_n be_v now_o draw_v near_o through_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o god_n because_o that_o christ_n the_o wall_n of_o separation_n be_v take_v away_o have_v reconcile_v both_o the_o jew_n &_o gentile_n unto_o the_o father_n and_o come_v he_o have_v preach_v peace_n unto_o those_o which_o be_v nigh_o at_o hand_n and_o which_o be_v a_o far_o off_o now_o we_o understande_v peter_n his_o meaning_n for_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v amplify_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n he_o do_v so_o offer_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o jew_n that_o he_o say_v the_o gentile_n be_v also_o partaker_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o he_o use_v this_o word_n call_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v like_a as_o god_n have_v gather_v you_o together_o into_o one_o peculiar_a people_n heretofore_o by_o his_o voice_n so_o the_o same_o voice_n shall_v sound_v every_o where_n that_o those_o which_o be_v a_o far_o off_o may_v come_v and_o join_v themselves_o unto_o you_o when_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v by_o a_o new_a proclamation_n 40_o and_o with_o many_o other_o word_n do_v he_o testify_v and_o exhort_v say_v be_v you_o save_v from_o this_o froward_a generation_n 41_o those_o therefore_o which_o willing_o embrace_v his_o word_n be_v
baptize_v and_o there_o be_v add_v that_o day_n about_o three_o thousand_o soul_n 42_o and_o they_o continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o in_o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n 40_o and_o with_o many_o although_o in_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v have_v hitherto_o luke_n do_v not_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o saint_n peter_n but_o do_v only_o brief_o touch_v the_o chief_a point_n notwithstanding_o he_o tell_v we_o again_o in_o this_o place_n that_o peter_n do_v not_o use_v doctrine_n only_o but_o do_v add_v the_o prick_v of_o exhortation_n and_o he_o express_v plain_o that_o he_o stand_v much_o hereupon_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v exhort_v and_o beseech_v he_o note_v therein_o his_o earnestness_n for_o it_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a a_o matter_n for_o they_o by_o and_o by_o to_o take_v their_o leave_n of_o those_o error_n wherewith_o they_o be_v of_o late_o infect_v and_o to_o shake_v off_o the_o government_n of_o the_o priest_n whereunto_o they_o be_v accustom_v therefore_o it_o stand_v he_o upon_o to_o pull_v they_o violent_o out_o of_o this_o mire_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o they_o shall_v beware_v of_o that_o froward_a generation_n for_o they_o can_v not_o be_v christ_n unless_o they_o will_v depart_v from_o his_o profess_a enemy_n the_o priest_n and_o scribe_n be_v then_o in_o great_a authority_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v cover_v themselves_o under_o the_o visure_n of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v deceive_v the_o simple_a this_o do_v hinder_v and_o keep_v back_o a_o great_a many_o from_o come_v to_o christ_n also_o some_o may_v waver_v &_o other_o some_o may_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o right_a faith_n therefore_o peter_n plain_o declare_v that_o they_o be_v a_o froward_a generation_n howsoever_o they_o make_v boast_v of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o cause_n he_o command_v his_o hearer_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o they_o lest_o they_o entangle_v themselves_o in_o their_o wicked_a and_o pestiferous_a fellowship_n whereas_o he_o say_v be_v you_o save_v he_o signify_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v sure_o perish_v if_o they_o couple_v themselves_o with_o such_o a_o plague_n and_o sure_o experience_n do_v teach_v we_o how_o miserable_o those_o man_n be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o who_o can_v discern_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o pastor_n from_o the_o voice_n of_o other_o man_n and_o again_o what_o a_o hindrance_n softness_n and_o sluggisheesse_n be_v to_o a_o great_a many_o while_o they_o desire_v to_o stand_v in_o a_o doubt_n therefore_o he_o command_v they_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o wicked_a if_o they_o will_v be_v save_v and_o this_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v for_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v christ_n set_v before_o we_o unless_o we_o be_v also_o teach_v to_o fly_v those_o thing_n which_o do_v lead_v we_o away_o from_o he_o and_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a shepherd_n to_o defend_v his_o sheep_n from_o the_o wolf_n so_o at_o this_o day_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v keep_v the_o people_n in_o the_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o be_v ever_o now_o and_o then_o enforce_v to_o show_v and_o testify_v how_o much_o papistry_n differ_v from_o christianity_n and_o what_o a_o hurtful_a plague_n it_o be_v to_o be_v yoke_v with_o the_o unfaithful_a enemy_n of_o christ_n neither_o ought_v peter_n to_o be_v accuse_v of_o rail_v because_o he_o call_v the_o reverend_a father_n who_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o hand_n at_o that_o day_n a_o froward_a generation_n for_o those_o danger_n which_o may_v draw_v the_o soul_n unto_o destruction_n be_v to_o be_v show_v by_o their_o name_n for_o man_n will_v not_o beware_v of_o poison_n unless_o they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v poison_n 41_o they_o therefore_o which_o willing_o luke_n show_v more_o plain_o how_o fruitful_a this_o one_o sermon_n which_o peter_n make_v be_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o gain_v unto_o christ_n about_o three_o thousand_o man_n and_o therewithal_o he_o declare_v the_o nature_n and_o force_n of_o faith_n when_o he_o say_v that_o with_o a_o prompt_a and_o ready_a mind_n they_o embrace_v his_o word_n therefore_o faith_n must_v begin_v with_o this_o readiness_n and_o willing_a desire_n to_o obey_v but_o because_o many_o do_v show_v themselves_o at_o the_o first_o very_o willing_a who_o afterward_o have_v in_o themselves_o no_o constancy_n or_o continuance_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o it_o be_v some_o sudden_a pang_n which_o by_o and_o by_o fall_v away_o luke_n do_v also_o afterward_o commend_v their_o constancy_n who_o as_o he_o say_v do_v willing_o embrace_v this_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o they_o be_v join_v unto_o the_o disciple_n or_o that_o they_o be_v engraft_v into_o the_o same_o body_n and_o that_o they_o continue_v in_o their_o doctrine_n therefore_o we_o must_v neither_o be_v slow_a to_o obey_v ne_o yet_o swift_a to_o leap_v back_o but_o we_o must_v stick_v fast_o and_o stand_v stout_o to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o we_o do_v forthwith_o without_o any_o tarriance_n embrace_v furthermore_o this_o example_n ought_v to_o make_v we_o not_o a_o little_a ashamed_a for_o whereas_o there_o be_v a_o great_a multitude_n convert_v unto_o christ_n with_o one_o sermon_n a_o hundred_o sermon_n can_v scarce_o move_v a_o few_o of_o we_o and_o whereas_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o continue_v there_o be_v scarce_o one_o among_o ten_o that_o do_v show_v even_o a_o mean_a desire_n to_o profit_n and_o go_v forward_o yea_o rather_o the_o more_o part_n do_v soon_o loath_a our_o doctrine_n woe_n be_v therefore_o to_o the_o sluggishness_n and_o lightness_n of_o the_o world_n in_o their_o doctrine_n luke_n do_v not_o only_o commend_v in_o they_o the_o constancy_n of_o faith_n or_o of_o godliness_n but_o he_o say_v also_o that_o they_o do_v constant_o give_v themselves_o to_o those_o exercise_n which_o serve_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o study_v continual_o to_o profit_n by_o hear_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o give_v themselves_o much_o to_o prayer_n that_o they_o do_v use_v fellowship_n and_o break_n of_o bread_n very_o much_o as_o touch_v prayer_n and_o doctrine_n the_o sense_n be_v plain_a communication_n or_o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n may_v be_v take_v diverse_o some_o think_v that_o break_n of_o bread_n do_v signify_v the_o lord_n supper_n othersome_a do_v think_v that_o it_o signify_v alm_n othersome_a that_o the_o faithful_a do_v banquet_n together_o among_o themselves_o some_o do_v think_v that_o coinonia_fw-la do_v signify_v the_o celebrate_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n but_o i_o do_v rather_o agree_v to_o those_o other_o who_o think_v that_o the_o same_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o break_n of_o bread_n for_o coinonia_fw-la unless_o it_o have_v somewhat_o add_v unto_o it_o be_v never_o find_v in_o this_o sense_n therefore_o i_o do_v rather_o refer_v it_o unto_o mutual_a society_n and_o fellowship_n unto_o alm_n and_o unto_o other_o duty_n of_o brotherly_a fellowship_n and_o my_o reason_n why_o i_o will_v rather_o have_v break_v of_o bread_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o this_o place_n be_v this_o because_o luke_n do_v reckon_v up_o those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o public_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v contain_v yea_o he_o express_v in_o this_o place_n four_o mark_n whereby_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a face_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v judge_v do_v we_o then_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o image_n thereof_o be_v lively_o depaint_v and_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o this_o place_n and_o he_o begin_v with_o doctrine_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v he_o name_v all_o manner_n of_o doctrine_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v that_o which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v deliver_v by_o their_o hand_n therefore_o wheresoever_o the_o pure_a voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v sound_a where_o man_n continue_v in_o the_o profession_n thereof_o where_o they_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o hear_v the_o same_o ordinary_o that_o they_o may_v profit_v without_o all_o doubt_n there_o be_v the_o church_n hereby_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v how_o frivolous_a the_o boast_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v while_o that_o they_o careless_o thunder_v out_o with_o full_a mouth_n the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v most_o filthy_o corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o if_o it_o be_v due_o examine_v we_o shall_v find_v no_o sound_a part_n at_o all_o and_o in_o most_o point_n they_o do_v as_o much_o dissent_n from_o the_o same_o and_o have_v as_o little_a agreement_n therewith_o as_o light_v with_o darkness_n the_o rule_n of_o worship_v god_n which_o
jacob_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v declare_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o lead_v they_o away_o from_o the_o old_a and_o ancient_a worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n furthermore_o god_n have_v give_v himself_o this_o title_n that_o he_o may_v dissever_v and_o distinguish_v himself_o by_o some_o mark_n from_o idol_n for_o we_o do_v not_o comprehend_v god_n in_o his_o essence_n which_o can_v be_v see_v and_o which_o be_v infinite_a therefore_o he_o use_v such_o mean_n as_o agree_v best_a with_o we_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o the_o turk_n do_v boast_v that_o they_o do_v worship_n god_n which_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n but_o before_o they_o come_v at_o heaven_n they_o vanish_v away_o therefore_o to_o the_o end_n god_n may_v keep_v his_o people_n from_o vain_a and_o erroneous_a invention_n he_o keep_v they_o in_o his_o covenant_n therefore_o when_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n 30.12_o deut._n 30.12_o he_o do_v brief_o teach_v that_o which_o moses_n declare_v more_o at_o large_a say_v not_o who_o shall_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n who_o shall_v go_v down_o into_o the_o depth_n or_o who_o shall_v sail_v over_o the_o sea_n the_o word_n be_v nigh_o etc._n etc._n furthermore_o as_o amongst_o the_o jew_n the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n be_v in_o high_a estimation_n so_o peter_n do_v close_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o be_v no_o better_a than_o other_o man_n without_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o at_o this_o day_n god_n will_v be_v know_v by_o a_o more_o evident_a mark_n yet_o when_o as_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v we_o now_o return_v unto_o peter_n he_o say_v that_o he_o bring_v in_o no_o new_a religion_n that_o he_o may_v draw_v away_o the_o people_n from_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n for_o if_o he_o shall_v attempt_v this_o god_n have_v forbid_v they_o to_o hear_v he_o 3.11_o deut._n 13.3_o 1._o cor._n 3.11_o deut._n 13._o like_a as_o paul_n teach_v that_o we_o must_v retain_v one_o foundation_n in_o the_o spiritual_a building_n because_o so_o soon_o as_o we_o depart_v even_o but_o a_o little_a from_o christ_n there_o can_v nothing_o ensue_v but_o ruin_n and_o hereby_o also_o we_o may_v easy_o discern_v in_o what_o sense_n he_o call_v god_n the_o god_n of_o the_o father_n for_o neither_o do_v he_o take_v this_o for_o a_o general_a maxim_n that_o what_o manner_n worship_v soever_o the_o father_n have_v we_o must_v continue_v the_o same_o as_o the_o papist_n do_v foolish_o vaunt_v that_o they_o do_v follow_v the_o manner_n of_o worship_v which_o be_v use_v amongst_o the_o father_n for_o peter_n do_v express_o reckon_v uppe_o abraham_n isaach_n and_o jacob_n from_o who_o true_a religion_n do_v proceed_v and_o by_o who_o it_o be_v divine_o deliver_v whereby_o he_o do_v signify_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o must_v not_o follow_v all_o father_n whereof_o many_o do_v grow_v out_o of_o kind_n and_o become_v altogether_o unlike_a to_o the_o first_o father_n that_o this_o honour_n be_v due_a to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o that_o other_o be_v to_o be_v refuse_v 20.18_o eze._n 20.18_o which_o thing_n the_o prophet_n do_v also_o beat_v in_o every_o where_o walk_v not_o in_o the_o way_n of_o your_o father_n etc._n etc._n who_o you_o have_v deliver_v he_o mingle_v with_o doctrine_n a_o most_o sharp_a chide_n according_a as_o the_o matter_n do_v require_v for_o it_o be_v unpossible_a to_o bring_v they_o true_o unto_o god_n unless_o they_o be_v first_o bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o sin_n neither_o do_v he_o only_o light_o touch_v they_o but_o he_o do_v very_o grave_o show_v they_o the_o horriblenesse_n of_o that_o offence_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v to_o this_o end_n tend_v that_o comparison_n that_o they_o deliver_v he_o to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n who_o pilate_n will_v have_v loose_v and_o again_o that_o pardon_v a_o murderer_n they_o put_v the_o prince_n of_o life_n to_o death_n that_o they_o do_v reject_v the_o just_a &_o holy_a man_n must_v be_v so_o strike_v that_o be_v bring_v to_o know_v their_o giltines_n they_o may_v earnest_o fly_v unto_o the_o remedy_n of_o pardon_n such_o vehemency_n and_o earnestness_n do_v peter_n also_o use_v in_o his_o first_o sermon_n he_o say_v afterward_o that_o god_n raise_v he_o uppe_o whereby_o they_o ought_v to_o know_v that_o in_o put_v christ_n to_o death_n they_o do_v strive_v against_o god_n although_o peter_n have_v respect_n unto_o a_o high_a thing_n to_o wit_n that_o their_o cruelty_n do_v no_o whit_n impair_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n because_o god_n have_v nevertheless_o restore_v he_o to_o life_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n in_o office_n be_v witness_n of_o the_o resurrection_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o see_v it_o with_o their_o eye_n 24.48_o luk._n 24.48_o therefore_o this_o be_v refer_v not_o only_o unto_o the_o apostolical_a function_n but_o because_o they_o see_v christ_n with_o their_o eye_n after_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a although_o i_o do_v also_o grant_v that_o this_o second_o thing_n be_v comprehend_v under_o these_o word_n because_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o peter_n do_v make_v mention_n of_o that_o function_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o he_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v purchase_v the_o great_a authority_n 16_o and_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o name_n when_o as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o name_n and_o his_o name_n and_o again_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v by_o he_o this_o repetition_n be_v a_o token_n of_o a_o fervent_a affection_n for_o because_o he_o be_v whole_o give_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n he_o beat_v in_o the_o same_o thing_n oftentimes_o moreover_o we_o see_v that_o when_o paul_n be_v occupy_v about_o the_o show_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n he_o think_v that_o he_o have_v never_o speak_v enough_o touch_v the_o same_o and_o sure_o such_o be_v the_o wicked_a nature_n of_o man_n that_o christ_n can_v be_v so_o high_o extol_v &_o so_o preach_v that_o his_o honour_n can_v remain_v sound_o unto_o he_o let_v we_o therefore_o remember_v that_o peter_n do_v use_v such_o variety_n and_o plenty_n of_o word_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v stay_v we_o in_o christ_n as_o touch_v the_o phrase_n when_o as_o he_o say_v his_o name_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o name_n have_v strengthen_v he_o show_v both_o the_o cause_n &_o the_o manner_n the_o power_n of_o christ_n have_v heal_v the_o cripple_n but_o by_o faith_n when_o as_o he_o say_v the_o faith_n which_o be_v by_o he_o by_o this_o word_n he_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o our_o faith_n can_v arise_v up_o unto_o god_n unless_o it_o be_v ground_v in_o christ_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o this_o our_o faith_n do_v look_v unto_o christ_n and_o stay_v itself_o upon_o he_o and_o so_o he_o show_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o right_a faith_n in_o god_n when_o we_o pass_v over_o this_o mean_a furthermore_o as_o he_o say_v before_o that_o he_o and_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v witness_n of_o christ_n life_n so_o he_o do_v now_o declare_v that_o this_o life_n be_v manifest_o prove_v unto_o the_o jew_n by_o a_o sign_n or_o effect_n because_o they_o see_v the_o cripple_n heal_v in_o who_o they_o have_v a_o excellent_a and_o evident_a token_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n of_o christ_n and_o when_o as_o in_o this_o last_o member_n he_o make_v faith_n the_o cause_n of_o this_o soundness_n he_o lay_v unthankfulness_n to_o their_o charge_n by_o the_o way_n unless_o they_o give_v faith_n her_o due_a praise_n and_o although_o faith_n may_v be_v refer_v as_o well_o unto_o the_o man_n that_o be_v heal_v as_o unto_o the_o apostle_n yet_o we_o need_v not_o to_o stand_v much_o about_o this_o matter_n because_o the_o power_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o synecdoche_n 17_o and_o now_o brethren_n i_o know_v that_o through_o ignorance_n you_o do_v it_o as_o do_v also_o your_o ruler_n 18_o and_o god_n have_v fulfil_v all_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n that_o christ_n shall_v suffer_v 19_o repent_v therefore_o and_o be_v convert_v that_o your_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v 20_o when_o the_o time_n of_o refresh_a shall_v come_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o shall_v send_v he_o that_o be_v represent_v be_v or_o set_v before_o your_o eye_n &_o represent_v preach_v before_o jesus_n christ_n 21_o who_o heaven_n must_v contain_v until_o the_o time_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v restore_v which_o he_o have_v speak_v by_o
be_v mean_v by_o the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n therefore_o this_o be_v david_n comfort_n that_o howsoever_o the_o captain_n have_v reject_v he_o so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o grant_v he_o even_o the_o base_a place_n yet_o do_v not_o their_o wicked_a and_o ungodlie_a endeavour_n hinder_v he_o from_o be_v extol_v by_o god_n unto_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o honour_n but_o that_o be_v shadow_v in_o david_n which_o god_n will_v have_v perfect_o express_v in_o the_o messiah_n therefore_o peter_n deal_v very_o apt_o when_o as_o he_o cit_v this_o testimony_n as_o be_v speak_v before_o of_o christ_n as_o they_o know_v full_a well_o that_o it_o do_v agree_v proper_o to_o he_o now_o we_o know_v to_o what_o end_n peter_n do_v cite_v the_o psalm_n to_o wit_n lest_o the_o elder_n and_o priest_n be_v unaduised_o puff_v up_o with_o their_o honour_n shall_v take_v to_o themselves_o authority_n and_o liberty_n to_o allow_v or_o disallow_v whatsoever_o they_o will_v for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o stone_n refuse_v by_o the_o chief_a builder_n be_v place_v by_o god_n own_o hand_n in_o the_o chief_a place_n that_o it_o may_v support_v the_o whole_a house_n furthermore_o this_o happen_v not_o once_o only_o but_o it_o must_v be_v fulfil_v daily_o at_o least_o it_o must_v seem_v no_o new_a thing_n if_o the_o chief_a builder_n do_v even_o now_o also_o reject_v christ_n whereby_o the_o vain_a boast_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v plain_o refute_v who_o make_v his_o boast_n of_o the_o bare_a title_n that_o he_o may_v usurp_v whatsoever_o be_v christ_n admit_v we_o grant_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o horn_a beast_n that_o which_o they_o desire_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v ordinary_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n they_o can_v go_v no_o far_o at_o length_n than_o to_o be_v call_v chief_a builder_n with_o annas_n and_o caiphas_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a what_o account_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v of_o this_o title_n which_o they_o think_v be_v sufficient_a to_o mix_v heaven_n &_o earth_n together_o now_o let_v we_o gather_v out_o of_o this_o place_n some_o thing_n which_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v call_v master_n builder_n who_o have_v government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o name_n itself_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o duty_n therefore_o let_v they_o give_v themselves_o whole_o to_o the_o build_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o because_o all_o man_n do_v not_o their_o duty_n faithful_o as_o they_o ought_v let_v they_o see_v what_o be_v the_o best_a manner_n of_o build_v aright_o to_o wit_n let_v they_o retain_v christ_n for_o the_o foundation_n that_o do_v let_v they_o not_o mix_v straw_n and_o stubble_n in_o this_o build_n but_o let_v they_o make_v the_o whole_a build_n of_o pure_a doctrine_n 3.12_o 1._o cor._n 3.12_o as_o paul_n teach_v in_o 1._o cor._n 3._o whereas_o god_n be_v say_v to_o have_v extol_v christ_n who_o be_v reject_v of_o the_o builder_n this_o aught_o to_o comfort_v we_o when_o as_o we_o see_v even_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o at_o least_o those_o which_o be_v in_o great_a honour_n wicked_o rebel_v against_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v banish_v he_o for_o we_o may_v safe_o set_v light_n by_o those_o visure_n which_o they_o object_n against_o we_o so_o that_o we_o need_v not_o fear_v to_o give_v christ_n that_o honour_n which_o god_n do_v give_v to_o he_o but_o if_o he_o wink_v for_o a_o time_n yet_o do_v he_o laugh_v at_o the_o boldness_n of_o his_o enemy_n from_o on_o high_a while_o they_o rage_n &_o fret_v upon_o earth_n furthermore_o though_o their_o conspiracy_n be_v strong_a and_o guard_v with_o all_o aide_n yet_o must_v we_o always_o assure_v ourselves_o of_o this_o that_o christ_n his_o honour_n shall_v remain_v safe_a and_o sound_a and_o let_v the_o fruit_n of_o this_o confidence_n ensue_v also_o that_o we_o be_v valiant_a and_o without_o fear_n in_o maintain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n whereof_o god_n will_v be_v a_o invincible_a defender_n as_o he_o himself_o affirm_v we_o have_v already_o speak_v of_o peter_n his_o constancy_n in_o that_o one_o simple_a man_n have_v such_o envious_a judge_n and_o yet_o have_v but_o one_o partner_n in_o the_o present_a danger_n show_v no_o token_n at_o all_o of_o fear_n but_o do_v free_o confess_v in_o that_o rage_a and_o furious_a company_n that_o thing_n which_o he_o know_v will_v be_v receive_v with_o most_o contrary_a mind_n and_o whereas_o he_o sharp_o upbraid_v unto_o they_o that_o wickedness_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v we_o must_v fetch_v from_o hence_o a_o rule_n of_o speech_n when_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o open_a enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n for_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o two_o fault_n on_o this_o behalf_n that_o we_o seem_v not_o to_o flatter_v by_o keep_v silence_n or_o wink_n for_o that_o be_v treacherous_a silence_n whereby_o the_o truth_n shall_v be_v betray_v again_o that_o we_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o with_o wantonness_n or_o immoderate_a heat_n as_o man_n mind_n do_v oftentimes_o break_v out_o more_o than_o they_o ought_v in_o contention_n therefore_o let_v we_o use_v gravity_n in_o this_o point_n yet_o such_o as_o be_v moderate_a let_v we_o chide_v free_o yet_o without_o all_o heat_n of_o rail_v we_o see_v that_o peter_n do_v observe_v this_o order_n for_o at_o the_o first_o he_o give_v a_o honourable_a title_n when_o he_o be_v once_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n he_o inveigh_v sharp_o against_o they_o neither_o can_v such_o ungodliness_n as_o they_o be_v be_v conceal_v those_o which_o shall_v follow_v this_o example_n shall_v not_o only_o have_v peter_n to_o be_v their_o guide_n but_o also_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n particular_a or_o more_o particular_a 12_o neither_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o he_o pass_v from_o the_o species_n unto_o the_o general_a the_o or_o general_a genus_fw-la and_o he_o go_v from_o the_o corporal_a benefit_n unto_o perfect_a health_n and_o assure_o christ_n have_v show_v this_o one_o token_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o only_a author_n of_o life_n we_o must_v consider_v this_o in_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o salvation_n and_o he_o mean_v to_o prick_v and_o sting_v the_o priest_n with_o this_o sentence_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v salvation_n in_o none_o other_o save_v only_o in_o christ_n who_o they_o go_v about_o to_o put_v quit_v out_o of_o remembrance_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o be_v twice_o damn_v who_o do_v not_o only_o refuse_v the_o salvation_n offer_v they_o by_o god_n but_o endeavour_n to_o bring_v the_o same_o to_o naught_o and_o do_v take_v from_o all_o the_o people_n the_o fruit_n and_o use_v thereof_o and_o although_o he_o seem_v to_o speak_v unto_o deaf_a man_n yet_o do_v he_o preach_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n if_o peradventure_o some_o can_v abide_v to_o hear_v if_o not_o that_o they_o may_v at_o least_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o excuse_n by_o this_o testimony_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o other_o name_n he_o expound_v the_o sentence_n next_o go_v before_o salvation_n say_v he_o be_v in_o christ_n alone_o because_o god_n have_v decree_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o for_o by_o name_n he_o mean_v the_o cause_n or_o mean_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v for_o as_o much_o as_o salvation_n be_v in_o god_n power_n only_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o same_o to_o be_v common_a to_o we_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n then_o if_o we_o ask_v it_o of_o christ_n alone_o whereas_o he_o say_v under_o heaven_n they_o do_v common_o refer_v it_o unto_o creature_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o force_n and_o power_n to_o save_v be_v give_v to_o christ_n alone_o notwithstanding_o i_o do_v rather_o think_v that_o this_o be_v add_v because_o man_n can_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n that_o they_o may_v come_v unto_o god_n therefore_o see_v we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o god_n do_v not_o only_o invite_v we_o unto_o himself_o but_o that_o reach_v out_o his_o hand_n he_o offer_v salvation_n unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v enjoy_v the_o same_o peter_n teach_v in_o this_o place_n that_o he_o have_v do_v that_o in_o christ_n because_o he_o come_v down_o into_o the_o earth_n for_o this_o cause_n 4.10_o ephe._n 4.10_o that_o he_o may_v bring_v salvation_n with_o he_o neither_o be_v that_o contrary_a to_o this_o doctrine_n that_o christ_n be_v ascend_v above_o all_o heaven_n for_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n once_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o continual_a pledge_n of_o our_o adoption_n he_o have_v reconcile_v the_o father_n to_o we_o
obey_v god_n so_o that_o we_o must_v examine_v all_o their_o tradition_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o must_v obey_v prince_n and_o other_o which_o be_v in_o authority_n yet_o so_o that_o they_o rob_v not_o god_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a king_n father_n and_o lord_n of_o his_o right_n and_o authority_n if_o we_o must_v observe_v such_o modesty_n in_o politic_a government_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v of_o far_o more_o force_n in_o the_o spiritual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o lest_o according_a to_o their_o wont_a pride_n they_o think_v that_o their_o authority_n be_v abate_v when_o god_n be_v extol_v above_o they_o peter_n draw_v they_o away_o from_o such_o pleasant_a flatter_a of_o themselves_o tell_v they_o that_o this_o matter_n must_v be_v determine_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n for_o he_o say_v plain_o before_o god_n because_o howsoever_o man_n be_v blind_v yet_o will_v god_n never_o suffer_v any_o man_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o he_o and_o sure_o the_o spirit_n do_v put_v this_o answer_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o only_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v repress_v the_o furiousness_n of_o the_o enemy_n but_o that_o he_o may_v also_o teach_v we_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v so_o often_o as_o man_n become_v so_o proud_a that_o have_v shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o god_n they_o will_v lay_v their_o own_o yoke_n upon_o us._n therefore_o let_v we_o then_o remember_v this_o holy_a authority_n of_o god_n which_o be_v able_a to_o drive_v away_o the_o vain_a smoke_n of_o all_o man_n excellency_n 20_o for_o we_o can_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v find_v out_o by_o hear_v and_o see_v may_z yea_o ought_v to_o be_v conceal_v when_o as_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o redeem_n of_o peace_n for_o this_o be_v a_o point_n of_o discourtesy_n and_o of_o wicked_a stubborness_n to_o move_v and_o raise_v a_o tumult_n about_o unnecessary_a matter_n but_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o speak_v general_o when_o as_o they_o say_v they_o can_v but_o speak_v for_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v now_o in_o hand_n wherein_o consist_v both_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n it_o be_v a_o unmeete_a thing_n and_o sacrilegious_a wickedness_n that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v suppress_v by_o prohibition_n and_o menacing_n of_o man_n for_o god_n command_v that_o his_o gospel_n be_v preach_v especial_o sythence_o they_o do_v know_v that_o they_o be_v choose_v to_o be_v witness_n &_o preacher_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o god_n have_v open_v their_o mouth_n therefore_o whosoever_o put_v they_o to_o silence_n he_o indevore_v so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o abolish_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o for_o do_v the_o salvation_n of_o man_n and_o if_o so_o be_v it_o a_o prohibition_n so_o wicked_a do_v stop_v our_o mouth_n woe_n be_v to_o our_o sluggishness_n now_o let_v all_o man_n see_v what_o confession_n god_n require_v at_o their_o hand_n lest_o when_o they_o keep_v silence_n because_o of_o man_n they_o hear_v a_o fearful_a voice_n proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n whereby_o their_o unfaithfulnes_n shall_v be_v condemn_v and_o as_o for_o those_o which_o be_v call_v unto_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v let_v they_o be_v terrify_v with_o no_o threaten_n of_o man_n with_o no_o colour_n of_o authority_n but_o let_v they_o execute_v that_o office_n which_o they_o know_v be_v enjoin_v they_o by_o god_n 9_o 1._o cor._n 9_o woe_n be_v unto_o i_o say_v paul_n if_o i_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n because_o the_o function_n be_v commit_v unto_o i_o neither_o ought_v we_o only_o to_o set_v this_o commandment_n of_o god_n against_o the_o tyrannous_a commandment_n of_o man_n but_o also_o against_o all_o let_n which_o satan_n do_v oftentimes_o thrust_v in_o to_o break_v off_o and_o hinder_v the_o course_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o we_o have_v need_n of_o a_o strong_a buckler_n to_o bear_v off_o such_o sore_a assault_n which_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n do_v feel_v but_o howsoever_o we_o speed_v this_o be_v a_o brazen_a wall_n that_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v please_v god_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o can_v for_o no_o cause_n be_v suppress_v 21_o and_o when_o they_o have_v threaten_v they_o and_o here_o be_v the_o end_n of_o sedition_n that_o the_o wicked_a cease_v not_o to_o breathe_v out_o their_o fury_n yet_o be_v they_o bridle_v by_o the_o secret_a power_n of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o do_v any_o hurt_n how_o be_v it_o that_o be_v content_a with_o threaten_n they_o do_v not_o also_o rage_n against_o their_o body_n save_v only_o because_o the_o power_n of_o god_n do_v bind_v they_o as_o a_o chain_n not_o that_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n do_v prevail_v with_o they_o for_o it_o be_v the_o regard_n of_o the_o people_n alone_o which_o hinder_v they_o but_o the_o lord_n do_v bind_v they_o with_o his_o bond_n though_o they_o be_v ignorant_a thereof_o luke_n commend_v unto_o we_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o preserve_v his_o child_n and_o though_o it_o be_v hide_v from_o the_o wicked_a yet_o we_o may_v behold_v the_o same_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n furthermore_o the_o wonder_a counsel_n of_o god_n do_v show_v itself_o here_o in_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n be_v further_v by_o those_o which_o be_v his_o most_o deadly_a enemy_n for_o whereas_o the_o priest_n do_v assemble_v themselves_o together_o it_o be_v not_o do_v without_o great_a rumour_n all_o man_n wait_v for_o some_o rare_a and_o singular_a event_n the_o apostle_n depart_v be_v let_v loose_a and_o acquit_v therefore_o the_o adversary_n be_v not_o only_o vanquish_v but_o they_o confirm_v the_o gospel_n against_o their_o will_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o we_o to_o mark_v again_o that_o the_o faithful_a do_v so_o get_v the_o victory_n that_o they_o be_v always_o humble_v under_o the_o cross_n for_o they_o be_v threaten_v again_o and_o strait_o charge_v that_o they_o teach_v not_o henceforth_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n therefore_o they_o do_v not_o so_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n that_o they_o do_v not_o triumph_v save_v only_o under_o the_o reproach_n of_o the_o cross_n whereas_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o do_v all_o glorify_v god_n he_o note_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o miracle_n now_o the_o second_o time_n although_o it_o may_v be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o bring_v unto_o the_o perfect_a end_n for_o that_o man_n which_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n &_o do_v not_o come_v unto_o christ_n neither_o have_v his_o faith_n confirm_v by_o the_o miracle_n he_o stay_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o midway_n yet_o this_o be_v some_o thing_n though_o not_o all_o that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v acknowledge_v in_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o man_n so_o that_o the_o adversary_n be_v ashamed_a do_v cease_v off_o from_o their_o fury_n or_o at_o least_o give_v back_o a_o little_a 23_o furthermore_n when_o they_o be_v let_v go_v it_o shall_v appear_v by_o and_o by_o to_o what_o end_n they_o declare_v to_o the_o other_o disciple_n what_o thing_n have_v befall_v they_o to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o embolden_a and_o encourage_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n hereafter_o second_o that_o they_o may_v arm_v themselves_o with_o prayer_n against_o the_o furious_a threaten_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o thus_o must_v the_o child_n of_o god_n do_v one_o must_v prick_v forward_o another_o and_o they_o must_v join_v hand_n in_o hand_n that_o they_o may_v vanquish_v the_o common_a adversary_n fight_v under_o christ_n banner_n they_o consider_v with_o themselves_o what_o danger_n hang_v over_o their_o head_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o ready_a to_o enter_v the_o same_o although_o they_o see_v their_o enemy_n press_v sore_o upon_o they_o yet_o lest_o it_o shall_v grieve_v they_o to_o have_v a_o new_a combat_n ever_o now_o and_o then_o they_o assure_v themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v invincible_a through_o the_o same_o power_n of_o god_n whereby_o they_o get_v the_o victory_n before_o and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v although_o luke_n make_v no_o mention_n thereof_o that_o the_o apostle_n be_v content_v with_o their_o former_a answer_n do_v not_o contend_v with_o those_o fury_n &_o yet_o we_o must_v persuade_v ourselves_o that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o forgetful_a of_o their_o former_a constancy_n that_o they_o do_v submit_v themselves_o unto_o their_o ungodly_a decree_n like_o slave_n 24_o and_o when_o they_o have_v hear_v it_o they_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n unto_o god_n with_o one_o accord_n and_o say_v lord_n thou_o be_v god_n which_o have_v make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o sea_n and_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v therein_o
they_o profit_v yet_o more_o be_v admonish_v by_o his_o judgement_n therefore_o by_o all_o those_o punishment_n which_o we_o read_v have_v be_v lay_v upon_o man_n in_o time_n past_a and_o do_v daily_o see_v to_o be_v lay_v upon_o they_o do_v god_n call_v we_o back_o from_o the_o enticement_n and_o liberty_n of_o sin_v for_o our_o flesh_n must_v be_v bridle_v ever_o now_o and_o then_o after_o this_o sort_n because_o one_o bridle_n will_v scarce_o serve_v the_o turn_n there_o be_v another_o manner_n fear_v in_o the_o stranger_n yet_o no_o such_o fear_n as_o bring_v they_o unto_o the_o sincere_a worship_n of_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v such_o as_o cause_v they_o to_o give_v the_o glory_n to_o god_n 12_o and_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v do_v many_o sign_n and_o wonder_n among_o the_o people_n and_o they_o be_v all_o with_o one_o accord_n in_o the_o porch_n of_o solomon_n 13_o and_o of_o the_o other_o dare_v no_o man_n join_v himself_o to_o they_o but_o the_o people_n magnify_v they_o 14_o and_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n grow_v more_o and_o more_o 15_o so_o that_o they_o bring_v forth_o the_o sick_a into_o the_o street_n and_o lay_v they_o in_o bed_n and_o couch_n that_o at_o the_o least_o way_n the_o shadow_n of_o peter_n as_o he_o come_v may_v shadow_v some_o of_o they_o 16_o and_o a_o multitude_n of_o the_o next_o city_n come_v together_o to_o jerusalem_n bring_v their_o sick_a and_o those_o which_o be_v vex_v with_o unclean_a spirit_n which_o be_v all_o heal_v 12_o he_o return_v to_o miracle_n of_o another_o sort_n which_o be_v more_o proper_a to_o the_o gospel_n to_o wit_n whereby_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o declare_v his_o power_n but_o also_o his_o goodness_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v allure_v man_n unto_o himself_o with_o the_o sweetness_n of_o his_o grace_n for_o he_o come_v to_o save_v the_o world_n and_o not_o to_o condemn_v it_o therefore_o whereas_o the_o sick_a be_v heal_v and_o other_o be_v deliver_v from_o devil_n these_o benefit_n do_v to_o the_o body_n do_v represent_v the_o spiritual_a grace_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o they_o agree_v with_o his_o natural_a office_n that_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v that_o fearful_a sign_n which_o be_v show_v in_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n come_v to_o pass_v exraordinarilie_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v increase_v by_o miracle_n because_o they_o serve_v for_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v say_v to_o prepare_v some_o to_o confirm_v other_o some_o whereby_o that_o be_v prove_v again_o which_o i_o have_v say_v else_o where_o that_o miracle_n must_v never_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o word_n luke_n show_v the_o multitude_n of_o miracle_n by_o this_o in_o that_o the_o sick_a be_v bring_v forth_o every_o where_n that_o they_o may_v be_v heal_v for_o god_n mean_v thus_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n especial_o at_o the_o beginning_n that_o he_o may_v for_o a_o certainty_n testify_v to_o the_o jew_n that_o that_o restore_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v present_a which_o be_v so_o often_o promise_v and_o in_o which_o all_o their_o hope_n be_v repose_v as_o they_o themselves_o do_v pretend_v and_o make_v semblance_n it_o be_v welknowne_a that_o couches_n be_v certain_a little_a bed_n in_o which_o the_o man_n of_o old_a be_v wont_v to_o rest_v at_o noon_n because_o they_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o carry_v they_o out_o they_o lay_v the_o sick_a in_o they_o and_o they_o be_v all_o with_o one_o accord_n he_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o meet_v together_o at_o certain_a hour_n not_o only_o for_o doctrine_n and_o prayer_n sake_n but_o that_o they_o may_v win_v other_o unto_o the_o lord_n as_o occasion_n be_v give_v for_o every_o man_n live_v at_o home_n at_o his_o own_o house_n but_o they_o have_v their_o meeting_n there_o as_o assure_o no_o body_n of_o the_o church_n can_v otherwise_o continue_v for_o if_o every_o man_n will_v be_v his_o own_o teacher_n and_o pray_v apart_o by_o himself_o and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o meeting_n &_o assembly_n how_o excellentlie_o so_o ever_o the_o church_n be_v order_v and_o appoint_v yet_o must_v it_o needs_o decay_n and_o come_v to_o nought_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v all_o of_o one_o mind_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o they_o do_v all_o keep_v that_o order_n willing_o that_o no_o man_n be_v so_o disorder_v as_o to_o keep_v himself_o at_o home_n neglect_v the_o public_a assembly_n wherein_o they_o show_v a_o token_n not_o only_o of_o modesty_n but_o also_o of_o constancy_n for_o they_o can_v not_o do_v this_o without_o danger_n see_v the_o place_n be_v so_o famous_a for_o which_o cause_n the_o agreement_n of_o they_o all_o to_o put_v themselves_o in_o hazard_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o worthy_a of_o commendation_n 13_o and_o of_o other_o dare_v not_o man_n this_o be_v the_o second_o fruit_n of_o the_o miracle_n in_o that_o those_o which_o believe_v not_o be_v convict_v with_o the_o excellent_a power_n of_o god_n dare_v not_o despise_v the_o apostle_n but_o be_v rather_o enforce_v to_o reverence_v the_o church_n yet_o that_o may_v seem_v a_o absurd_a thing_n that_o be_v terrify_v with_o miracle_n they_o fly_v from_o god_n and_o his_o people_n i_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v let_v through_o their_o own_o fault_n from_o come_v and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o god_n do_v call_v we_o unto_o himself_o by_o miracle_n therefore_o whosoever_o they_o be_v that_o go_v not_o so_o far_o as_o willing_o to_o embrace_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o shine_v in_o they_o they_o be_v let_v and_o hinder_v by_o their_o own_o perverse_a and_o evil_a conscience_n yet_o this_o be_v some_o fruit_n in_o that_o god_n wringe_v some_o fear_n out_o of_o they_o although_o luke_n do_v ascribe_v this_o not_o only_o to_o the_o miracle_n but_o rather_o comprehend_v all_o together_o which_o might_n seru●_fw-la to_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o all_o thing_n be_v so_o order_v that_o there_o shine_v there_o a_o certain_a divine_a majesty_n for_o they_o do_v no_o less_o differ_v from_o the_o other_o than_o angel_n from_o man_n for_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a secret_a majesty_n in_o holy_a discipline_n and_o in_o sincere_a godliness_n which_o do_v even_o fast_o bind_v the_o wicked_a whither_o they_o will_v or_o no_o but_o we_o know_v not_o at_o this_o day_n of_o what_o sort_n the_o same_o be_v yea_o rather_o we_o cause_v ourselves_o to_o be_v despise_v together_o with_o the_o gospel_n through_o our_o profane_a liberty_n of_o evil_a live_n furthermore_o the_o punishment_n of_o ananias_n and_o his_o wife_n do_v not_o a_o little_a terrify_v the_o wicked_a and_o keep_v they_o from_o break_v in_o unaduised_o into_o the_o company_n of_o those_o man_n where_o god_n have_v show_v himself_o so_o sharp_a a_o judge_n yet_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o man_n which_o be_v indifferent_a in_o this_o place_n &_o of_o those_o which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o worst_a sort_n for_o there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n many_o at_o jerusalem_n who_o neither_o the_o reverence_n of_o sign_n neither_o yet_o of_o the_o angelical_a holiness_n of_o the_o godly_a can_v move_v therefore_o luke_n mean_v moderate_a man_n in_o who_o there_o be_v some_o feed_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n like_a as_o we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n certain_a who_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n keep_v back_o from_o submit_v their_o neck_n unto_o the_o yoke_n of_o christ_n yet_o because_o they_o smell_v out_o some_o divine_a thing_n in_o our_o doctrine_n they_o dare_v not_o despise_v the_o same_o yet_o we_o may_v see_v also_o in_o what_o deadly_n grin_v satan_n insnare_v all_o those_o which_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o fear_v to_o provide_v for_o themselves_o but_o purposely_o avoid_v those_o remedy_n which_o be_v offer_v they_o unto_o salvation_n they_o both_o see_v &_o allow_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v both_o holy_a and_o profitable_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v either_o carry_v headlong_o unto_o thing_n which_o be_v worse_a or_o else_o they_o wax_v drowsy_a in_o their_o filthiness_n 15_o the_o shadow_n of_o peter_n as_o he_o come_v the_o papist_n abuse_v this_o text_n not_o only_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v commend_v feign_v miracle_n which_o they_o say_v be_v do_v at_o the_o grave_n of_o martyr_n but_o also_o that_o they_o may_v boast_v of_o their_o relic_n why_o say_v they_o shall_v not_o the_o grave_n or_o garment_n or_o the_o touch_n of_o the_o bone_n of_o peter_n have_v power_n to_o heal_v as_o well_o as_o his_o shadow_n have_v this_o power_n i_o answer_v we_o
must_v not_o by_o and_o by_o think_v that_o that_o be_v right_a which_o luke_n say_v be_v do_v by_o ignorant_a man_n and_o those_o which_o know_v not_o the_o pure_a faith_n yet_o we_o have_v a_o more_o certain_a answer_n in_o readiness_n than_o this_o for_o the_o apostle_n be_v endue_v with_o such_o power_n for_o this_o cause_n because_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o they_o use_v this_o gift_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o serve_v to_o further_a the_o credit_n of_o the_o gospel_n yea_o god_n do_v no_o less_o show_n forth_o his_o power_n in_o their_o shadow_n than_o in_o their_o mouth_n those_o miracle_n whereof_o the_o papist_n babble_n be_v so_o unlike_a to_o these_o that_o they_o be_v rather_o altogether_o contrary_a for_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o their_o miracle_n to_o lead_v away_o the_o world_n from_o christ_n unto_o saint_n 17_o and_o the_o high_a priest_n rose_n and_o all_o that_o be_v with_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o sect_n of_o the_o sadducee_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o indignation_n with_o or_o indignation_n zeal_n 18_o and_o they_o lay_v hand_n upon_o the_o apostle_n &_o put_v they_o in_o the_o common_a prison_n 19_o but_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n open_v the_o door_n of_o the_o prison_n in_o the_o night_n season_n and_o bring_v they_o out_o say_v 20_o go_v and_o stand_v speak_v in_o the_o temple_n unto_o the_o people_n all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o life_n 21_o when_o they_o hear_v this_o early_a in_o the_o morning_n they_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n and_o teach_v but_o when_o the_o high_a priest_n come_v and_o those_o that_o be_v with_o he_o they_o call_v a_o council_n and_o all_o the_o whole_a senate_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o send_v into_o the_o common_a prison_n to_o fetch_v they_o 22_o but_o when_o the_o minister_n come_v they_o find_v they_o not_o therefore_o they_o return_v and_o tell_v say_v 23_o the_o prison_n true_o find_v we_o shut_v with_o all_o diligence_n and_o the_o keeper_n stand_v at_o the_o door_n but_o when_o the_o prison_n be_v open_v we_o find_v none_o within_o 24_o when_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o priest_n hear_v these_o say_n they_o doubt_v of_o these_o thing_n what_o this_o will_v be_v 25_o furthermore_o a_o certain_a man_n come_v tell_v they_o say_v behold_v the_o man_n who_o you_o have_v put_v in_o prison_n stand_v in_o the_o temple_n teach_v the_o people_n 26_o then_o the_o captain_n go_v with_o the_o minister_n bring_v they_o without_o violence_n for_o they_o fear_v the_o people_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v stone_v 17_o luke_n have_v hitherto_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v wonderful_o increase_v that_o it_o be_v furnish_v with_o diverse_a gift_n that_o it_o excel_v in_o miracle_n final_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n do_v flourish_v there_o by_o all_o mean_n now_o he_o begin_v to_o show_v that_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v kindle_v with_o these_o thing_n so_o that_o they_o rage_v sore_a afresh_o whence_o we_o may_v gather_v with_o what_o blind_a fury_n &_o rage_n satan_n drive_v they_o forward_o when_o as_o they_o be_v so_o little_o terrify_v with_o such_o evident_a power_n of_o god_n that_o they_o run_v headlong_o more_o boldlye_o and_o with_o great_a force_n and_o bend_v all_o their_o force_n as_o it_o be_v to_o overthrow_v the_o very_a heaven_n as_o this_o so_o great_a blindness_n be_v a_o horrible_a punishment_n of_o almighty_a god_n so_o ought_v it_o to_o teach_v all_o man_n to_o submit_v themselves_o betimes_o to_o god_n lest_o that_o they_o themselves_o be_v take_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o giddiness_n while_o they_o run_v against_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v break_v in_o piece_n with_o the_o same_o nevertheless_o let_v we_o know_v that_o god_n will_v so_o increase_v his_o church_n with_o spiritual_a good_a thing_n that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o suffer_v the_o same_o to_o be_v vex_v of_o the_o wicked_a therefore_o we_o must_v always_o be_v ready_a for_o the_o cumbate_n for_o our_o estate_n at_o this_o day_n be_v not_o unlike_a to_o they_o especial_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o testify_v that_o he_o be_v present_a with_o we_o aught_o to_o encourage_v we_o lest_o the_o fury_n and_o boldness_n of_o the_o wicked_a do_v terrify_v and_o dismay_v us._n for_o this_o be_v no_o small_a comfort_n when_o we_o know_v that_o god_n be_v present_a with_o us._n which_o be_v with_o he_o he_o mean_v those_o which_o be_v most_o familiar_a and_o the_o nigh_a link_v in_o friendship_n with_o the_o chief_a priest_n who_o counsel_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o use_v and_o who_o he_o have_v be_v as_o it_o be_v gather_v and_o cull_v out_o of_o the_o whole_a order_n not_o for_o judgement_n or_o discretion_n but_o for_o the_o love_n of_o his_o faction_n as_o they_o do_v then_o contend_v among_o themselves_o shameless_o like_o mortal_a enemy_n furthermore_o luke_n say_v again_o that_o the_o sadducee_n do_v bear_v the_o great_a swinge_n at_o that_o day_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o government_n be_v then_o confuse_v with_o horrible_a wastnesse_n when_o as_o such_o a_o sect_n can_v bear_v rule_n but_o god_n suffer_v the_o synagogue_n to_o be_v drown_v in_o such_o extreme_a reproach_n after_o that_o he_o have_v separate_v his_o church_n from_o it_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v have_v the_o less_o excuse_n who_o despise_v the_o gospel_n do_v continue_v in_o such_o a_o sink_n of_o filthiness_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n what_o do_v enforce_v and_o drive_v forward_o those_o swine_n who_o be_v touch_v with_o no_o care_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v save_v only_o mere_a ambition_n and_o desire_v to_o keep_v that_o lordship_n and_o pre-eminence_n which_o they_o have_v get_v they_o be_v fill_v with_o zeal_n i_o have_v leiff_a keep_v the_o greek_a word_n still_o especial_o see_v it_o be_v common_a enough_o otherwise_o then_o to_o translate_v it_o emulation_n or_o indignation_n for_o he_o speak_v general_o of_o the_o perverse_a and_o violent_a force_n wherewith_o hypocrite_n be_v carry_v and_o inflame_v to_o maintain_v their_o superstition_n whereby_o it_o appear_v what_o account_n god_n make_v of_o zeal_n and_o what_o praise_v it_o deserve_v when_o as_o it_o be_v not_o govern_v by_o reason_n and_o wisdom_n that_o be_v when_o it_o be_v not_o lead_v and_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n those_o man_n move_v and_o stir_v with_o devilish_a fury_n who_o will_v be_v count_v the_o most_o devout_a of_o all_o man_n who_o rage_n horrible_o to_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n nevertheless_o let_v we_o note_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o in_o this_o place_n of_o a_o unaduised_a or_o blind_a zeal_n which_o be_v in_o many_o of_o the_o jew_n as_o paul_n affirm_v but_o we_o understande_v rather_o a_o hot_a and_o unbridled_a violence_n for_o although_o the_o wicked_a be_v accuse_v of_o their_o own_o conscience_n because_o they_o witting_o resist_v godliness_n yet_o do_v they_o disceive_v themselves_o with_o a_o false_a show_n of_o zeal_n because_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o prevent_v new_a thing_n so_o at_o this_o day_n almost_o in_o all_o popery_n they_o boast_v only_o of_o zeal_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v zealous_a for_o their_o belly_n but_o admit_v we_o grant_v that_o that_o be_v true_a which_o they_o pretend_v how_o can_v this_o excuse_v the_o heat_n of_o their_o cruelty_n whereunto_o they_o be_v enforce_v by_o their_o blindness_n as_o if_o this_o be_v a_o chief_a virtue_n to_o grant_v liberty_n to_o their_o wrath_n to_o be_v avenge_v of_o that_o which_o displease_v they_o but_o this_o be_v former_a in_o order_n to_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o good_a and_o evil_a lest_o any_o thing_n be_v dissolve_v unaduised_o 19_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o lord_n bring_v the_o apostle_n out_o of_o prison_n not_o because_o he_o will_v rid_v they_o quite_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n for_o he_o suffer_v they_o afterward_o to_o be_v bring_v back_o again_o &_o to_o be_v beat_v with_o rod_n but_o he_o mean_v to_o declare_v by_o this_o miracle_n that_o they_o be_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o tuition_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v maintain_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o gospel_n partly_o that_o the_o church_n may_v have_v another_o confirmation_n thereby_o partly_o that_o the_o wicked_a may_v be_v leave_v without_o excuse_n wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o hope_v always_o nay_o we_o must_v not_o always_o desire_v that_o god_n will_v deliver_v we_o from_o death_n but_o we_o must_v be_v content_a with_o this_o one_o thing_n that_o our_o life_n be_v defend_v by_o his_o hand_n so_o far_o as_o be_v expedient_a in_o that_o he_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o a_o angel_n
have_v make_v his_o covenant_n who_o follow_v right_a and_o pure_a doctrine_n who_o embrace_v the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n with_o true_a faith_n final_o who_o have_v their_o beginning_n of_o the_o heavenly_a father_n &_o who_o through_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n together_o with_o their_o posterity_n who_o you_o in_o this_o member_n the_o apostle_n declare_v unto_o they_o plain_o thar_z they_o be_v the_o enemy_n of_o god_n who_o will_v have_v the_o chief_a honour_n give_v they_o as_o unto_o the_o governor_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v unworthy_a even_o of_o the_o small_a authority_n although_o there_o be_v also_o a_o prevention_n be_v a_o token_n of_o boldness_n when_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o that_o thing_n bold_o and_o free_o which_o they_o do_v account_v a_o shameful_a thing_n to_o wit_n lest_o any_o part_n of_o christ_n glory_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v diminish_v because_o he_o suffer_v a_o slanderous_a death_n upon_o the_o cross_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v say_v you_o have_v slay_v he_o neither_o be_v your_o cruelty_n satisfy_v with_o a_o plain_a and_o common_a death_n for_o he_o be_v hang_v upon_o a_o tree_n but_o neither_o can_v death_n extinguish_v his_o power_n neither_o can_v that_o shame_n and_o reproach_n which_o he_o suffer_v among_o you_o take_v away_o his_o honour_n therefore_o the_o call_n of_o god_n continue_v firm_a and_o stable_a therefore_o as_o the_o apostle_n hit_v the_o priest_n in_o the_o tooth_n with_o that_o wickedness_n and_o heinous_a offence_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v so_o they_o prevent_v by_o a_o grant_v to_o express_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o reproachful_a death_n which_o christ_n suffer_v lest_o the_o author_n of_o the_o wickedness_n triumph_n as_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n 31_o he_o have_v god_n lift_v up_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n do_v signify_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o wicked_a do_v go_v about_o it_o do_v not_o hinder_v and_o keep_v back_o christ_n from_o fulfil_v his_o function_n which_o be_v enjoin_v he_o by_o his_o father_n the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n be_v take_v for_o his_o power_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o metaphor_n use_v in_o this_o place_n which_o we_o have_v before_o chap._n 2._o and_o which_o be_v common_a elsewhere_o when_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v lift_v up_o unto_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n but_o the_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n be_v that_o christ_n which_o be_v slay_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n be_v lift_v up_o on_o high_a by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v bear_v rule_n over_o angel_n and_o man_n and_o this_o seem_v secret_o to_o be_v set_v against_o all_o the_o enterprise_n of_o satan_n &_o the_o world_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o good_a success_n because_o they_o shall_v never_o climb_v so_o high_a as_o to_o hinder_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o have_v both_o wrought_v mighty_o already_o in_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n neither_o will_v he_o ever_o cease_v to_o work_v yet_o the_o end_n be_v add_v also_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o captain_n &_o saviour_n for_o so_o often_o as_o god_n do_v put_v his_o people_n in_o hope_n of_o salvation_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o promise_v a_o prince_n or_o a_o king_n by_o who_o hand_n he_o will_v restore_v all_o thing_n the_o apostle_n do_v testify_v that_o this_o principality_n be_v grant_v to_o christ_n notwithstanding_o they_o do_v more_o plain_o express_v his_o office_n by_o the_o other_o adjunct_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o christ_n be_v place_v in_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o honour_n that_o he_o may_v govern_v the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o not_o that_o only_a but_o that_o he_o may_v show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o save_a captain_n or_o the_o author_n of_o salvation_n to_o give_v repentance_n they_o show_v in_o this_o place_n how_o christ_n reign_v to_o save_v the_o people_n to_o wit_n when_o he_o bring_v his_o own_o to_o repentance_n &_o do_v reconcile_v they_o unto_o god_n through_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n furthermore_o we_o know_v that_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v contain_v in_o these_o two_o thing_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o only_o stand_v upon_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o cause_n but_o they_o preach_v the_o office_n of_o christ_n plentiful_o that_o they_o may_v win_v even_o some_o of_o the_o mortal_a enemy_n of_o christ_n if_o it_o may_v be_v furthermore_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o what_o the_o word_n repentance_n do_v signify_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v a_o inward_a turn_n of_o man_n unto_o god_n which_o show_v itself_o afterward_o by_o external_a work_n for_o christ_n give_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n for_o this_o cause_n that_o he_o may_v renew_v we_o inward_o to_o the_o end_n that_o a_o new_a life_n may_v afterward_o follow_v the_o newness_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o heart_n and_o if_o it_o belong_v to_o christ_n to_o give_v repentance_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o man_n power_n and_o sure_o see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a wonderful_a reformation_n or_o fashion_v again_o which_o make_v we_o new_a creature_n repair_v in_o we_o the_o image_n of_o god_n bring_v we_o out_o of_o the_o bondage_n of_o sin_n unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o righteousness_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n as_o impossible_a for_o man_n to_o convert_v themselves_o as_o to_o create_v themselves_o repentance_n be_v i_o grant_v a_o voluntary_a conversion_n but_o whence_o have_v we_o this_o will_n save_v only_o because_o god_n change_v our_o heart_n 11.19_o ezec._n 11.19_o that_o it_o may_v he_o make_v fleshy_a of_o a_o stony_a heart_n flexible_a of_o hard_a and_o stubborn_a and_o final_o right_o of_o wicked_a and_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o christ_n regenerate_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n neither_o be_v this_o give_v in_o a_o moment_n but_o it_o must_v be_v increase_v daily_o during_o our_o whole_a life_n until_o we_o be_v full_o join_v to_o god_n which_o shall_v be_v then_o when_o we_o have_v put_v off_o our_o flesh_n this_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o beginning_n of_o repentance_n when_o a_o man_n who_o before_o be_v turn_v away_o from_o god_n renounce_v the_o world_n and_o himself_o and_o do_v purpose_n to_o lead_v a_o new_a life_n but_o because_o when_o we_o have_v enter_v the_o way_n we_o be_v far_o from_o the_o mark_n we_o must_v needs_o go_v forward_o continual_o we_o have_v both_o through_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n for_o as_o he_o begin_v repentance_n in_o we_o so_o do_v he_o also_o give_v we_o perseverance_n this_o be_v a_o inestimable_a grace_n but_o it_o shall_v do_v we_o but_o a_o little_a good_a unless_o it_o be_v couple_v with_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n for_o christ_n do_v both_o find_v we_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n at_o the_o first_o and_o also_o there_o be_v always_o vice_n remain_v in_o we_o which_o cause_n disagreement_n between_o he_o &_o we_o so_o that_o he_o may_v just_o be_v offend_v with_o we_o rather_o than_o merciful_a unto_o us._n and_o therein_o do_v our_o righteousness_n consist_v if_o god_n do_v not_o impute_v our_o sin_n unto_o us._n therefore_o this_o latter_a grace_n must_v never_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o former_a yea_o rather_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v lame_a and_o corrupt_a unless_o it_o consist_v upon_o these_o two_o member_n that_o be_v unless_o man_n be_v teach_v that_o they_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o christ_n by_o the_o free_a imputation_n of_o righteousness_n and_o that_o they_o be_v fashion_v again_o unto_o newness_n of_o life_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n so_o that_o we_o understand_v brief_o how_o we_o must_v obtain_v salvation_n in_o christ_n 32_o and_o we_o be_v his_o witness_n after_o that_o they_o have_v declare_v that_o their_o doctrine_n come_v from_o god_n they_o discend_v now_o unto_o the_o other_o part_n that_o they_o speak_v as_o they_o be_v command_v by_o god_n lest_o they_o seem_v to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n unaduised_o for_o this_o also_o be_v a_o necessary_a defence_n as_o it_o be_v for_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o make_v this_o open_o know_v to_o all_o man_n that_o they_o teach_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receive_v of_o god_n second_o that_o they_o be_v call_v hereunto_o so_o that_o they_o can_v avoid_v the_o necessity_n of_o teach_v unless_o they_o will_v resist_v god_n luke_n put_v word_n in_o this_o place_n in_o steed_n of_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n although_o if_o any_o man_n have_v rather_o understand_v it_o of_o the_o speech_n itself_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v so_o the_o sum_n be_v see_v they_o be_v bring_v forth_o
doctrine_n it_o be_v and_o whether_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o inquire_v whether_o any_o man_n dare_v mutter_v against_o their_o superstition_n that_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v convict_v they_o may_v forthwith_o burn_v he_o furthermore_o steeven_n answer_n may_v seem_v at_o the_o first_o blush_v absurd_a and_o foolish_a he_o begin_v first_o at_o the_o very_a first_o beginning_n afterward_o he_o make_v a_o long_a narration_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o a_o manner_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a fault_n than_o to_o utter_v many_o word_n which_o be_v nothing_o appertinent_a unto_o the_o matter_n but_o whosoever_o shall_v thorough_o consider_v this_o long_a speech_n he_o shall_v find_v nothing_o therein_o which_o be_v superfluous_a and_o shall_v full_o well_o perceive_v that_o steven_n speak_v very_o appertinent_o as_o the_o matter_n require_v he_o be_v accuse_v as_o a_o apostata_fw-la or_o revolt_v which_o do_v attempt_v the_o overthrow_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o beat_v in_o this_o diligent_o that_o he_o retain_v that_o god_n which_o the_o father_n have_v always_o worship_v so_o that_o he_o turn_v away_o the_o crime_n of_o wicked_a backslide_n and_o declare_v that_o his_o enemy_n be_v prick_v forward_o with_o nothing_o less_o than_o with_o the_o zeal_n of_o the_o law_n for_o they_o bear_v a_o show_n that_o they_o be_v whole_o determine_v to_o increase_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n therefore_o he_o wringe_v from_o they_o this_o false_a boast_n and_o because_o they_o have_v the_o father_n always_o in_o their_o mouth_n because_o they_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o nation_n steeven_n declare_v also_o that_o they_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o be_v proud_a of_o this_o but_o rather_o that_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o father_n be_v so_o great_a &_o so_o many_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o to_o be_v ashamed_a and_o humble_v as_o concern_v the_o principal_a state_n of_o the_o cause_n because_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o temple_n and_o the_o ceremony_n he_o affirm_v plain_o that_o their_o father_n be_v elect_v of_o god_n to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n before_o there_o be_v any_o temple_n and_o before_o moses_n be_v bear_v and_o to_o this_o end_n tend_v that_o exordium_n or_o beginning_n which_o be_v so_o far_o fetch_v second_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o all_o external_a rite_n which_o god_n give_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o moses_n be_v fashion_v according_a to_o the_o heavenly_a pattern_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v refer_v unto_o another_o end_n and_o that_o those_o deal_n foolish_o and_o disordered_o who_o omit_v the_o truth_n and_o stay_v only_o in_o the_o sign_n if_o the_o reader_n shall_v refer_v the_o whole_a oration_n of_o steeven_n unto_o these_o point_n they_o shall_v find_v nothing_o therein_o which_o agree_v not_o very_o well_o with_o the_o cause_n as_o i_o shall_v declare_v again_o brief_o in_o the_o end_n nevertheless_o that_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a oration_n shall_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o we_o may_v discuss_v all_o thing_n brief_o which_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n 2_o man_n brethren_n and_o father_n although_o steeven_n see_v that_o those_o which_o sit_v in_o the_o council_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o swear_a enemy_n of_o christ_n yet_o because_o the_o ordinary_a government_n of_o the_o people_n do_v belong_v to_o they_o and_o they_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o the_o church_n which_o god_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o cast_v of_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a for_o modesty_n sake_n to_o call_v they_o father_n neither_o do_v he_o flatter_o purchase_n favour_n hereby_o but_o he_o give_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o order_n and_o government_n appoint_v by_o god_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o authority_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o the_o order_n be_v alter_v nevertheless_o the_o reverence_n of_o the_o place_n which_o they_o have_v do_v not_o hinder_v he_o nor_o stop_v his_o mouth_n but_o that_o he_o do_v free_o dissent_v from_o they_o whereby_o it_o appear_v how_o ridiculous_a the_o papist_n be_v who_o will_v have_v we_o so_o tie_v unto_o bare_a &_o vain_a invent_a title_n that_o they_o may_v enforce_v we_o to_o subscribe_v unto_o their_o decree_n though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o wicked_a the_o god_n of_o glory_n by_o this_o beginning_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o do_v not_o disagree_v or_o dissent_v from_o the_o father_n in_o true_a religion_n which_o they_o follow_v for_o all_o religion_n the_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n all_o prophecy_n do_v depend_v upon_o that_o covenant_n which_o god_n make_v with_o abraham_n therefore_o when_o steeven_n confess_v that_o god_n appear_v to_o abraham_n he_o embrace_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n which_o flow_v from_o that_o first_o revelation_n as_o from_o a_o fountain_n moreover_o he_o call_v he_o the_o god_n of_o glory_n that_o he_o may_v distinguishe_v he_o from_o the_o false_a and_o feign_a god_n who_o alone_o be_v worthy_a of_o glory_n when_o he_o be_v in_o mesopotamia_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o that_o region_n be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n which_o lie_v between_o the_o river_n tigris_n and_o euphrates_n and_o he_o say_v before_o he_o dwell_v in_o charran_n because_o abraham_n be_v warn_v by_o a_o oracle_n flee_v from_o chaldea_n to_o charran_n which_o be_v a_o city_n of_o mesopotamia_n famous_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o slaughter_n of_o crassus_n and_o the_o roman_a army_n although_o pliny_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o city_n of_o arabia_n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o chaldea_n be_v in_o this_o place_n comprehend_v under_o the_o name_n of_o mesopotamia_n because_o although_o that_o region_n which_o be_v enclose_v with_o tigris_n and_o euphrates_n be_v proper_o mesopotamia_n proper_o or_o mesopotamia_n the_o country_n between_o two_o river_n yet_o those_o which_o set_v down_o any_o description_n of_o country_n do_v call_v both_o assyria_n &_o chaldea_n by_o this_o name_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o abraham_n be_v command_v by_o god_n do_v forsake_v his_o country_n and_o so_o he_o be_v prevent_v with_o the_o mere_a goodness_n of_o god_n when_o as_o he_o seek_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v he_o at_o home_n of_o the_o own_o accord_n read_v the_o last_o chapter_n of_o josua_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o moses_n his_o narration_n do_v somewhat_o disagree_v with_o this_o for_o after_o that_o about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 11._o chap._n of_o genesis_n he_o have_v declare_v that_o abraham_n do_v go_v into_o another_o country_n to_o dwell_v have_v leave_v his_o house_n he_o add_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o twelf_n that_o god_n speak_v unto_o abraham_n this_o be_v easy_o answer_v for_o moses_n recite_v not_o in_o this_o latter_a place_n what_o happen_v after_o the_o departure_n of_o abraham_n but_o least_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o abraham_n wander_v into_o other_o country_n have_v unaduised_o forsake_v his_o own_o house_n as_o light_n and_o undiscrete_a man_n use_v to_o do_v sometime_o he_o show_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o departure_n to_o wit_n because_o he_o be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o flit_v into_o another_o place_n and_o thus_o much_o do_v the_o word_n of_o the_o oracle_n import_n for_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o stranger_n in_o a_o other_o country_n god_n can_v not_o have_v command_v he_o to_o depart_v out_o of_o his_o native_a soil_n forsake_v his_o kinsman_n and_o father_n house_n therefore_o we_o see_v that_o this_o place_n agree_v wondrous_a well_o with_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n for_o after_o that_o moses_n have_v say_v that_o abraham_n go_v to_o charran_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v show_v that_o this_o journey_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n not_o through_o any_o lightness_n of_o man_n but_o at_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n he_o add_v that_o afterward_o which_o he_o have_v before_o omit_v which_o manner_n of_o speak_v be_v much_o use_v of_o the_o hebr._n 3_o come_v out_o of_o thy_o country_n god_n use_v many_o word_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o more_o wound_v the_o mind_n of_o abraham_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n sharp_a enough_o of_o itself_o to_o be_v banish_v out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n and_o that_o serve_v to_o try_v his_o faith_n even_o as_o that_o other_o thing_n also_o that_o god_n assign_v he_o no_o land_n wherein_o he_o may_v dwell_v but_o make_v he_o stand_v in_o doubt_n &_o wait_v for_o a_o time_n wherefore_o the_o obedience_n of_o abraham_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o be_v commend_v because_o the_o sweetness_n of_o his_o native_a soil_n keep_v he_o not_o back_o from_o go_v willing_o as_o it_o be_v into_o exile_n &_o in_o that_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o follow_v god_n although_o
they_o for_o a_o heritage_n and_o that_o they_o die_v in_o another_o place_n therefore_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o be_v sojourner_n in_o it_o they_o be_v at_o length_n banish_v out_o of_o the_o same_o 14_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o jacob_n come_v into_o egypt_n with_o seventie_o five_o soul_n it_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n for_o moses_n make_v mention_n of_o seventie_o only_a hierome_n think_v that_o luke_n set_v not_o down_o word_n for_o word_n those_o thing_n which_o steeven_n have_v speak_v or_o that_o he_o take_v this_o number_n out_o of_o the_o greek_a translation_n of_o moses_n either_o because_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o prosylite_n have_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n 27_o gen-46_a 27_o or_o because_o he_o will_v grant_v the_o gentile_n this_o who_o use_v to_o read_v it_o thus_o furthermore_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o the_o greek_a interpreter_n set_v down_o this_o number_n of_o set_a purpose_n or_o whether_o it_o crope_v in_o afterward_o through_o negligence_n which_o i_o mean_v the_o latter_a may_v well_o be_v forasmuch_o as_o the_o grecian_n use_v to_o set_v down_o their_o number_n in_o letter_n august_n in_o his_o 26._o book_n of_o city_n of_o god_n think_v that_o joseph_n nephew_n &_o kinsman_n be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o number_n &_o so_o he_o think_v that_o the_o word_n go_v down_o do_v signify_v all_o that_o time_n which_o jacob_n live_v but_o that_o conjecture_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v receive_v for_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n the_o other_o patriarch_n also_o have_v many_o child_n bear_v to_o they_o this_o seem_v to_o i_o a_o thing_n like_a to_o be_v true_a that_o the_o seventie_o interpreter_n do_v translate_v that_o true_o which_o be_v in_o moses_n and_o we_o can_v say_v that_o they_o be_v deceive_v forasmuch_o as_o deu._n 10._o where_o this_o number_n be_v repeat_v they_o agree_v with_o moses_n at_o least_o as_o that_o place_n be_v read_v without_o all_o doubt_n in_o the_o time_n of_o hierome_n for_o those_o copy_n which_o be_v print_v at_o this_o day_n have_v it_o otherwise_o therefore_o i_o think_v that_o this_o difference_n come_v through_o the_o error_n of_o the_o writer_n which_o write_v out_o the_o book_n and_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o no_o such_o weight_n for_o which_o luke_n ought_v to_o have_v trouble_v the_o gentile_n which_o be_v accustom_v with_o the_o greek_a read_v and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o he_o himself_o do_v put_v down_o the_o true_a number_n &_o that_o some_o man_n do_v correct_v the_o same_o amiss_o out_o of_o that_o place_n of_o moses_n for_o we_o know_v that_o those_o which_o have_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o hand_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n yet_o skilful_a in_o the_o greek_a therefore_o to_o the_o end_n e_o the_o word_n of_o steeven_n may_v agree_v with_o the_o place_n of_o moses_n it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o that_o false_a number_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o greek_a translation_n of_o genesis_n be_v by_o they_o put_v in_o also_o in_o this_o place_n concern_v which_o if_o any_o man_n contend_v more_o stubborn_o let_v we_o suffer_v he_o to_o be_v wise_a without_o measure_n let_v we_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o paul_n do_v forbid_v we_o to_o be_v too_o curious_a about_o genealogy_n this_o so_o small_a a_o number_n be_v purposely_o express_v to_o the_o end_n the_o power_n of_o god_n may_v the_o more_o plain_o appear_v in_o so_o great_a a_o enlarge_n of_o that_o kindred_n which_o be_v of_o no_o long_a continuance_n for_o such_o a_o small_a handful_n of_o man_n can_v not_o by_o any_o humane_a manner_n of_o engender_v grow_v to_o such_o a_o infinite_a multitude_n as_o be_v record_v in_o exodus_fw-la within_o 250._o year_n we_o ought_v rather_o to_o weigh_v the_o miracle_n which_o the_o spirit_n commend_v unto_o we_o in_o this_o place_n 12.37_o exo._n 12.37_o than_o to_o stand_v long_o about_o one_o letter_n whereby_o the_o number_n be_v alter_v there_o arise_v other_o question_n and_o those_o which_o be_v more_o hard_a to_o be_v answer_v out_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o text_n 16_o steeven_n say_v that_o the_o patriarch_n be_v carry_v into_o the_o land_n of_o chanaan_n 24.32_o gen._n 50.13_o jos_n 24.32_o after_o they_o be_v dead_a but_o moses_n make_v mention_v only_o of_o the_o bone_n of_o joseph_n and_o josua_n 24._o it_o be_v report_v that_o the_o bone_n of_o joseph_n be_v bury_v without_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o the_o rest_n some_o answer_n that_o moses_n speak_v of_o joseph_n for_o honour_n sake_n because_o he_o have_v give_v express_a commandment_n concern_v his_o bone_n which_o we_o can_v read_v to_o have_v be_v do_v of_o the_o rest_n and_o sure_o when_o jerome_n in_o the_o pilgrimage_n of_o paula_n say_v that_o she_o come_v by_o sichem_n he_o say_v that_o she_o see_v there_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o the_o 12._o patriarch_n but_o in_o another_o place_n he_o make_v mention_n of_o joseph_n grave_n only_o and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o there_o be_v empty_a tomb_n erect_v to_o the_o rest_n i_o can_v affirm_v nothing_o concern_v this_o matter_n for_o a_o certainty_n save_v only_o that_o this_o be_v either_o a_o speech_n wherein_o be_v synecdoche_n or_o else_o that_o luke_n rehearse_v this_o not_o so_o much_o out_o of_o moses_n as_o according_a to_o the_o old_a fame_n as_o the_o jew_n have_v many_o thing_n in_o time_n pass_v from_o the_o father_n which_o be_v deliver_v as_o it_o be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v afterward_o they_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n which_o abraham_n have_v buy_v of_o the_o son_n of_o hemor_n 23.9_o gen._n 23.9_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v a_o fault_n in_o the_o word_n abraham_n for_o abraham_n have_v buy_v a_o double_a cave_n of_o ephron_n the_o hitite_n to_o bury_v his_o wife_n sara_n in_o but_o joseph_n be_v bury_v in_o another_o place_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o field_n which_o his_o father_n jacob_n have_v buy_v of_o the_o son_n of_o hemor_n for_o a_o hundred_o lamb_n wherefore_o this_o place_n must_v be_v amend_v 17_o and_o when_o the_o time_n of_o the_o promise_n draw_v near_o which_o god_n have_v swear_v to_o abraham_n the_o people_n increase_v and_o be_v multiply_v in_o egypt_n 18_o until_o another_o king_n arise_v which_o know_v not_o joseph_n 19_o this_o man_n deal_v subtle_o with_o our_o kindred_n he_o evil_o entreat_v our_o father_n that_o they_o may_v cast_v out_o their_o infant_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v increase_v 17_o steeven_n pass_v over_o unto_o the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o people_n before_o which_o go_v that_o innumerable_a issue_n which_o have_v increase_v beyond_o the_o ordinary_a manner_n in_o no_o long_a space_n of_o time_n therefore_o he_o set_v down_o this_o as_o a_o singular_a gift_n of_o god_n that_o the_o people_n be_v increase_v to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o that_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v according_a to_o the_o common_a or_o wont_a custom_n of_o nature_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n god_n seem_v to_o take_v from_o the_o jew_n all_o hope_n because_o pharaoh_n do_v tyrannous_o afflict_v they_o &_o their_o bondage_n grow_v great_a daily_o and_o when_o as_o they_o be_v command_v to_o cast_v out_o their_o male_a infant_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n be_v present_a there_o be_v another_o token_n of_o deliveraunce_n give_v when_o moses_n come_v abroad_o but_o because_o he_o be_v by_o &_o by_o refuse_v and_o enforce_v to_o fly_v into_o exile_n there_o remain_v nothing_o but_o mere_a despair_n the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o god_n be_v mindful_a of_o his_o promise_n do_v increase_v the_o people_n in_o time_n that_o he_o may_v perform_v that_o which_o he_o have_v swear_v to_o abraham_n but_o the_o jew_n as_o they_o be_v unthankful_a &_o froward_a do_v refuse_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n so_o that_o they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o shut_v up_o the_o way_n before_o themselves_o furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n in_o this_o place_n while_o that_o he_o do_v so_o order_v the_o course_n of_o time_n that_o his_o work_n have_v always_o their_o opportunity_n but_o man_n who_o make_v have_v disordered_o in_o their_o desire_n can_v hope_v patient_o &_o be_v at_o rest_n until_o such_o time_n as_o god_n show_v forth_o his_o hand_n for_o this_o cause_n because_o they_o take_v no_o heed_n to_o that_o moderation_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v and_o to_o the_o end_n god_n may_v exercise_v the_o faith_n of_o his_o child_n so_o often_o as_o he_o appear_v with_o joyful_a token_n of_o grace_n he_o set_v other_o thing_n against_o those_o on_o the_o other_o side_n which_o cut_v off_o sudden_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n for_o who_o will_v not_o have_v say_v
vouchsafe_v to_o call_v these_o man_n father_n and_o brethren_n against_o who_o he_o inveigh_v thus_o sharp_o therefore_o so_o long_o as_o there_o remain_v any_o hope_n that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v more_o gentle_a he_o deal_v not_o only_o friendly_a with_o they_o but_o he_o speak_v honourable_o unto_o they_o now_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o espi_v their_o desperate_a stubborness_n he_o do_v not_o only_o take_v from_o they_o all_o honour_n but_o lest_o he_o shall_v have_v any_o fellowship_n with_o they_o he_o speak_v unto_o they_o as_o unto_o man_n of_o another_o kindred_n you_o say_v he_o be_v like_a to_o your_o father_n who_o have_v always_o rebel_v against_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n but_o he_o himself_o come_v of_o the_o same_o father_n and_o yet_o that_o he_o may_v couple_v himself_o to_o christ_n he_o forget_v his_o kindred_n in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v wicked_a and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o he_o bind_v they_o not_o all_o in_o one_o bundle_n as_o they_o say_v but_o he_o speak_v unto_o the_o multitude_n and_o those_o be_v say_v to_o resist_v the_o spirit_n who_o reject_v he_o when_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o prophet_n neither_o do_v he_o speak_v in_o this_o place_n of_o secret_a revelation_n wherewith_o god_n inspire_v every_o one_o but_o of_o the_o external_a ministry_n which_o we_o must_v note_v diligent_o he_o purpose_v to_o take_v from_o the_o jew_n all_o colour_n of_o excuse_n and_o therefore_o he_o upbraid_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o have_v purposely_o and_o not_o of_o ignorance_n resist_v god_n whereby_o it_o appear_v what_o great_a account_n the_o lord_n make_v of_o his_o word_n and_o how_o reverent_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o receive_v the_o same_o therefore_o least_o like_a giant_n we_o make_v war_n against_o god_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o hearken_v to_o the_o minister_n by_o who_o mouth_n he_o teach_v us._n 52_o which_o of_o the_o prophet_n for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o bear_v their_o father_n fault_n steeven_n seem_v to_o deal_v unjust_o in_o that_o he_o reckon_v this_o among_o their_o fault_n unto_o who_o he_o speak_v but_o he_o have_v just_a cause_n so_o to_o do_v first_o because_o they_o do_v vaunt_v that_o they_o be_v abraham_n his_o holy_a progeny_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o labour_n to_o show_v unto_o they_o how_o great_a vanity_n that_o be_v as_o if_o steven_n shall_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v vaunt_v of_o their_o stock_n for_o asmuch_o as_o they_o come_v of_o those_o who_o be_v wicked_a murderer_n of_o the_o prophet_n so_o that_o he_o touch_v that_o glancinglie_a which_o be_v more_o plain_o set_v down_o by_o the_o prophet_n that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o prophet_n but_o a_o degenerate_a and_o bastardly_a issue_n the_o seed_n of_o chanaan_n etc._n etc._n which_o thing_n we_o may_v at_o this_o day_n object_n to_o the_o papist_n when_o as_o they_o so_o high_o extol_v their_o father_n furthermore_o this_o serve_v to_o amplify_v withal_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o they_o to_o resist_v the_o truth_n but_o that_o they_o have_v this_o wickedness_n as_o it_o be_v by_o inheritance_n from_o their_o father_n furthermore_o it_o be_v requisite_a for_o steeven_n by_o this_o mean_n to_o pluck_v from_o their_o face_n the_o visure_n of_o the_o church_n wherewith_o they_o burden_a he_o this_o be_v a_o unmeete_a prejudice_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o that_o they_o boast_v that_o they_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o do_v challenge_v this_o title_n by_o long_a succession_n therefore_o steeven_n prevent_v they_o on_o the_o contrary_a and_o prove_v that_o their_o father_n do_v no_o less_o than_o they_o rage_n against_o the_o prophet_n through_o wicked_a contempt_n and_o hatred_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n last_o this_o be_v the_o continual_a custom_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o gather_v the_o father_n and_o child_n together_o under_o the_o same_o giltinesse_n see_v they_o pollute_v themselves_o with_o the_o same_o offence_n &_o that_o famous_a sentence_n of_o christ_n answer_v thereto_o fulfil_v the_o measure_n of_o your_o father_n until_o the_o just_a blood_n come_v upon_o you_o from_o able_a unto_o zacharias_n who_o have_v foretell_v hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o this_o be_v the_o drift_n of_o all_o the_o prophte_n to_o direct_v their_o nation_n unto_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n it_o be_v too_o long_o to_o gather_v all_o the_o prophecy_n wherein_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v foretell_v 10.4_o rom._n 10.4_o let_v it_o suffice_v to_o know_v this_o general_o that_o it_o be_v the_o common_a office_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n to_o promise_v salvation_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n christ_n be_v call_v in_o this_o place_n the_o just_a not_o only_o to_o note_v his_o innocence_n but_o of_o the_o effect_n because_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o he_o to_o appoint_v justice_n in_o the_o world_n and_o even_o in_o this_o place_n do_v steeven_n prove_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v altogether_o unworthy_a of_o the_o benefit_n of_o redemption_n because_o the_o father_n do_v not_o only_o refuse_v that_o in_o time_n past_a which_o be_v witness_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o prophet_n but_o they_o do_v also_o cruel_o murder_v the_o messenger_n of_o grace_n &_o their_o child_n indevor_v to_o extinguish_v the_o author_n of_o righteousness_n and_o salvation_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o by_o which_o comparison_n christ_n teach_v that_o the_o wicked_a conspiracy_n of_o his_o enemy_n be_v a_o heap_n of_o all_o iniquity_n 53_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o law_n they_o call_v that_o fury_n wherewith_o they_o rage_v against_o steven_n zeal_n of_o the_o law_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o forsaker_n of_o the_o law_n &_o a_o revolt_n &_o have_v enforce_v other_o to_o fall_v away_o in_o like_a sort_n although_o he_o be_v determine_v to_o clear_v himself_o of_o this_o false_a accusation_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o go_v through_o with_o his_o answer_n for_o he_o can_v not_o be_v hear_v &_o it_o be_v to_o no_o end_n to_o speak_v to_o deaf_a man_n therefore_o he_o be_v content_a at_o a_o word_n to_o take_v from_o they_o their_o false_a colour_n &_o pretence_n it_o be_v evident_a say_v he_o that_o you_o lie_v when_o you_o pretend_v the_o zeal_n of_o the_o law_n which_o you_o transgress_v &_o break_v without_o cease_v &_o as_o he_o object_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o word_n next_o go_v before_o the_o treacherous_a murder_n of_o the_o just_a so_o now_o he_o upbraid_v unto_o they_o their_o revolt_n from_o the_o law_n some_o man_n will_v say_v that_o steeven_n cause_n be_v no_o whit_n better_v hereby_o because_o the_o jew_n break_v the_o law_n but_o as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v steeven_n do_v not_o so_o chide_v they_o as_o if_o his_o defence_n do_v principal_o consist_v in_o this_o issue_n but_o that_o they_o may_v not_o flatter_v themselves_o in_o their_o false_a boast_n for_o hypocrite_n must_v be_v handle_v thus_o who_o will_v notwithstanding_o seem_v to_o be_v most_o earnest_a defender_n of_o god_n glory_n though_o in_o deed_n they_o contemn_v he_o careless_o and_o here_o be_v also_o a_o fit_a antistrophe_n because_o they_o make_v semblance_n that_o they_o receive_v the_o law_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o which_o be_v notwithstanding_o reproachful_o despiced_a by_o they_o in_o the_o disposition_n of_o angel_n it_o be_v word_n for_o word_n into_o the_o disposition_n but_o it_o be_v all_o one_o furthermore_o we_o need_v not_o seek_v any_o other_o interpreter_n of_o this_o say_n than_o paul_n who_o say_v that_o the_o law_n be_v dispose_v or_o ordain_v by_o angel_n for_o he_o use_v the_o participle_n there_o whereof_o this_o noun_n be_v derive_v 3.16_o gal._n 3.16_o and_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o angel_n be_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n &_o his_o witness_n in_o publish_v the_o law_n that_o the_o authority_n thereof_o may_v be_v firm_a &_o stable_a therefore_o forasmuch_o as_o god_n do_v call_v the_o angel_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v solemn_a witness_n when_o he_o give_v the_o jew_n his_o law_n the_o same_o angel_n shall_v be_v witness_n of_o their_o unfaithfulnesse_n and_o to_o this_o end_n do_v steven_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o angel_n that_o he_o may_v accuse_v the_o jew_n in_o presence_n of_o they_o &_o prove_v they_o guilty_a because_o they_o have_v trangress_v the_o law_n hereby_o we_o may_v gather_v what_o shall_v become_v of_o the_o despiser_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o do_v so_o far_o excel_v the_o law_n that_o it_o do_v after_o a_o sort_n darken_v the_o glory_n thereof_o as_o paul_n teach_v 2._o cor._n 3._o 54_o furthermore_n when_o they_o hear_v these_o thing_n they_o be_v cut_v asunder_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o they_o gnash_v upon_o he_o with_o their_o tooth_n 55_o but_o
also_o sleep_v chap._n viii_o 1_o and_o at_o that_o day_n there_o be_v great_a persecution_n raise_v against_o the_o church_n which_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n therefore_o they_o be_v all_o scatter_a abroad_o throughout_o all_o region_n of_o judea_n and_o samaria_n except_o the_o apostle_n 2_o and_o religious_a man_n dress_v steeven_n together_o and_o they_o mourn_v sore_o for_o he_o 3_o but_o saul_n make_v havoc_n of_o the_o church_n and_o enter_v into_o house_n and_o draw_v thence_o man_n and_o woman_n he_o cast_v they_o into_o prison_n 4_o and_o they_o be_v disperse_v do_v go_v about_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 1_o in_o this_o history_n we_o may_v first_o see_v the_o state_n of_o the_o godly_a in_o this_o world_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v like_o sheep_n appoint_v to_o be_v slay_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o psalm_n 43.32_o psal_n 43.32_o and_o especial_o when_o the_o lord_n let_v loose_v the_o bridle_n to_o his_o enemy_n that_o they_o may_v put_v that_o cruelty_n in_o execution_n which_o they_o have_v in_o mind_n conceive_v second_o here_o be_v set_v down_o the_o end_n of_o persecution_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o break_v off_o the_o course_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o be_v rather_o make_v help_n to_o further_o the_o same_o through_o the_o wonderful_a counsel_n of_o god_n like_a as_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a miracle_n that_o the_o scatter_v abroad_o mention_v by_o luke_n gather_v many_o unto_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n who_o be_v estrange_v from_o god_n before_o now_o let_v we_o consider_v every_o thing_n in_o order_n at_o that_o day_n the_o persecution_n begin_v at_o steeven_n after_o that_o when_o their_o madness_n be_v thereby_o set_v on_o fire_n it_o wax_v hot_a against_o all_o both_o one_o &_o other_o for_o the_o wicked_a be_v like_o brute_n beast_n for_o when_o they_o have_v once_o taste_v blood_n they_o be_v more_o desirous_a thereof_o and_o become_v more_o cruel_a through_o commit_v murder_n for_o satan_n who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o all_o cruelty_n do_v first_o take_v from_o they_o all_o feel_n of_o humanity_n when_o they_o be_v once_o imbrue_v with_o innocent_a blood_n that_o do_v he_o stir_v up_o in_o they_o a_o unquenchable_a thirst_v after_o blood_n whence_o those_o violent_a assault_n to_o commit_v murder_n come_v so_o that_o when_o they_o have_v once_o begin_v they_o will_v never_o make_v a_o end_n with_o their_o will_n moreover_o when_o they_o have_v power_n once_o grant_v they_o to_o do_v hurt_v their_o boldness_n increase_v in_o tract_n of_o time_n so_o that_o they_o be_v carry_v headlong_o more_o immoderate_o which_o thing_n luke_n also_o note_v when_o he_o say_v the_o persecution_n be_v great_a undoubted_o the_o church_n have_v but_o small_a rest_n before_o neither_o be_v it_o free_a from_o the_o vexation_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o the_o lord_n spare_v he_o for_o a_o time_n that_o they_o may_v have_v some_o liberty_n &_o now_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v sore_a set_v on_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v apply_v unto_o our_o time_n also_o if_o the_o furiousness_n of_o our_o enemy_n seem_v at_o any_o time_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v fall_v on_o sleep_n so_o that_o it_o cast_v not_o out_o flame_v far_o let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n provide_v for_o our_o weakness_n yet_o let_v we_o not_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n imagine_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v continual_a truce_n but_o let_v we_o be_v in_o readiness_n to_o suffer_v sore_a brunt_n as_o often_o as_o they_o shall_v break_v out_o sudden_o let_v we_o also_o remember_v that_o if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o constancy_n of_o one_o man_n have_v whet_v the_o cruelty_n of_o our_o enemy_n the_o blame_n of_o the_o evil_n be_v unjust_o ascribe_v to_o he_o for_o luke_n do_v not_o defame_n steeven_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o by_o mean_n of_o he_o the_o church_n be_v sore_a vex_v than_o before_o but_o he_o rather_o turn_v this_o to_o his_o praise_n because_o he_o do_v valiant_o as_o the_o standard-bearer_n encourage_v other_o with_o his_o example_n to_o fight_v courageous_o when_o he_o call_v it_o the_o church_n which_o be_v at_o jerusalem_fw-la his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o there_o be_v church_n elsewhere_o but_o he_o pass_v over_o unto_o these_o thing_n which_o ensue_v thereupon_o for_o whereas_o there_o be_v but_o this_o one_o only_a body_n of_o the_o godly_a in_o all_o the_o world_n it_o be_v rend_v in_o piece_n through_o flight_n yet_o there_o spring_v up_o more_o church_n by_o and_o by_o of_o those_o lame_a member_n which_o be_v disperse_v here_o and_o there_o and_o so_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v spread_v abroad_o far_o and_o wide_a whereas_o it_o be_v before_o shut_v up_o within_o the_o wall_n of_o jerusalem_n they_o be_v all_o scatter_a abroad_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o scatter_a abroad_o but_o the_o scripture_n use_v a_o universal_a note_n for_o that_o which_o we_o say_v every_o where_o or_o abroad_o the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o not_o only_o a_o few_o be_v in_o danger_n because_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o enemy_n rage_v throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n many_o do_v oftentimes_o take_v themselves_o to_o their_o foot_n through_o faintness_n of_o heart_n even_o when_o they_o hear_v any_o light_a rumour_n but_o these_o be_v in_o another_o case_n for_o they_o flee_v not_o unaduised_o be_v discourage_v but_o because_o they_o see_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o pacify_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o adversary_n and_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v scatter_v not_o only_o through_o diverse_a place_n of_o judea_n but_o that_o they_o come_v even_o unto_o samaria_n so_o that_o the_o middle_a wall_n begin_v to_o be_v pull_v down_o 2.14_o ephe._n 2.14_o which_o make_v division_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o samaria_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n for_o although_o they_o have_v circumcision_n as_o have_v the_o people_n of_o god_n yet_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v great_a dissension_n and_o that_o not_o without_o great_a cause_n forasmuch_o as_o they_o have_v in_o samaria_n only_o a_o forge_a worship_n of_o god_n as_o christ_n affirm_v because_o it_o be_v only_o a_o unsaverie_a emulation_n therefore_o god_n set_v open_v the_o gate_n for_o the_o gospel_n then_o that_o the_o sceptre_n of_o christ_n send_v out_o of_o jerusalem_n may_v come_v unto_o the_o gentile_n he_o exempt_v the_o apostle_n out_o of_o this_o number_n not_o that_o they_o be_v free_a from_o the_o common_a danger_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a pastor_n to_o set_v himself_o against_o the_o invasion_n of_o wolf_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o his_o flock_n but_o here_o may_v a_o question_n be_v ask_v forasmuch_o as_o they_o be_v command_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n why_o they_o stay_v at_o jerusalem_fw-la 16.16_o mark_n 16.16_o even_o when_o they_o be_v expel_v thence_o with_o force_n and_o hand_n i_o answer_v that_o see_v christ_n have_v command_v they_o to_o begin_v at_o jerusalem_n they_o employ_v themselves_o there_o until_o such_o time_n as_o be_v bring_v into_o some_o other_o place_n by_o his_o hand_n they_o may_v know_v for_o a_o surety_n that_o he_o be_v their_o guide_n and_o we_o see_v how_o fearful_o they_o proceed_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n not_o that_o they_o foreslow_v that_o function_n which_o be_v enjoin_v they_o but_o because_o they_o be_v amaze_v at_o a_o new_a and_o unwonted_a thing_n therefore_o see_v they_o see_v the_o gospel_n so_o mighty_o resist_v at_o jerusalem_n they_o dare_v go_v to_o no_o other_o place_n until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o have_v break_v that_o first_o huge_a heap_n of_o strait_n assure_o they_o provide_v neither_o for_o their_o case_n ne_o yet_o for_o their_o own_o commodity_n either_o for_o be_v void_a of_o care_n by_o stay_v at_o jerusalem_n for_o they_o have_v a_o painful_a charge_n they_o be_v continual_o amidst_o diverse_a danger_n they_o encounter_v with_o great_a trouble_n wherefore_o undoubted_o they_o be_v purpose_v to_o do_v their_o duty_n and_o especial_o whereas_o they_o stand_v to_o it_o when_o all_o the_o rest_n fly_v that_o be_v a_o evident_a testimony_n of_o valiant_a constancy_n if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o they_o may_v have_v divide_v the_o province_n amongst_o they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o all_o have_v be_v occupy_v in_o one_o place_n i_o answer_v that_o jerusalem_n alone_o have_v business_n enough_o for_o they_o all_o in_o sum_n luke_n reckon_v up_o this_o as_o a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o praise_n that_o they_o follow_v not_o the_o rest_n into_o voluntary_a exile_n to_o avoid_v persecution_n and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o reprehend_v the_o flight_n of_o those_o man_n who_o state_n be_v more_o free_a for_o
the_o apostle_n do_v consider_v what_o particular_a thing_n their_o calling_n have_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o shall_v keep_v their_o stand_n see_v the_o wolf_n do_v invade_v the_o sheepefolde_a the_o rigour_n of_o tertullian_n and_o such_o like_a be_v too_o great_a who_o do_v deny_v indifferent_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o fly_v for_o fear_n of_o persecution_n august_n say_v better_a who_o give_v leave_v to_o fly_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o church_n be_v destitute_a of_o their_o pastor_n be_v not_o betray_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o enemy_n this_o be_v sure_o the_o best_a moderation_n which_o bear_v neither_o too_o much_o with_o the_o flesh_n neither_o drive_v those_o headlong_a to_o death_n who_o may_v lawful_o save_v their_o life_n let_v he_o that_o be_v dispose_v read_v the_o 180._o ep._n to_o honoratus_n that_o i_o may_v return_v to_o the_o apostle_n if_o they_o have_v be_v scatter_v here_o and_o there_o with_o fear_n of_o persecution_n even_o at_o the_o beginning_n all_o man_n may_v have_v right_o call_v they_o hireling_n how_o hurtful_a and_o filthy_a have_v the_o forsake_v of_o the_o place_n be_v at_o the_o present_a time_n how_o great_o will_v it_o have_v discourage_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o man_n what_o great_a hurt_n shall_v they_o have_v do_v with_o their_o example_n among_o the_o posterity_n it_o shall_v sometime_o so_o fall_v out_o in_o deed_n that_o the_o pastor_n may_v also_o fly_v that_o be_v if_o they_o invade_v he_o alone_o if_o the_o lay_v waste_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o fear_v if_o he_o be_v absent_a but_o and_o if_o both_o his_o flock_n and_o he_o have_v to_o encounter_v with_o the_o adversary_n he_o be_v a_o treacherous_a forsaker_n of_o his_o office_n if_o he_o stand_v not_o stoutlye_o to_o it_o even_o until_o the_o end_n private_a person_n have_v great_a liberty_n 2_o they_o dressed_z steeven_n luke_n show_v that_o even_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o persecution_n the_o godly_a be_v not_o so_o discourage_v but_o be_v always_o zealous_a they_o do_v those_o duty_n which_o do_v belong_v to_o godliness_n burial_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o small_a importance_n rather_o than_o they_o will_v foreslowe_v the_o same_o they_o bring_v themselves_o in_o no_o small_a hassarde_n of_o life_n and_o as_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n do_v declare_v that_o they_o contemn_v death_n valiant_o so_o again_o we_o gather_v thereby_o that_o they_o be_v careful_a to_o do_v this_o thing_n not_o without_o great_a and_o urgent_a cause_n for_o this_o serve_v great_o to_o exercise_v their_o faith_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o holy_a martyr_n shall_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o wild_a beast_n in_o who_o christ_n have_v triumph_v noble_o according_a to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o gospel_n neither_o can_v they_o live_v to_o christ_n unless_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v gather_v unto_o steeven_n into_o the_o society_n of_o death_n therefore_o the_o care_n they_o have_v to_o bury_v the_o martyr_n be_v unto_o they_o a_o meditation_n unto_o invincible_a constancy_n of_o profess_v the_o faith_n therefore_o they_o seek_v not_o in_o a_o superfluous_a matter_n with_o a_o unaduised_a zeal_n to_o provoke_v their_o adversary_n although_o that_o general_a reason_n which_o ought_v always_o and_o every_o where_o to_o be_v of_o force_n among_o the_o godly_a be_v undouted_o of_o great_a weight_n with_o they_o for_o the_o rite_n of_o bury_v do_v appertain_v unto_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n as_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o this_o end_n wherefore_o this_o be_v always_o count_v cruel_a barbarism_n to_o suffer_v body_n to_o lie_v unbury_v willing_o profane_a man_n do_v not_o know_v why_o they_o shall_v count_v the_o right_n of_o burial_n so_o holy_a but_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o end_n thereof_o to_o wit_n that_o those_o which_o remain_v alive_a may_v know_v that_o the_o body_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o earth_n as_o to_o a_o prison_n until_o they_o be_v raise_v up_o thence_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o duty_n be_v profitable_a rather_o for_o those_o which_o be_v alive_a than_o for_o those_o which_o be_v dead_a although_o it_o be_v also_o a_o point_n of_o our_o humanity_n to_o give_v due_a honour_n to_o those_o body_n to_o which_o we_o know_v bless_v immortality_n to_o be_v promise_v they_o make_v great_a lamentation_n luke_n do_v also_o commend_v their_o profession_n of_o godliness_n and_o faith_n in_o their_o lamentation_n for_o a_o doleful_a and_o unprosperous_a end_n cause_v man_n for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o forsake_v those_o cause_n wherein_o they_o be_v delight_v before_o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n these_o man_n declare_v by_o their_o mourning_n that_o they_o be_v not_o what_o terrify_v with_o the_o death_n of_o stephen_n from_o stand_v stout_o in_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o cause_n consider_v therewithal_o what_o great_a loss_n god_n church_n suffer_v by_o the_o death_n of_o one_o man_n and_o we_o must_v reject_v that_o foolish_a philosophy_n which_o will_v man_n to_o be_v altogether_o blockish_a that_o they_o may_v be_v wise_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o the_o stoic_n be_v void_a of_o common_a sense_n who_o will_v have_v a_o man_n to_o be_v with_o out_o all_o affection_n certain_a mad_a fellow_n will_v glad_o bring_v in_o the_o same_o dote_n into_o the_o church_n at_o this_o day_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o although_o they_o require_v a_o heart_n of_o iron_n of_o other_o man_n there_o be_v nothing_o soft_a or_o more_o effeminate_a than_o they_o they_o can_v abide_v that_o other_o man_n shall_v shed_v one_o tear_n if_o any_o thing_n fall_v out_o otherwise_o than_o they_o will_v wish_v they_o make_v no_o end_n of_o mourning_n god_n do_v thus_o punish_v their_o arrogancy_n je_o that_o i_o may_v so_o term_v it_o see_v that_o he_o set_v they_o to_o be_v laugh_v at_o even_o by_o boy_n but_o let_v we_o know_v that_o those_o affection_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o man_n nature_n be_v of_o themselves_o no_o more_o corrupt_a than_o the_o author_n himself_o but_o that_o they_o be_v first_o to_o be_v esteem_v according_a to_o the_o cause_n second_o if_o they_o keep_v a_o mean_a and_o moderation_n sure_o that_o man_n which_o deni_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o rejoice_v over_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v more_o like_o a_o block_n than_o a_o man_n therefore_o we_o may_v no_o less_o lawful_o sorrow_n when_o they_o be_v take_v away_o and_o lest_o i_o pass_v the_o compass_n of_o this_o present_a place_n paul_n do_v not_o altogether_o forbid_v man_n mourn_v when_o any_o of_o their_o friend_n be_v take_v away_o by_o death_n but_o he_o will_v have_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o unbeliever_n because_o hope_v aught_o to_o be_v to_o they_o a_o comfort_n and_o a_o remedy_n against_o unpatience_n for_o the_o begin_n of_o death_n cause_v we_o to_o sorrow_n for_o good_a cause_n but_o because_o we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v life_n restore_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n we_o have_v that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o appease_v our_o sorrow_n in_o like_a sort_n when_o we_o be_v sorry_a that_o the_o church_n be_v deprive_v of_o rare_a and_o excellent_a man_n there_o be_v good_a cause_n of_o sorrow_n only_o we_o must_v seek_v such_o comfort_n as_o may_v correct_v excess_n 3_o but_o saul_n we_o must_v note_v two_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n how_o great_a the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o adversary_n be_v and_o how_o wonderful_a the_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v who_o vouchsafe_v to_o make_v paul_n a_o pastor_n of_o so_o cruel_a a_o wolf_n for_o that_o desire_n to_o lay_v waste_v the_o church_n wherewith_o he_o be_v incense_v do_v seem_v to_o cut_v away_o all_o hope_n therefore_o his_o conversion_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o excellent_a afterward_o and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o this_o punishment_n be_v lay_v upon_o he_o by_o god_n after_o that_o he_o have_v conspire_v to_o put_v stephen_n to_o death_n together_o with_o the_o other_o wicked_a man_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o ringleader_n of_o cruelty_n for_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o punish_v sin_n more_o sharp_o in_o the_o elect_n than_o in_o the_o reprobate_n 4_o and_o they_o be_v scatter_v abroad_o luke_n declare_v in_o this_o place_n also_o that_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o the_o scatter_v abroad_o of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v bring_v many_o unto_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n thus_o do_v the_o lord_n use_v to_o bring_v light_a out_o of_o darkness_n &_o life_n out_o of_o death_n for_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v hear_v heretofore_o in_o one_o place_n only_o do_v now_o sound_a everywhere_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o example_n that_o we_o must_v
a_o voice_n say_v to_o he_o saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o 5_o and_o he_o say_v who_o be_v thou_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o be_o jesus_n who_o thou_o persecute_v it_o be_v hard_a for_o thou_o to_o kick_v against_o prick_n 1_o and_o saul_n luke_n set_v down_o in_o this_o place_n a_o noble_a history_n and_o a_o history_n full_o well_o worthy_a to_o be_v remember_v concern_v the_o conversion_n of_o paul_n after_o what_o sort_n the_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o bring_v he_o under_o and_o make_v he_o subject_a to_o his_o commandment_n when_o he_o rage_v like_o a_o untamed_a beast_n but_o also_o how_o he_o make_v he_o another_o &_o a_o new_a man_n but_o because_o luke_n set_v down_o all_o thing_n in_o order_n as_o in_o a_o famous_a work_n of_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v more_o convenient_a to_o follow_v his_o text_n that_o all_o that_o may_v come_v in_o order_n whatsoever_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o he_o breathe_v out_o threaten_n &_o slaughter_n as_o yet_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o after_o that_o his_o hand_n be_v once_o imbrue_v with_o innocent_a blood_n he_o proceed_v in_o like_a cruelty_n &_o be_v always_o a_o furious_a &_o bloody_a enemy_n to_o the_o church_n after_o that_o he_o have_v once_o make_v that_o entrance_n whereof_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o death_n of_o steeven_n for_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v the_o more_o incredible_a that_o he_o can_v be_v so_o sudden_o tame_v and_o whereas_o such_o a_o cruel_a wolf_n be_v not_o only_o turn_v into_o a_o sheep_n but_o do_v also_o put_v on_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o shepherd_n the_o wonderful_a hand_n of_o god_n do_v show_v itself_o therein_o manifest_o 2_o and_o luke_n describe_v therewithal_o that_o he_o be_v furnish_v with_o weapon_n and_o power_n to_o do_v hurt_v when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v obtain_v letter_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v all_o those_o bind_v to_o jerusalem_n who_o he_o shall_v find_v profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o woman_n that_o it_o may_v the_o better_o appear_v how_o desirous_a he_o be_v to_o shed_v blood_n who_o have_v no_o respect_n of_o sex_n who_o even_o arm_a enemy_n be_v wont_a to_o spare_v in_o the_o heat_n of_o war_n therefore_o he_o set_v forth_o before_o we_o a_o fierce_a and_o cruel_a beast_n who_o have_v not_o only_a liberty_n give_v he_o to_o rage_n but_o have_v also_o his_o power_n increase_v to_o devour_v and_o destroy_v godly_a man_n as_o if_o a_o mad_a man_n have_v have_v a_o sword_n put_v into_o his_o hand_n whereas_o i_o have_v translate_v it_o sect_n luke_n have_v way_n which_o metaphor_n be_v common_a enough_o in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o paul_n his_o purpose_n be_v quite_o to_o put_v out_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o destroy_v all_o the_o godly_a cruel_o 3_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n in_o crave_v epistle_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n he_o run_v headlong_o against_o christ_n willing_o and_o now_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o obey_v whether_o he_o will_v or_o no._n this_o be_v sure_o the_o most_o excellent_a mercy_n of_o god_n in_o that_o that_o man_n be_v reclaim_v unto_o salvation_n contrary_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o mind_n who_o so_o great_a a_o heat_n carry_v headlong_o into_o destruction_n whereas_o the_o lord_n suffer_v he_o to_o receive_v letter_n and_o to_o come_v near_o to_o the_o city_n hereby_o we_o see_v how_o well_o he_o know_v the_o very_a instant_n of_o time_n to_o do_v every_o thing_n in_o due_a time_n he_o can_v have_v prevent_v he_o soon_o if_o it_o have_v seem_v good_a to_o he_o so_o to_o do_v that_o he_o may_v deliver_v the_o godly_a from_o fear_n and_o carefulness_n but_o he_o set_v out_o his_o benefit_n more_o thereby_o in_o that_o he_o ty_v the_o jaw_n of_o the_o greedy_a wolf_n even_o when_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o enter_v the_o sheepfolde_a also_o we_o know_v that_o man_n stubborness_n increase_v more_o and_o more_o by_o go_v forward_o wherefore_o the_o conversion_n of_o paul_n be_v so_o much_o the_o hard_a forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v already_o make_v more_o obstinate_a by_o continue_v his_o fury_n shine_v about_o he_o because_o it_o be_v none_o easy_a matter_n to_o pull_v down_o so_o great_a pride_n to_o break_v such_o a_o lofty_a courage_n to_o pacify_v such_o a_o blind_a heat_n of_o wicked_a zeal_n and_o final_o to_o bridle_v a_o most_o unbrideled_a beast_n christ_n must_v needs_o have_v show_v some_o sign_n of_o his_o majesty_n whereby_o paul_n may_v perceive_v that_o he_o have_v to_o do_v with_o god_n himself_o &_o not_o with_o any_o mortal_a man_n although_o there_o be_v some_o respect_n have_v of_o humble_v he_o because_o he_o be_v unworthy_a to_o have_v christ_n to_o accustom_v he_o by_o and_o by_o to_o obey_v by_o lay_v upon_o his_o neck_n the_o meek_a and_o sweet_a yoke_n of_o his_o spirit_n &_o he_o be_v scarce_o capable_a of_o so_o great_a gentleness_n until_o his_o cruelty_n may_v be_v break_v man_n sense_n can_v comprehend_v the_o divine_a glory_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v but_o as_o god_n do_v oftentimes_o put_v upon_o he_o form_n wherein_o he_o do_v show_v himself_o so_o christ_n do_v now_o declare_v and_o make_v manifest_a his_o divinity_n to_o paul_n &_o show_v some_o token_n of_o his_o presence_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o terrify_v paul_n for_o although_o the_o godly_a be_v afraid_a and_o tremble_v at_o the_o see_v of_o god_n yet_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o paul_n be_v far_o more_o afraid_a when_o as_o he_o perceive_v that_o the_o divine_a power_n of_o christ_n be_v set_v full_a against_o he_o 4_o and_o therefore_o luke_n say_v that_o he_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n for_o what_o other_o thing_n can_v befall_v man_n but_o that_o he_o must_v lie_v prostrate_a and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o nothing_o when_o he_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o present_a feel_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o bring_n down_o of_o paul_n that_o he_o may_v become_v apt_a to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o have_v despise_v so_o long_o as_o he_o sit_v hauty_o upon_o his_o horse_n saul_n saul_n luke_n compare_v the_o light_n which_o shine_v round_o about_o paul_n to_o lightning_n though_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o lightning_n do_v fly_v in_o the_o air_n and_o this_o voice_n which_o christ_n do_v send_v out_o to_o beat_v down_o his_o pride_n may_v full_o well_o be_v call_v a_o lightning_n or_o thunderbolt_n because_o it_o do_v not_o only_o strike_v he_o and_o make_v he_o astonish_v but_o do_v quite_o kill_v he_o so_o that_o he_o be_v now_o as_o no_o body_n with_o himself_o who_o do_v so_o much_o please_v himself_o before_o and_o do_v challenge_v to_o himself_o authority_n to_o put_v the_o gospel_n to_o flight_n luke_n put_v down_o his_o name_n in_o hebrew_n in_o this_o place_n saul_n saul_n because_o he_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n who_o speak_v unto_o he_o undoubted_o according_a to_o the_o common_a custom_n of_o the_o country_n 5_o who_o be_v thou_o lord_n we_o have_v paul_n now_o somewhat_o tame_v but_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o christ_n disciple_n pride_n be_v correct_v in_o he_o and_o his_o fury_n be_v bring_v down_o but_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o so_o thorough_o heal_v that_o he_o obey_v christ_n he_o be_v only_o ready_a to_o receive_v commandment_n who_o be_v before_o a_o blasphemer_n therefore_o this_o be_v the_o question_n of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v afraid_a and_o throw_v down_o with_o amazedness_n for_o why_o do_v he_o not_o know_v by_o so_o many_o sign_n of_o god_n presence_n that_o it_o be_v god_n that_o speak_v therefore_o that_o voice_n proceed_v from_o a_o pant_a and_o doubtful_a mind_n therefore_o christ_n drive_v he_o nigh_o unto_o repentance_n when_o he_o add_v i_o be_o jesus_n let_v we_o remember_v that_o that_o voice_n sound_v from_o heaven_n therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v pierce_v the_o mind_n of_o paul_n when_o he_o consider_v that_o he_o have_v make_v war_n against_o god_n hitherto_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v bring_v he_o by_o and_o by_o to_o true_a submission_n when_o he_o consider_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o escape_v scotfree_a if_o he_o shall_v continue_v rebellious_a against_o he_o who_o hand_n he_o can_v not_o escape_v this_o place_n contain_v a_o most_o profitable_a doctrine_n and_o the_o profit_n thereof_o be_v manifold_a for_o first_o christ_n show_v what_o great_a account_n he_o make_v of_o his_o gospel_n when_o he_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v his_o cause_n from_o which_o he_o will_v not_o be_v separate_v therefore_o he_o can_v no_o more_o refuse_v to_o defend_v the_o same_o than_o he_o can_v deny_v himself_o second_o
it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o they_o lay_v wait_v for_o paul_n privy_o that_o do_v when_o they_o can_v do_v no_o good_a this_o way_n it_o be_v likely_a that_o they_o come_v to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o city_n and_o that_o then_o the_o gate_n be_v watch_v that_o they_o may_v by_o one_o mean_n or_o other_o catch_v he_o for_o paul_n say_v that_o aretas_n the_o king_n governor_n command_v that_o which_o luke_n attribute_v in_o this_o place_n to_o the_o jew_n 25_o the_o disciple_n have_v take_v he_o by_o night_n there_o be_v a_o question_n move_v here_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o disciple_n to_o save_v paul_n thus_o or_o no_o and_o also_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o paul_n to_o escape_v danger_n by_o this_o mean_n or_o no_o for_o the_o law_n say_v that_o the_o wall_n of_o city_n be_v holy_a and_o that_o the_o gate_n be_v holy_a therefore_o he_o ought_v rather_o to_o have_v suffer_v death_n than_o to_o have_v suffer_v a_o public_a order_n to_o be_v break_v for_o his_o sake_n i_o answer_v that_o we_o must_v consider_v why_o it_o be_v decree_v by_o the_o law_n that_o the_o wall_n shall_v not_o be_v violate_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o city_n may_v not_o be_v lay_v open_a to_o murder_n and_o robbery_n and_o that_o the_o citizen_n may_v be_v free_a from_o treason_n that_o reason_n cease_v when_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o delivery_n of_o a_o innocent_a man_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o less_o lawful_a for_o the_o faithful_a to_o let_v down_o paul_n in_o a_o basket_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o any_o private_a person_n to_o leap_v over_o a_o wall_n that_o he_o may_v avoid_v the_o sudden_a invasion_n of_o the_o enemy_n cicero_n do_v handle_v this_o late_a member_n and_o he_o set_v down_o very_a well_o that_o although_o the_o law_n forbid_v a_o strange_a to_o come_v near_o the_o wall_n yet_o do_v not_o he_o offend_v who_o shall_v go_v up_o upon_o the_o wall_n to_o save_v the_o city_n because_o the_o law_n must_v always_o be_v incline_v to_o equity_n therefore_o paul_n be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v because_o he_o escape_v by_o stealth_n see_v he_o may_v do_v that_o without_o raise_v any_o tumult_n among_o the_o people_n nevertheless_o we_o see_v how_o the_o lord_n use_v to_o humble_v those_o that_o be_v he_o see_v that_o paul_n be_v enforce_v to_o steal_v his_o life_n from_o the_o watchman_n of_o the_o city_n if_o he_o will_v save_v himself_o 11.32_o 2_o cor._n 11.32_o therefore_o he_o reckon_v this_o example_n among_o his_o infirmity_n he_o be_v acquaint_v betimes_o with_o the_o cross_n with_o this_o first_o exercise_n 26_o and_o when_o saul_n be_v at_o jerusalem_n he_o assay_v to_o join_v himself_o to_o the_o disciple_n and_o they_o be_v all_o afraid_a of_o he_o not_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v a_o disciple_n 27_o but_o when_o barnabas_n have_v take_v he_o he_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o he_o tell_v they_o how_o that_o he_o have_v see_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o way_n and_o that_o he_o have_v speak_v to_o he_o and_o how_o he_o have_v behave_v himself_o bold_o at_o damascus_n in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n 28_o and_o he_o be_v conversant_a with_o they_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o when_o he_o be_v embolden_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n 29_o he_o speak_v and_o dispute_v with_o the_o grecian_n and_o they_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v he_o 30_o which_o when_o the_o brethren_n know_v they_o bring_v he_o to_o caesarea_n and_o send_v he_o to_o tharsus_n 31_o then_o the_o church_n throughout_o all_o judea_n and_o galilee_n &_o samaria_n have_v peace_n and_o they_o be_v edify_v and_o walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 26_o when_o saul_n be_v these_o be_v yet_o hard_a entrance_n for_o paul_n who_o be_v as_o yet_o but_o a_o fresh_a water_n soldier_n in_o that_o when_o he_o have_v hardly_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o enemy_n the_o disciple_n will_v not_o receive_v he_o for_o he_o may_v have_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v so_o toss_v too_o and_o fro_o as_o it_o be_v in_o mockage_n that_o he_o can_v have_v no_o rest_a place_n all_o his_o own_o nation_n be_v set_v against_o he_o for_o christ_n cause_n the_o christian_n refuse_v he_o may_v he_o not_o have_v be_v quite_o discourage_v and_o out_o of_o hope_n as_o one_o expel_v out_o of_o man_n company_n first_o what_o remain_v but_o that_o he_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o church_n see_v he_o be_v not_o receive_v but_o when_o he_o remember_v the_o life_n which_o he_o have_v lead_v aforetime_o he_o marvele_v not_o that_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o he_o therefore_o he_o do_v patient_o suffer_v the_o brethren_n to_o refuse_v his_o company_n see_v they_o have_v just_a cause_n of_o fear_n this_o be_v true_a conversion_n that_o whereas_o he_o rage_v horrible_o before_o he_o do_v now_o valiant_o suffer_v the_o storm_n of_o persecution_n &_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n when_o as_o he_o can_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o company_n of_o the_o godly_a he_o wait_v with_o a_o quiet_a mind_n until_o god_n reconcile_v they_o unto_o he_o we_o must_v diligent_o note_v what_o he_o desire_v to_o wit_n that_o he_o may_v be_v number_v among_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n this_o can_v he_o not_o obtain_v here_o be_v no_o ambition_n but_o he_o be_v to_o be_v instruct_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o make_v more_o account_n even_o of_o the_o low_a place_n among_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n than_o of_o all_o mastership_n in_o corrupt_a and_o revolt_a synagogue_n and_o from_o this_o submission_n be_v he_o exalt_v unto_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o honour_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o principal_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o no_o man_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o teacher_n in_o the_o church_n save_v only_o he_o who_o willing_o submit_v himself_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o fellow_n disciple_n with_o other_o man_n 27_o when_o barnabas_n have_v take_v he_o whereas_o the_o disciple_n flee_v so_o fast_o from_o paul_n that_o be_v peradventure_o a_o point_n of_o too_o great_a fearfulness_n and_o yet_o he_o speak_v of_o none_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n but_o of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o he_o do_v either_o extenuate_v or_o lighten_v their_o fault_n because_o they_o suspect_v he_o for_o just_a cause_n who_o they_o have_v find_v and_o try_v to_o be_v such_o a_o deadly_a enemy_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o they_o shall_v rash_o endanger_v themselves_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o entreat_v therefore_o i_o think_v that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o that_o fear_n which_o they_o conceive_v for_o just_a cause_n or_o that_o they_o deserve_v to_o be_v even_o accuse_v for_o the_o same_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v call_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o faith_n they_o will_v have_v provoke_v not_o paul_n only_o but_o also_o all_o the_o fury_n of_o hell_n without_o fear_n whence_o we_o gather_v that_o every_o fear_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v but_o such_o as_o cause_v we_o to_o turn_v aside_o from_o our_o duty_n the_o narration_n which_o luke_n add_v may_v be_v refer_v as_o well_o unto_o the_o person_n of_o barnabas_n as_o of_o paul_n yet_o i_o think_v rather_o that_o paul_n declare_v to_o the_o apostle_n what_o have_v befall_v he_o and_o yet_o the_o speech_n may_v be_v well_o apply_v to_o barnabas_n especial_o when_o as_o mention_v be_v make_v of_o paul_n his_o boldness_n 28_o luke_n say_v afterward_o that_o paul_n go_v in_o and_o out_o with_o the_o disciple_n which_o speech_n signify_v among_o the_o hebrew_n familiarity_n as_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o city_n be_v say_v to_o go_v in_o and_o out_o at_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n therefore_o after_o that_o paul_n be_v commend_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o barnabas_n he_o begin_v to_o be_v count_v one_o of_o the_o flock_n that_o he_o may_v be_v thorough_o know_v to_o the_o church_n luke_n say_v again_o that_o he_o deal_v bold_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o which_o word_n he_o commend_v his_o stoutness_n and_o courage_n in_o profess_v the_o gospel_n for_o he_o dare_v never_o have_v whisper_v amid_o so_o many_o let_v unless_o he_o have_v be_v endow_v with_o rare_a constancy_n nevertheless_o all_o man_n be_v teach_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v to_o wit_n every_o man_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o faith_n for_o though_o all_o be_v not_o paul_n yet_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o engender_v in_o our_o mind_n so_o great_a boldness_n that_o we_o be_v not_o altogether_o dumb_a when_o we_o have_v need_v to_o speak_v i_o
the_o province_n but_o they_o have_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o army_n out_o of_o italy_n therefore_o cornelius_n be_v a_o italian_a bear_v but_o he_o live_v at_o caesarea_n with_o his_o hundred_o to_o guard_v the_o city_n for_o the_o roman_n be_v wont_v so_o to_o distribute_v their_o place_n of_o abode_n that_o every_o city_n of_o renoun_n may_v have_v a_o garrison_n to_o stay_v sudden_a uproar_n a_o rare_a example_n that_o a_o soldier_n be_v so_o devout_a towards_o god_n so_o upright_o and_o courteous_a towards_o man_n for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o italian_n when_o as_o they_o be_v carry_v into_o the_o province_n to_o live_v in_o warfare_n run_v to_o and_o fro_o like_o hungry_a wolf_n to_o get_v some_o prey_n they_o have_v for_o the_o most_o part_n no_o more_o religion_n than_o beast_n they_o have_v as_o great_a care_n of_o innocence_n as_o cutthroat_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o virtue_n of_o cornelius_n deserve_v the_o great_a commendation_n in_o that_o lead_v a_o soldier_n life_n which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n most_o corrupt_a he_o serve_v god_n holy_o and_o live_v amongst_o man_n without_o do_v any_o hurt_n or_o injury_n and_o this_o be_v no_o small_a amplification_n of_o his_o praise_n in_o that_o cast_n away_o superstition_n wherein_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o bring_v up_o he_o embrace_v the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n for_o we_o know_v what_o account_n the_o italian_n make_v of_o themselves_o and_o how_o proud_o they_o despise_v other_o and_o the_o jew_n be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o such_o contempt_n that_o for_o their_o sake_n pure_a religion_n be_v count_v infamous_a &_o almost_o execrable_a see_v that_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v hinder_v cornelius_n but_o that_o forsake_v his_o idol_n he_o do_v embrace_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n alone_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o rare_a and_o singular_a sincerity_n moreover_o he_o can_v find_v scarce_o any_o thing_n among_o the_o jew_n wherewith_o he_o can_v be_v allure_v unto_o the_o study_n of_o godliness_n because_o there_o be_v then_o scarce_o one_o amongst_o a_o thousand_o which_o have_v even_o some_o small_a smattering_n of_o the_o law_n and_o undoubted_o cornelius_n have_v light_a upon_o some_o good_a worshipper_n of_o god_n who_o be_v sound_o from_o corrupt_a opinion_n do_v expound_v unto_o he_o the_o law_n faithful_o without_o mix_v any_o leaven_n therewith_o but_o because_o luke_n give_v he_o many_o title_n of_o commendation_n we_o must_v note_v they_o al._n 2_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o godly_a man_n and_o one_o that_o fear_v god_n second_o that_o like_o a_o good_a householder_n he_o have_v a_o care_n to_o instruct_v his_o family_n he_o praise_v he_o afterward_o for_o the_o office_n of_o love_n because_o he_o be_v beneficial_a towards_o all_o the_o people_n and_o last_o that_o he_o pray_v god_n continual_o the_o sum_n be_v this_o that_o cornelius_n be_v a_o man_n of_o singular_a virtue_n wherein_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o godly_a consist_v so_o that_o his_o life_n be_v frame_v in_o all_o point_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o god_n prescribe_v unto_o us._n and_o because_o the_o law_n be_v contain_v in_o two_o table_n luke_n commend_v in_o the_o former_a place_n cornelius_n his_o godliness_n second_o he_o descend_v unto_o the_o second_o part_n that_o he_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o love_n towards_o man_n this_o be_v very_o profitable_a to_o be_v mark_v because_o we_o have_v a_o way_n to_o live_v well_o describe_v in_o his_o person_n wherefore_o in_o order_v the_o life_n well_o let_v faith_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o foundation_n which_o be_v take_v away_o all_o other_o virtue_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o smoke_n luke_n reckon_v up_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o prayer_n as_o fruit_n &_o testimony_n of_o godliness_n and_o of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o that_o for_o good_a cause_n for_o religion_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n &_o the_o reverence_n of_o he_o neither_o can_v any_o man_n be_v count_v godly_a save_v he_o who_o acknowledge_v god_n to_o be_v his_o father_n &_o lord_n do_v addict_v himself_o whole_o to_o he_o and_o let_v we_o know_v that_o voluntary_a fear_n be_v commend_v in_o this_o place_n when_o those_o man_n submit_v themselves_o to_o god_n willing_o and_o from_o their_o heart_n who_o due_o consider_v with_o themselves_o what_o be_v due_a to_o he_o moreover_o because_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n do_v with_o feign_a trifle_n corrupt_a and_o deprave_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n luke_n add_v for_o good_a cause_n that_o cornelius_n pray_v continual_o whereby_o he_o do_v signify_v that_o he_o prove_v not_o his_o godliness_n only_o with_o external_a ceremony_n but_o that_o he_o worship_v god_n spiritual_o when_o as_o he_o exercise_v himself_o in_o prayer_n we_o must_v also_o note_v the_o continuance_n of_o his_o prayer_n whence_o we_o gather_v that_o he_o do_v not_o pray_v only_o coldlie_a after_o the_o common_a custom_n but_o that_o he_o be_v earnest_o bend_v to_o prayer_n as_o the_o continual_a benefit_n of_o god_n do_v exhort_v we_o and_o prick_v we_o forward_o thereunto_o and_o the_o force_n of_o faith_n ought_v there_o to_o show_v itself_o wherefore_o let_v every_o one_o of_o we_o exhort_v himself_o to_o persevere_v in_o prayer_n by_o the_o example_n of_o cornelius_n with_o all_o his_o house_n we_o must_v not_o light_o pass_v over_o this_o commendation_n that_o cornelius_n have_v a_o church_n in_o his_o house_n and_o sure_o a_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v so_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v god_n to_o be_v banish_v from_o his_o house_n for_o how_o unmeet_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o for_o he_o to_o maintain_v his_o own_o right_n stout_o that_o his_o wife_n child_n servant_n and_o maid_n may_v obey_v he_o and_o not_o to_o regard_v that_o god_n be_v disobey_v it_o shall_v sometime_o fall_v out_o so_o that_o a_o godly_a man_n can_v have_v even_o his_o wife_n to_o be_v of_o his_o mind_n yet_o he_o which_o rule_v other_o must_v endeavour_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o have_v god_n obey_v and_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o meet_v then_o that_o we_o shall_v consecrate_v all_o we_o to_o god_n as_o ourselves_o therefore_o if_o a_o godly_a man_n have_v child_n which_o be_v unlike_o he_o or_o a_o wife_n of_o evil_a condition_n or_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a servant_n let_v he_o not_o wink_v ne_o yet_o suffer_v his_o house_n to_o be_v pollute_v through_o his_o slothfulness_n the_o diligence_n of_o cornelius_n be_v not_o so_o much_o commend_v as_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o have_v his_o house_n obedient_a unto_o he_o in_o godliness_n and_o we_o must_v not_o omit_v the_o circumstance_n that_o he_o instruct_v his_o family_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n set_v light_n by_o the_o fear_n of_o danger_n which_o do_v hang_v over_o his_o head_n therefore_o for_o the_o jewish_a religion_n be_v in_o great_a contempt_n and_o no_o citizen_n of_o rome_n may_v free_o receive_v any_o strange_a religion_n as_o they_o call_v it_o wherefore_o although_o the_o sincere_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v evil_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o world_n yet_o be_v it_o too_o corrupt_a freghtfulnesse_n if_o that_o unjust_a hatred_n hinder_v any_o man_n from_o offer_v his_o family_n to_o god_n for_o a_o sacrifice_n by_o godly_a instruction_n give_v alm_n there_o be_v also_o the_o figure_n synecdoche_n in_o this_o member_n for_o as_o it_o be_v say_v even_o now_o that_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v prove_v by_o prayer_n so_o now_o when_o luke_n speak_v of_o love_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o one_o kind_n whereby_o he_o show_v that_o cornelius_n be_v a_o liberal_a and_o bountiful_a man_n for_o our_o godliness_n ought_v so_o to_o appear_v to_o man_n that_o we_o declare_v that_o we_o fear_v god_n by_o use_v bountifulness_n and_o justice_n the_o word_n alm_n be_v translate_v unto_o those_o external_a good_a work_n wherewith_o we_o help_v the_o poor_a forasmuch_o as_o miserecordia_fw-la or_o mercy_n be_v the_o inward_a affection_n of_o the_o hart_n proper_o for_o from_o this_o fountain_n spring_v true_a and_o well_o order_v bountifulness_n if_o the_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n of_o our_o brethren_n do_v move_v we_o to_o compassion_n if_o consider_v the_o unity_n which_o be_v among_o we_o 58.7_o isa_n 58.7_o we_o foster_v and_o cherish_v they_o as_o we_o will_v cherish_v our_o own_o flesh_n and_o study_v to_o help_v they_o as_o we_o will_v help_v our_o own_o member_n hypocrite_n be_v in_o deed_n sometime_o liberal_a or_o at_o least_o bountiful_a but_o howsoever_o they_o waste_v all_o yet_o no_o relief_n which_o they_o shall_v bestow_v upon_o the_o poor_a shall_v be_v whorthie_a to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o alm_n for_o we_o
appear_v what_o great_a regard_n christ_n have_v of_o our_o rudeness_n and_o ignorance_n who_o do_v abase_v himself_o so_o far_o for_o our_o sake_n that_o when_o he_o be_v now_o endue_v with_o heavenly_a glory_n he_o do_v yet_o notwithstanding_o eat_v and_o drink_v as_o a_o mortal_a man_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v complain_v that_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n be_v obscure_a and_o doubtful_a for_o he_o suffer_v his_o disciple_n to_o be_v slow_a and_o hard_o of_o belief_n for_o this_o cause_n that_o be_v better_o confirm_v they_o may_v take_v from_o we_o all_o occasion_n of_o doubt_v yea_o rather_o we_o must_v endeavour_v ourselves_o that_o our_o unworthiness_n and_o unthankfulness_n do_v not_o darken_v so_o great_a kindness_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n towards_o us._n but_o when_o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o christ_n do_v eat_v curious_a man_n move_v a_o question_n what_o become_v of_o that_o meat_n but_o the_o answer_n be_v easy_a that_o like_a as_o it_o be_v create_v of_o nothing_o so_o be_v it_o easy_o bring_v to_o nothing_o by_o the_o divine_a power_n of_o christ_n that_o meat_n which_o be_v take_v for_o the_o sustenance_n of_o the_o body_n be_v concoct_v and_o afterward_o digest_v but_o we_o know_v that_o christ_n take_v this_o meat_n to_o feed_v our_o faith_n and_o in_o this_o use_n be_v it_o spend_v and_o those_o man_n be_v deceive_v who_o think_v that_o christ_n do_v only_o seem_v to_o eat_v for_o what_o good_a can_v such_o a_o visure_n or_o vain_a show_n have_v do_v for_o when_o as_o we_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o enforce_v with_o any_o necessity_n of_o his_o own_o to_o eat_v but_o that_o he_o mean_v only_o to_o provide_v for_o those_o that_o be_v he_o all_o occasion_n be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o frivolous_a invention_n of_o man_n 42_o and_o he_o command_v us._n he_o begin_v in_o this_o place_n to_o entreat_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n do_v rise_v again_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o he_o may_v once_o judge_v the_o world_n for_o by_o the_o same_o right_n be_v the_o government_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o the_o church_n due_a to_o he_o he_o say_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a because_o when_o as_o the_o dead_a shall_v rise_v again_o other_o also_o who_o shall_v then_o remain_v alive_a 4.17_o 1._o cor._n 15.51_o 52._o 1._o thessa_n 4.17_o shall_v be_v change_v in_o a_o moment_n as_o paul_n teach_v in_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o thessalonian_o and_o the_o fowerth_o chapter_n in_o the_o word_n testify_v there_o be_v great_a weight_n because_o as_o man_n be_v natural_o incline_v unto_o unbelief_n the_o simple_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o effectual_a unless_o the_o lord_n shall_v establish_v it_o with_o strong_a protestation_n and_o chief_o every_o one_o of_o we_o do_v feel_v in_o himself_o too_o much_o what_o a_o hard_a matter_n it_o be_v both_o to_o lift_v up_o our_o mind_n to_o hope_v for_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v entangle_v in_o earthly_a snare_n and_o also_o continual_o to_o keep_v they_o fix_v in_o this_o meditation_n see_v they_o cease_v not_o with_o their_o lightness_n to_o be_v carry_v hither_o and_o thither_o continual_o 43_o to_o he_o bear_v all_o the_o prophet_n luke_n touch_v and_o gather_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o sermon_n brief_o as_o we_o have_v say_v therefore_o be_v he_o so_o short_a in_o note_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o history_n let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o word_n utter_v by_o peter_n be_v not_o recite_v in_o this_o place_n but_o that_o it_o be_v only_o declare_v of_o what_o thing_n he_o entreat_v and_o we_o must_v consider_v three_o thing_n that_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o christ_n to_o reconcile_v man_n to_o god_n when_o their_o sin_n be_v do_v away_o that_o we_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o faith_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o new_a or_o of_o late_o invent_v but_o that_o it_o have_v all_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o bear_v witness_n of_o it_o as_o touch_v the_o first_o if_o god_n be_v please_v and_o pacify_v by_o not_o impute_v our_o sin_n it_o appear_v hereby_o that_o he_o hate_v and_o be_v displease_v with_o all_o mankind_n until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o begin_v to_o please_v he_o by_o free_a pardon_n therefore_o we_o be_v all_o condemn_v of_o sin_n which_o make_v we_o subject_a to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o bind_v we_o with_o the_o guiltiness_n of_o eternal_a death_n and_o because_o we_o be_v destitute_a of_o righteousness_n in_o ourselves_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o fly_v unto_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n as_o unto_o our_o only_a fortress_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o the_o faithful_a receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n there_o be_v understand_v a_o hide_a contrariety_n between_o they_o and_o god_n for_o god_n must_v needs_o offer_v it_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n that_o the_o faithful_a may_v receive_v it_o when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v give_v by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o we_o retune_n into_o god_n favour_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n alone_o because_o he_o have_v once_o reconcile_v he_o to_o we_o by_o his_o death_n or_o as_o they_o say_v common_o that_o we_o obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n by_o christ_n his_o mediation_n and_o come_n between_o and_o by_o none_o other_o mean_n satan_n can_v never_o blot_v out_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n the_o feel_n of_o their_o giltinesse_n but_o that_o they_o be_v always_o careful_a to_o crave_v pardon_n at_o god_n hand_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o way_n and_o mean_n to_o obtain_v pardon_n miserable_a man_n be_v delude_v with_o the_o juggling_n of_o satan_n do_v invent_v to_o themselves_o wonderful_a labarinth_n in_o who_o crook_n and_o turn_n they_o weary_v themselves_o in_o vain_a this_o first_o error_n do_v first_o lead_v they_o away_o from_o the_o right_a way_n because_o they_o assay_v to_o deserve_v pardon_n which_o be_v offer_v free_o and_o be_v receive_v by_o faith_n alone_o afterward_o there_o be_v innumerable_a kind_n of_o satisfaction_n invent_v whereby_o they_o appease_v god_n the_o beginning_n thereof_o flow_v in_o deed_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o when_o god_n give_v unto_o the_o father_n the_o sacrifice_n and_o rite_n of_o oblation_n he_o shadow_v christ_n blind_a and_o profane_a man_n set_v christ_n aside_o and_o follow_v a_o vain_a shadow_n do_v corrupt_v all_o that_o which_o be_v god_n in_o sacrifice_n and_o satisfaction_n wherefore_o what_o sacrifice_n soever_o the_o gentile_n do_v use_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o those_o which_o the_o turk_n and_o jew_n use_v at_o this_o day_n may_v be_v set_v against_o christ_n as_o thing_n altogether_o contrary_a the_o papist_n be_v never_o a_o whit_n better_o save_v only_o that_o they_o sprinkle_v their_o satisfaction_n with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o deal_v too_o disordered_o therein_o because_o be_v not_o content_a with_o christ_n alone_o they_o gather_v to_o themselves_o on_o every_o side_n a_o thousand_o manner_n of_o sacrifice_n or_o satisfaction_n therefore_o whosoever_o desire_v to_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n let_v he_o not_o turn_v aside_o from_o christ_n even_o the_o least_o nail_n breadth_n when_o as_o we_o hear_v that_o we_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o believe_v we_o must_v understande_v and_o know_v the_o force_n and_o nature_n of_o faith_n as_o undoubted_o peter_n entreat_v abundant_o of_o this_o after_o what_o sort_n we_o must_v believe_v in_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o with_o the_o sincere_a affection_n of_o the_o mind_n to_o embrace_v he_o as_o he_o be_v set_v before_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n so_o that_o faith_n depend_v upon_o the_o promise_n yet_o peter_n seem_v to_o deal_v amiss_o because_o whereas_o we_o have_v two_o principal_a thing_n by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n he_o do_v only_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o one_o of_o they_o for_o he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o repentance_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v omit_v in_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o we_o may_v easy_o answer_v that_o the_o regeneration_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v comprehend_v under_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o effect_n thereof_o for_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n for_o this_o cause_n partly_o that_o he_o may_v restore_v we_o into_o the_o father_n favour_n by_o the_o free_a imputation_n of_o righteousness_n partly_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v we_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v adopt_v by_o god_n
the_o world_n 2_o they_o reason_v with_o he_o obstinacy_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n accompany_v error_n this_o be_v now_o a_o fault_n have_v in_o it_o too_o gross_a ignorance_n in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o quiet_o receive_v the_o gentile_n into_o their_o bosom_n unite_v to_o they_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o faith_n but_o they_o do_v not_o only_o leap_v back_o but_o also_o contend_v with_o peter_n contentious_o and_o blame_v he_o for_o his_o fact_n which_o deserve_v great_a praise_n they_o hear_v that_o the_o gentile_n have_v embrace_v the_o word_n of_o god_n what_o let_v they_o then_o from_o embrace_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v couple_v together_o under_o the_o government_n of_o one_o god_n for_o what_o more_o holy_a bond_n can_v there_o be_v then_o when_o all_o man_n with_o one_o consent_n be_v couple_v &_o join_v to_o god_n and_o why_o shall_v not_o those_o grow_v together_o into_o one_o body_n who_o make_v the_o messiah_n of_o god_n their_o head_n but_o because_o they_o see_v the_o external_a form_n of_o the_o law_n break_v they_o think_v that_o heaven_n and_o earth_n do_v go_v together_o and_o note_v that_o although_o luke_n say_v before_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o brethren_n have_v hear_v this_o fame_n yet_o he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o offence_n but_o he_o bring_v in_o now_o as_o it_o be_v a_o new_a sect_n of_o man_n which_o do_v contend_v with_o peter_n the_o brethren_n say_v he_o heard_z and_o there_o a_o end_n it_o follow_v when_o peter_n be_v come_v to_o jerusalem_n those_o which_o be_v of_o the_o circumcision_n do_v contend_v with_o he_o who_o be_v undoubted_o unlike_a to_o the_o first_o again_o these_o word_n peri_fw-la tome_n do_v not_o simple_o signify_v the_o jew_n but_o those_o who_o be_v too_o much_o addict_v to_o keep_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n for_o there_o be_v none_o of_o jerusalem_n in_o christ_n flock_n at_o that_o time_n save_v only_o those_o which_o be_v circumcise_v from_o who_o then_o can_v he_o distinguish_v those_o man_n last_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n unlike_a to_o be_v true_a that_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o which_o be_v moderate_a be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v attempt_v this_o cumbate_n for_o though_o they_o have_v be_v offend_v yet_o they_o may_v have_v confer_v with_o peter_n private_o &_o have_v demand_v some_o reason_n of_o his_o fact_n by_o these_o reason_n be_o i_o move_v to_o think_v that_o those_o be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o circumcision_n who_o do_v make_v so_o great_a account_n of_o circumcision_n that_o they_o grant_v no_o man_n a_o place_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n unless_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o law_n and_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n by_o this_o holy_a rite_n do_v put_v off_o uncleanness_n 3_o unto_o man_n be_v uncircumcised_a this_o be_v not_o forbid_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v a_o tradition_n which_o come_v from_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o not_o withstand_v peter_n do_v not_o object_n that_o they_o deal_v too_o hardly_o with_o he_o in_o this_o point_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v by_o the_o necessity_n of_o man_n law_n he_o omit_v all_o this_o defence_n and_o do_v only_o answer_v that_o they_o come_v first_o unto_o he_o &_o that_o they_o be_v offer_v unto_o he_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o here_o we_o see_v the_o rare_a modesty_n of_o peter_n because_o whereas_o trust_v to_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o cause_n he_o may_v have_v just_o despice_v unskilful_a man_n who_o do_v trouble_v he_o unjust_o yet_o do_v he_o mild_o excuse_v himself_o as_o it_o become_v brethren_n this_o be_v no_o small_a trial_n in_o that_o he_o be_v unworthilie_o accuse_v because_o he_o have_v obey_v god_n faithful_o but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o this_o law_n be_v enjoin_v the_o whole_a church_n that_o every_o man_n be_v ready_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o life_n so_o often_o as_o the_o matter_n require_v &_o he_o remember_v that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o flock_n he_o do_v not_o only_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v rule_v but_o submit_v himself_o willing_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n doctrine_n in_o deed_n if_o it_o be_v of_o god_n be_v place_v above_o the_o chance_n &_o die_v of_o man_n judgement_n but_o because_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v pprophecy_n judge_v his_o servant_n must_v not_o refuse_v this_o condition_n that_o they_o prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v such_o as_o they_o will_v be_v account_v but_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o how_o far_o the_o defence_n both_o of_o doctrine_n as_o also_o of_o fact_n ought_v to_o extend_v for_o this_o present_a we_o must_v know_v this_o that_o peter_n do_v willing_o answer_v for_o himself_o when_o his_o fact_n be_v reprove_v and_o if_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v peter_n his_o successor_n why_o be_v not_o he_o bind_v by_o the_o same_o law_n admit_v we_o grant_v that_o this_o submission_n be_v voluntary_a yet_o why_o do_v not_o the_o successor_n imitate_v such_o a_o example_n of_o modesty_n show_v unto_o he_o although_o we_o need_v no_o long_a circumstance_n here_o for_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o the_o pope_n spew_v out_o in_o their_o sacrilegious_a decree_n peter_n do_v treacherouslie_o betray_v and_o forsake_v the_o privilege_n of_o their_o seat_n and_o so_o he_o betray_v the_o sea_n of_o rome_n for_o after_o that_o they_o have_v make_v the_o pope_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n affirm_v that_o he_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o man_n judgement_n after_o that_o they_o have_v lift_v he_o up_o above_o the_o cloud_n that_o be_v free_a from_o give_v a_o account_n his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n may_v stand_v for_o a_o reason_n they_o make_v he_o forthwith_o patron_n of_o the_o apostolic_a seat_n stout_o to_o defend_v the_o privilege_n thereof_o of_o what_o great_a sluggishness_n shall_v peter_n then_o be_v condemn_v if_o he_o do_v loose_v his_o right_n give_v he_o of_o god_n by_o yield_v so_o cowardly_a why_o do_v not_o he_o at_o least_o object_n that_o that_o he_o be_v free_a from_o the_o law_n and_o exempt_a from_o the_o common_a sort_n but_o he_o use_v no_o such_o preface_n but_o enter_v the_o cause_n without_o make_v any_o delay_n and_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o hinder_v we_o from_o contemn_v that_o idol_n safe_o see_v that_o usurp_a such_o unbrideled_a tyranny_n he_o have_v blot_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o peter_n beginning_n because_o this_o narration_n be_v all_o one_o with_o that_o which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o chapter_n next_o go_v before_o and_o because_o it_o be_v repeat_v almost_o in_o the_o very_a same_o word_n if_o any_o thing_n need_v to_o be_v expound_v let_v the_o reader_n repair_v thither_o the_o purpose_n of_o peter_n and_o all_o the_o whole_a sum_n of_o his_o speech_n shall_v appear_v by_o the_o conclusion_n yet_o before_o i_o come_v thither_o we_o must_v brief_o mark_v that_o he_o make_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n thou_o shall_v hear_v say_v he_o word_n wherein_o thou_o may_v have_v salvation_n not_o because_o salvation_n be_v include_v in_o man_n voice_n but_o because_o god_n offer_v his_o son_n there_o unto_o eternal_a life_n do_v also_o cause_v we_o to_o enjoy_v he_o by_o faith_n this_o be_v assure_o wonderful_a goodness_n of_o god_n who_o make_v man_n minister_n of_o life_n who_o have_v nothing_o but_o matter_n of_o death_n in_o themselves_o and_o which_o be_v not_o only_o subject_a to_o death_n in_o themselves_o but_o be_v also_o deadly_a to_o other_o nevertheless_o the_o filthy_a unthankfulness_n of_o the_o world_n bewray_v itself_o in_o this_o point_n which_o lothe_v true_a and_o certain_a salvation_n offer_v unto_o it_o and_o forsake_v it_o when_o it_o lie_v at_o the_o foot_n do_v imagine_v diverse_a and_o vain_a salvation_n in_o seek_v which_o it_o have_v rather_o gape_v be_v hungry_a then_o to_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o meet_v it_o and_o be_v present_a 16_o i_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o have_v sufficient_o declare_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n that_o when_o christ_n utter_v that_o sentence_n he_o do_v not_o make_v a_o comparison_n between_o two_o baptism_n 1.5_o acts._n 1.5_o but_o that_o he_o intend_v to_o declare_v what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o he_o and_o john_n for_o as_o we_o distinguish_v the_o sign_n from_o his_o truth_n so_o it_o be_v good_a to_o distinguish_v the_o minister_n from_o the_o author_n lest_o mortal_a man_n challenge_v that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n man_n have_v the_o sign_n in_o his_o hand_n it_o be_v christ_n alone_a which_o wash_v and_o regenerate_v
be_v prefer_v before_o he_o therefore_o we_o see_v how_o forget_v himself_o he_o respect_v nothing_o but_o that_o christ_n may_v be_v chief_a how_o he_o set_v before_o his_o eye_n the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n alone_o how_o he_o be_v content_a with_o the_o prosperous_a success_n of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o barnabas_n be_v no_o whit_n afraid_a lest_o paul_n do_v any_o whit_n debase_v he_o by_o his_o come_n so_o he_o glorify_v christ_n 26_o he_o add_v afterward_o that_o such_o a_o holy_a concord_n be_v bless_v from_o heaven_n for_o this_o be_v no_o small_a honour_n that_o the_o holy_a name_n of_o christian_n begin_v there_o for_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n though_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v long_a time_n at_o jerusalem_n yet_o god_n have_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n which_o be_v there_o this_o excellent_a title_n of_o his_o son_n whether_o it_o be_v because_o at_o antioch_n much_o people_n be_v grow_v together_o into_o one_o body_n as_o well_o of_o jew_n as_o of_o gentile_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v because_o the_o church_n may_v be_v better_o order_v in_o time_n of_o peace_n or_o because_o they_o be_v more_o bold_a to_o confess_v their_o faith_n there_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n christian_n both_o at_o jerusalem_n and_o also_o in_o samaria_n before_o that_o time_n and_o we_o know_v that_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o first_o fountain_n from_o which_o christianity_n do_v flow_v and_o what_o be_v it_o else_o to_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n but_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n but_o when_o they_o begin_v plain_o to_o be_v call_v that_o which_o they_o be_v the_o use_n of_o the_o name_n serve_v great_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n because_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o refer_v all_o their_o religion_n unto_o christ_n alone_o this_o be_v therefore_o a_o most_o excellent_a worship_n for_o the_o city_n of_o antioch_n that_o christ_n bring_v forth_o his_o name_n thence_o like_o a_o standard_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v make_v know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o there_o be_v some_o people_n who_o captain_n be_v christ_n and_o which_o do_v glory_n in_o his_o name_n but_o and_o if_o rome_n have_v such_o a_o colour_n of_o pride_n who_o be_v able_a to_o suffer_v the_o proud_a boasting_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n they_o will_v then_o not_o without_o cause_n thunder_n out_o that_o rome_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o head_n of_o all_o church_n but_o it_o be_v well_o that_o see_v they_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o whatsoever_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n they_o be_v find_v altogether_o vain_a yea_o antioch_n itself_o do_v plain_o prove_v that_o the_o estate_n of_o one_o place_n be_v not_o continual_a admit_v we_o grant_v the_o roman_n these_o plausible_a title_n we_o have_v be_v sometime_o shall_v they_o yet_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o take_v one_o half_a of_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o antioch_n and_o be_v the_o dignity_n of_o antioch_n the_o great_a now_o because_o the_o christian_n have_v their_o name_n thence_o yea_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o manifest_a mirror_n of_o the_o horrible_a vengeance_n of_o god_n for_o see_v there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v see_v there_o but_o evil_a favour_a wastinesse_n it_o remain_v that_o we_o learn_v to_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o know_v that_o unthankeful_a man_n have_v not_o so_o much_o liberty_n grant_v they_o that_o they_o may_v free_o mock_v god_n 27_o in_o those_o day_n come_v prophet_n from_o jerusalem_n to_o antioch_n 28_o and_o one_o of_o they_o name_v agabus_n arise_v and_o signify_v by_o the_o spirit_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a famine_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o happen_v under_o claudius_n caesar_n 29_o and_o as_o every_o one_o of_o the_o disciple_n be_v able_a they_o decree_v every_o man_n to_o send_v succour_n to_o the_o brethren_n which_o dwell_v in_o judea_n 30_o which_o thing_n they_o do_v send_v it_o unto_o the_o elder_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o barnabas_n and_o saul_n 27_o luke_n commend_v in_o this_o place_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n by_o the_o fruit_n because_o they_o endeavour_v to_o relieve_v the_o poverty_n of_o that_o church_n from_o whence_o they_o receive_v the_o gospel_n with_o their_o abundance_n &_o that_o do_v they_o unrequested_a such_o earnest_a care_n for_o the_o brethren_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v how_o serious_o they_o worship_v christ_n the_o head_n of_o al._n luke_n do_v signify_v that_o the_o fame_n of_o that_o church_n be_v spread_v abroad_o when_o he_o faith_n that_o there_o come_v excellent_a man_n thither_o from_o jerusalem_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o word_n prophet_n be_v take_v diverse_a way_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o we_o may_v learn_v by_o the_o former_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n those_o be_v call_v prophet_n in_o this_o place_n who_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophesi_v as_o the_o four_o daughter_n of_o philip_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o title_n give_v they_o hereafter_o and_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o foretell_v of_o the_o famine_n be_v attribute_v to_o agabus_n alone_o we_o may_v hereby_o gather_v that_o this_o be_v grant_v to_o every_o one_o by_o a_o certain_a measure_n to_o know_v thing_n to_o come_v 28_o he_o signify_v by_o the_o spirit_n luke_n do_v plain_o express_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o conjecture_n take_v by_o the_o star_n or_o some_o other_o natural_a cause_n again_o that_o agabus_n do_v not_o play_v the_o philosopher_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n but_o he_o utter_v that_o which_o god_n have_v appoint_v by_o the_o secret_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n barrenness_n may_v indeed_o be_v sometime_o fortolde_v by_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o star_n but_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n in_o such_o foretellinge_n both_o because_o of_o the_o opposite_a concourse_n and_o also_o especial_o because_o god_n do_v govern_v earthly_a thing_n at_o his_o pleasure_n far_o otherwise_o than_o can_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o star_n that_o he_o may_v lead_v man_n away_o from_o the_o perverse_a behold_v of_o star_n and_o although_o these_o foretelling_n have_v their_o degree_n yet_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o spirit_n do_v far_o exce_v they_o but_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o foretell_v of_o the_o famine_n be_v unlucky_a and_o not_o to_o be_v wish_v for_o for_o to_o what_o end_n be_v it_o for_o man_n to_o be_v make_v miserable_a before_o their_o time_n by_o have_v the_o unhappy_a event_n fortolde_v i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v many_o cause_n for_o which_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o man_n shall_v be_v warn_v before_o in_o time_n when_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n hang_v over_o their_o head_n &_o punishment_n due_a to_o their_o sin_n i_o omit_v other_o which_o be_v usual_a in_o the_o prophet_n because_o they_o have_v a_o space_n grant_v wherein_o to_o repent_v that_o they_o may_v prevent_v god_n judgement_n who_o have_v provoke_v his_o wrath_n against_o themselves_o because_o the_o faithful_a be_v instruct_v in_o time_n to_o arm_v themselves_o with_o patience_n because_o the_o obstinate_a wickedness_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v convict_v because_o both_o good_a and_o evil_n learn_v that_o misery_n do_v not_o come_v by_o chance_n but_o that_o they_o be_v punishment_n wherewith_o god_n do_v punish_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n because_o those_o be_v awake_v out_o of_o their_o sleep_n and_o sluggishness_n by_o this_o mean_n who_o take_v great_a delight_n in_o their_o vice_n the_o profit_n of_o this_o present_a pprophecy_n appear_v by_o the_o text_n because_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n be_v thereby_o prick_v forward_o to_o relieve_v their_o brethren_n which_o be_v in_o misery_n which_o happen_v under_o claudius_n suetonius_n also_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o famine_n who_o say_v that_o there_o be_v crust_n or_o shard_n throw_v at_o claudius_n his_o head_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o market_n and_o that_o he_o be_v so_o sore_o afraid_a of_o ston_a that_o he_o have_v a_o singular_a care_n afterward_o during_o his_o whole_a life_n to_o make_v provision_n for_o victual_n and_o josephus_n in_o his_o fifteen_o book_n of_o antiquity_n say_v that_o judea_n be_v sore_o oppress_v with_o scarcity_n by_o reason_n of_o continual_a drought_n 29_o but_o here_o arise_v a_o question_n see_v that_o the_o misery_n be_v common_a to_o all_o why_o ought_v they_o rather_o to_o have_v succour_v one_o people_n than_o all_o the_o rest_n i_o answer_v that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o judea_n be_v impoverish_v with_o great_a destruction_n of_o war_n and_o other_o misery_n the_o man_n of_o antioch_n be_v not_o without_o cause_n more_o move_v with_o the_o misery_n of_o the_o brethren_n which_o be_v
there_o second_o the_o great_a the_o rage_n of_o the_o enemy_n be_v the_o more_o wretched_a be_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o brethren_n final_o paul_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o 3._o gal._n 3._o that_o judea_n have_v certain_a especial_a necessity_n whereof_o all_o other_o have_v regard_v not_o without_o cause_n and_o this_o thankfulness_n deserve_v no_o small_a commendation_n in_o that_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n think_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o help_v the_o needy_a brethren_n from_o who_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o just_a than_o that_o those_o shall_v reap_v earthly_a thing_n who_o have_v sow_v spiritual_a thing_n as_o every_o man_n be_v too_o much_o bend_v to_o provide_v for_o himself_o every_o man_n may_v ready_o have_v except_v and_o object_v why_o shall_v not_o i_o rather_o provide_v for_o myself_o but_o when_o they_o call_v to_o mind_v how_o great_o they_o be_v indebt_v to_o the_o brethren_n omit_v that_o carefulness_n they_o turn_v themselves_o to_o help_v they_o in_o sum_n this_o alm_n have_v a_o double_a end_n for_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n do_v the_o duty_n of_o charity_n towards_o their_o needy_a brethren_n &_o they_o do_v also_o testify_v by_o this_o sign_n what_o great_a account_n they_o make_v of_o the_o gospel_n while_o that_o they_o honour_v the_o place_n whence_o it_o come_v as_o every_o man_n be_v able_a we_o see_v the_o man_n of_o antioch_n observe_v in_o this_o place_n that_o mean_v which_o paul_n prescribe_v to_o the_o corinthian_n whether_o they_o do_v this_o of_o themselves_o 8.6_o 2._o cor._n 8.6_o or_o be_v instruct_v by_o he_o and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o continue_v like_a to_o himself_o in_o both_o place_n therefore_o we_o must_v follow_v this_o rule_n that_o every_o one_o consider_v how_o much_o be_v grant_v he_o impart_v the_o same_o courteous_o with_o his_o brethren_n as_o one_o that_o must_v give_v a_o account_n so_o shall_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o which_o be_v but_o poor_a shall_v have_v a_o liberal_a mind_n &_o that_o a_o small_a reward_n shall_v be_v count_v a_o fat_a &_o gorgeous_a sacrifice_n by_o this_o word_n determine_v luke_n give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o their_o oblation_n be_v voluntary_a which_o thing_n ought_v so_o to_o be_v as_o paul_n teach_v that_o we_o reach_v out_o our_o hand_n unto_o the_o needy_a 9.7_o 2._o cor._n 9.7_o not_o as_o constrain_v but_o cheerful_o when_o as_o he_o name_v every_o one_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o one_o do_v not_o prescribe_v another_o a_o law_n neither_o do_v they_o burden_n one_o another_o with_o their_o prejudice_n but_o that_o every_o man_n do_v bestow_v his_o liberality_n as_o seem_v good_a to_o himself_o and_o we_o must_v note_v the_o word_n diaconias_fw-la whereby_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o rich_a man_n have_v great_a abundance_n give_v they_o upon_o that_o condition_n that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o poor_a in_o the_o dispensation_n commit_v to_o they_o by_o god_n last_o luke_n teach_v that_o the_o blessing_n be_v send_v not_o to_o all_o the_o whole_a nation_n but_o only_o to_o those_o that_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n not_o because_o we_o ought_v never_o to_o use_v any_o bountifulness_n or_o courtesy_n towards_o the_o unbeliever_n see_v love_n ought_v to_o extend_v itself_o unto_o all_o mankind_n but_o because_o those_o aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v who_o god_n have_v join_v and_o link_v to_o we_o more_o near_o and_o with_o a_o more_o holy_a band_n 30_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o elder_n we_o must_v note_v two_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n do_v choose_v faithful_a man_n and_o of_o know_v honesty_n to_o carry_v their_o blessing_n second_o that_o they_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o elder_n that_o they_o may_v wise_o bestow_v the_o same_o for_o if_o alm_n be_v throw_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o common_a people_n or_o be_v set_v in_o the_o midst_n where_o every_o one_o may_v take_v what_o he_o will_v every_o man_n will_v by_o and_o by_o take_v it_o to_o himself_o as_o if_o it_o be_v some_o common_a prey_n and_o so_o he_o that_o be_v most_o bold_a will_v defraud_v the_o needy_a yea_o through_o his_o gredinesse_n he_o will_v cut_v the_o throat_n of_o the_o hungry_a therefore_o let_v we_o mark_v these_o place_n which_o teach_v that_o we_o must_v not_o only_o deal_v upright_o and_o faithful_o but_o that_o there_o be_v also_o a_o order_n &_o wisdom_n require_v as_o well_o in_o make_v choice_n as_o in_o all_o our_o administration_n those_o be_v call_v elder_n in_o who_o hand_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v among_o who_o the_o apostle_n be_v chief_a the_o man_n of_o antioch_n refer_v the_o holy_a money_n which_o they_o have_v appoint_v for_o the_o poor_a to_o their_o discretion_n if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o this_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o deacons_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v deny_v that_o they_o can_v both_o serve_v table_n and_o attend_v upon_o doctrine_n the_o answer_n be_v easy_a that_o the_o deacon_n be_v appoint_v over_o table_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v under_o the_o elder_n neither_o do_v they_o any_o thing_n but_o at_o their_o appointment_n chap._n xii_o 1_o about_o that_o time_n herod_n the_o king_n stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n to_o afflict_v certain_a of_o the_o church_n 2_o and_o he_o kill_v james_n the_o brother_n of_o john_n with_o the_o sword_n 3_o and_o when_o he_o see_v that_o this_o please_v the_o jew_n he_o proceed_v to_o take_v peter_n also_o then_o be_v the_o day_n of_o sweet_a bread_n 4_o when_o he_o have_v take_v he_o also_o he_o put_v he_o in_o prison_n deliver_v he_o to_o four_o quaternion_n of_o soldier_n to_o be_v keep_v intend_v after_o easter_n to_o bring_v he_o forth_o to_o the_o people_n 5_o therefore_o peter_n be_v keep_v in_o prison_n but_o continual_a prayer_n be_v make_v for_o he_o of_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 1_o here_o follow_v new_a persecution_n raise_v by_o herod_n we_o see_v that_o the_o church_n have_v some_o short_a truce_n that_o it_o may_v as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o short_a breathe_n recover_v some_o courage_n against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o that_o it_o may_v then_o fight_v afresh_o so_o at_o this_o day_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o faithful_a have_v bear_v the_o brunt_n of_o one_o or_o two_o conflict_n shall_v promise_v themselves_o rest_n or_o shall_v desire_v such_o a_o call_n as_o old_a overwear_a soldier_n use_v to_o have_v let_v this_o suffice_v they_o if_o the_o lord_n grant_v they_o some_o time_n wherein_o they_o may_v recover_v their_o strength_n this_o herod_n be_v agrippa_n the_o great_a the_o son_n of_o aristobulus_n who_o his_o father_n slay_v josephus_n do_v no_o where_n call_v he_o herod_n it_o may_v be_v because_o he_o have_v a_o brother_n who_o be_v king_n of_o chalcis_n who_o name_n be_v herod_n this_o man_n be_v incense_v to_o afflict_v the_o church_n not_o so_o much_o for_o any_o love_n he_o have_v to_o religion_n as_o that_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o may_v flatter_v the_o common_a people_n which_o do_v otherwise_o not_o great_o favour_v he_o or_o rather_o he_o be_v move_v hereunto_o with_o tyrannical_a cruelty_n because_o he_o be_v afraid_a of_o innovation_n which_o tyrant_n do_v always_o fear_v lest_o it_o trouble_v the_o quiet_a estate_n of_o their_o dominion_n yet_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o he_o do_v shed_v innocent_a blood_n that_o according_a to_o the_o common_a craft_n of_o king_n he_o may_v gratify_v a_o furious_a people_n because_o saint_n luke_n will_v short_o after_o declare_v that_o peter_n the_o apostle_n be_v put_v into_o prison_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o pleasant_a spectacle_n he_o kill_v james._n undoubted_o the_o cruelty_n of_o this_o mad_a man_n be_v restrain_v and_o bridle_v by_o the_o secret_a power_n of_o god_n for_o assure_o he_o will_v never_o have_v be_v content_a with_o one_o or_o two_o murder_n and_o so_o have_v abstain_v from_o persecute_v the_o rest_n but_o he_o will_v rather_o have_v pyle_v up_o martyr_n upon_o heap_n unless_o god_n have_v set_v his_o hand_n against_o he_o and_o defend_v his_o flock_n so_o when_o we_o see_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o godliness_n be_v full_a of_o fury_n do_v not_o commit_v horrible_a slaughter_n that_o they_o may_v mix_v and_o imbrue_v all_o thing_n with_o blood_n let_v we_o know_v that_o we_o need_v not_o thank_v their_o moderation_n and_o clemency_n for_o this_o but_o because_o when_o the_o lord_n do_v spare_v his_o sheep_n he_o do_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o do_v so_o much_o hurt_v as_o they_o will_v this_o herod_n be_v not_o so_o courteous_a that_o
that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o custom_n but_o now_o there_o be_v another_o reason_n for_o in_o appoint_v a_o public_a fast_o which_o use_v to_o be_v do_v in_o hard_a matter_n and_o of_o great_a importance_n they_o provoke_v both_o themselves_o and_o other_o unto_o a_o earnest_a ferventness_n in_o prayer_n for_o this_o be_v oftentimes_o add_v in_o scripture_n as_o a_o help_n to_o prayer_n but_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o such_o weight_n to_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n among_o the_o gentile_n the_o teacher_n of_o antioch_n do_v not_o without_o cause_n earnest_o pray_v the_o lord_n that_o he_o will_v enable_v his_o servant_n and_o that_o be_v not_o the_o end_n of_o their_o prayer_n that_o god_n will_v by_o his_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n &_o discretion_n govern_v their_o judgment_n in_o choose_v because_o all_o disputation_n or_o doubt_v concern_v this_o matter_n be_v take_v away_o but_o that_o god_n will_v furnish_v those_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o strength_n who_o he_o have_v already_o choose_v to_o himself_o that_o he_o will_v strengthen_v they_o with_o his_o power_n against_o all_o the_o invasion_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o world_n that_o he_o will_v bless_v their_o labour_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v unfruitful_a that_o he_o will_v open_v a_o gate_n for_o the_o new_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n which_o luke_n reckn_v up_o in_o the_o three_o place_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o consecration_n as_o we_o have_v say_v chapter_n 6._o 6.6_o acts._n 6.6_o for_o the_o apostle_n retain_v the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v use_v among_o the_o jew_n according_a to_o the_o old_a custom_n of_o the_o law_n as_o also_o kneel_v &_o such_o rite_n which_o be_v profitable_a to_o exercise_v godliness_n in_o sum_n this_o be_v the_o end_n why_o they_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o barnabas_n and_o paul_n that_o the_o church_n may_v offer_v they_o to_o god_n and_o that_o they_o may_v with_o their_o consent_n declare_v that_o this_o office_n be_v enjoin_v they_o by_o god_n for_o the_o call_n be_v proper_o god_n alone_o but_o the_o external_a ordain_v do_v belong_v to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o heavenly_a oracle_n 4_o therefore_o when_o they_o be_v send_v forth_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o go_v to_o seleucia_n and_o thence_o they_o sail_v into_o cyprus_n 5_o and_o when_o they_o be_v at_o salamis_n they_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o they_o have_v john_n also_o for_o their_o minister_n 6_o and_o when_o they_o have_v pass_v over_o the_o island_n unto_o paphos_n they_o find_v a_o certain_a false_a prophet_n a_o jew_n name_v ba●-iesus_a 7_o who_o be_v with_o sergius_n paulus_n the_o proconsul_n a_o wise_a man_n when_o he_o have_v call_v barnabas_n and_o paul_n he_o seek_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 8_o and_o elimas_n the_o sorcerer_n for_o so_o be_v his_o name_n expound_v resist_v they_o seek_v to_o turn_v away_o the_o proconsul_n from_o the_o faith_n 9_o and_o saul_n which_o be_v also_o call_v paul_n be_v full_a of_o the_o ghost_n and_o look_v steadfast_o on_o he_o 10_o say_fw-la o_o thou_o that_o be_v full_a of_o all_o deceit_n and_o wickedness_n thou_o son_n of_o the_o devil_n thou_o enemy_n of_o all_o righteousness_n do_v thou_o not_o cease_v to_o pervert_v the_o streght_n way_n of_o the_o lord_n 11_o and_o now_o behold_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v be_v blind_a not_o see_v the_o sun_n for_o a_o time_n and_o forthwith_o there_o fall_v upon_o he_o mist_n and_o darkness_n and_o go_v about_o he_o seek_v some_o to_o lead_v he_o by_o the_o hand_n 12_o then_o the_o proconsul_n see_v what_o have_v happen_v he_o believe_v wonder_v at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o lord_n 4_o be_v send_v out_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v here_o of_o the_o election_n make_v by_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v altogether_o a_o divine_a call_n the_o church_n do_v only_o receive_v those_o who_o be_v offer_v they_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n he_o say_v that_o they_o come_v first_o to_o seleucia_n which_o be_v a_o city_n of_o syria_n there_o be_v indeed_o a_o country_n of_o the_o same_o name_n but_o it_o be_v more_o likely_a that_o luke_n speak_v of_o the_o city_n which_o be_v not_o far_o from_o cyprus_n by_o sea_n 5_o he_o say_v that_o they_o begin_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n first_o in_o salamis_n a_o famous_a city_n of_o cyprus_n notwithstanding_o they_o seem_v to_o begin_v amiss_o for_o whereas_o they_o be_v send_v special_o to_o the_o gentile_n they_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n nevertheless_o to_o the_o jew_n i_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o addict_v to_o the_o gentile_n that_o set_v aside_o the_o jew_n it_o stand_v they_o upon_o to_o go_v straight_o to_o the_o gentile_n for_o when_o god_n do_v make_v they_o teacher_n of_o the_o gentile_n he_o do_v not_o depose_v they_o from_o the_o office_n which_o they_o have_v heretofore_o exercise_v so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o let_v they_o but_o that_o they_o may_v take_v pain_n both_o with_o jew_n and_o gentile_n yea_o farther_z it_o be_v meet_v that_o they_o shall_v begin_v with_o the_o jew_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n moreover_o luke_n add_v by_o the_o way_n that_o they_o be_v holpen_v by_o john_n for_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o he_o be_v their_o minister_n for_o any_o private_a use_n or_o for_o the_o use_n of_o body_n but_o rather_o in_o that_o he_o be_v their_o helper_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n he_o commend_v his_o godly_a study_n and_o industry_n not_o that_o the_o degree_n of_o honour_n be_v equal_a but_o because_o the_o labour_n be_v common_a to_o all_o for_o which_o cause_n he_o have_v the_o less_o excuse_n afterward_o see_v that_o he_o forsake_v the_o holy_a call_n 6_o when_o they_o have_v pass_v over_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o this_o their_o passage_n be_v not_o altogether_o without_o fruit_n and_o assure_o luke_n will_v never_o have_v pass_v over_o with_o silence_n a_o general_a repulse_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o he_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o idle_a in_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v in_o their_o journey_n see_v that_o he_o make_v haste_n unto_o a_o famous_a history_n which_o he_o will_v set_v down_o immediate_o and_o forasmuch_o as_o salamis_n situate_v upon_o the_o east_n coast_n do_v look_v towards_o syria_n it_o be_v requisite_a that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n shall_v pass_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o island_n unto_o the_o otherside_n that_o they_o may_v come_v to_o paphus_n for_o paphus_n be_v a_o city_n situate_a upon_o the_o sea_n coast_n towards_o the_o south_n furthermore_o though_o all_o the_o island_n be_v dedicate_v to_o venus_n yet_o paphus_n be_v the_o principal_a sea_n of_o the_o idol_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v more_o wonderful_a in_o that_o he_o will_v have_v the_o light_n of_o his_o gospel_n to_o pierce_v into_o such_o a_o filthy_a and_o cruel_a den_n for_o we_o may_v thereby_o gather_v what_o manner_n integrity_n and_o chastity_n and_o honesty_n and_o temperance_n be_v in_o that_o city_n in_o that_o religion_n do_v grant_v liberty_n to_o the_o inhabitant_n to_o commit_v all_o manner_n shameful_a and_o heinous_a offence_n they_o find_v a_o certain_a false_a prophet_n see_v that_o religion_n be_v quite_o corrupt_a among_o the_o jew_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_v if_o they_o fall_v away_o unto_o many_o wicked_a superstition_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v hitherto_o profess_v that_o they_o worship_v a_o certain_a peculiar_a god_n this_o be_v a_o fair_a colour_n to_o deceive_v withal_o see_v that_o they_o may_v pretend_v the_o name_n of_o the_o unknown_a god_n at_o their_o pleasure_n but_o this_o be_v a_o wonder_n how_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o e●imas_n with_o his_o juggle_a to_o cozen_v a_o grave_n and_o wise_a man_n for_o we_o know_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v at_o that_o time_n hate_v of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o roman_n and_o with_o hatred_n be_v couple_v extreme_a contempt_n of_o they_o now_o luke_n do_v not_o without_o cause_n express_o commend_v sergius_n his_o wisdom_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o his_o foolishness_n and_o lightness_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o seducing_n of_o the_o sorcerer_n his_o meaning_n be_v in_o deed_n to_o show_v in_o a_o clear_a mirror_n how_o frivolous_a and_o vain_a man_n wisdom_n be_v which_o can_v beware_v of_o such_o gross_a subtlety_n of_o satan_n and_o assure_o where_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n do_v not_o appear_v the_o more_o man_n seem_v to_o be_v wise_a the_o more_o filthylie_a foolish_a be_v
that_o they_o be_v deprive_v of_o a_o sound_a mind_n and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n who_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o fight_v against_o god_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n again_o he_o hit_v they_o in_o the_o tooth_n with_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o lest_o any_o shall_v object_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o some_o dark_a and_o unknown_a matter_n he_o add_v also_o that_o he_o do_v speak_v of_o no_o other_o prophecy_n then_o of_o those_o which_o be_v read_v every_o sabbath_n day_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o oracle_n of_o scripture_n be_v most_o plain_a &_o know_v to_o the_o most_o ignorant_a &_o yet_o they_o know_v they_o not_o thus_o do_v paul_n teach_v how_o monstrous_a their_o unbelief_n be_v that_o he_o may_v make_v the_o hearer_n loathe_v it_o and_o by_o this_o example_n be_v we_o teach_v that_o although_o the_o lord_n appear_v to_o we_o by_o the_o scripture_n yet_o all_o man_n have_v not_o eye_n after_o that_o also_o the_o blockishness_n of_o the_o nation_n wax_v more_o gross_a as_o paul_n say_v elsewhere_o that_o there_o be_v a_o veil_n put_v before_o their_o face_n that_o they_o can_v see_v moses_n when_o he_o be_v present_a in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o must_v note_v that_o we_o be_v recall_v to_o the_o scripture_n lest_o the_o authority_n of_o great_a man_n deceive_v we_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o any_o man_n invent_v to_o himself_o a_o prejudice_n according_a to_o the_o wicked_a meaning_n of_o other_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o be_v acquit_v for_o paul_n exhort_v the_o man_n of_o antioth_n to_o judge_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n against_o the_o visured_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v it_o give_v that_o it_o may_v be_v read_v and_o read_v be_v not_o appoint_v in_o vain_a by_o the_o lord_n but_o that_o all_o godly_a man_n may_v thereby_o profit_v and_o judge_v what_o be_v right_a this_o they_o fulfil_v 4.28_o act._n 3.23_o act._n 4.28_o so_o that_o we_o see_v that_o not_o only_a creature_n void_a of_o understanding_n but_o even_o the_o very_a devil_n and_o also_o the_o wicked_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v execute_v by_o they_o that_o which_o with_o himself_o he_o have_v decree_v the_o same_o have_v we_o in_o the_o third_o &_o four_o chapter_n that_o when_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n do_v most_o of_o all_o rage_n to_o destroy_v he_o yet_o can_v they_o not_o obtain_v their_o purpose_n but_o rather_o they_o bring_v that_o to_o pass_v with_o their_o own_o hand_n which_o god_n have_v in_o his_o counsel_n determine_v which_o thing_n make_v not_o a_o little_a for_o commendation_n of_o god_n truth_n because_o he_o be_v not_o only_o of_o sufficient_a power_n to_o perform_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v but_o also_o those_o who_o go_v about_o to_o bring_v his_o counsel_n to_o nought_o do_v their_o endeavour_n to_o establish_v they_o though_o it_o be_v against_o their_o will_n for_o how_o shall_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n stand_v which_o the_o chief_a enemy_n be_v enforce_v to_o fulfil_v yet_o wisdom_n be_v necessary_a here_o lest_o we_o join_v god_n and_o satan_n together_o for_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o therefore_o excusable_a because_o they_o fulfil_v the_o scripture_n because_o we_o must_v consider_v their_o wicked_a will_n and_o not_o the_o event_n which_o they_o do_v not_o look_v for_o yea_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v count_v a_o miracle_n if_o we_o look_v into_o their_o work_n by_o itself_o it_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o god_n but_o as_o god_n do_v in_o the_o sun_n and_o other_o planet_n by_o wonderful_a cunning_a temper_n contrary_a motion_n &_o such_o as_o strive_v among_o themselves_o so_o he_o direct_v the_o perverse_a endeavour_n of_o the_o wicked_a by_o his_o secret_a power_n unto_o another_o end_n than_o they_o think_v upon_o and_o do_v desire_v lest_o they_o shall_v do_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o he_o will_v they_o in_o deed_n as_o touch_v themselves_o do_v contrary_a to_o his_o will_n but_o it_o fall_v out_o according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n after_o a_o incomprehensible_a manner_n forasmuch_o as_o this_o course_n be_v contrary_a to_o nature_n no_o marvel_n if_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n see_v it_o not_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v discern_v with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n or_o rather_o it_o must_v be_v reverence_v &_o those_o dog_n who_o bark_n against_o it_o must_v be_v despise_v with_o their_o wantonness_n 28_o when_o as_o they_o find_v no_o cause_n of_o death_n it_o be_v very_o appertinent_a to_o the_o matter_n that_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o christ_n be_v put_v to_o death_n guiltless_a for_o we_o can_v not_o have_v be_v justify_v by_o his_o death_n if_o he_o have_v suffer_v death_n for_o his_o own_o evil_a deed_n therefore_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v guiltless_a that_o his_o death_n may_v be_v a_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o undoubted_o i_o think_v that_o paul_n do_v plain_o declare_v that_o pilate_n condemn_v christ_n not_o according_a to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n but_o that_o he_o consent_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n after_o that_o he_o be_v overcome_v with_o the_o ungodly_a request_n of_o the_o people_n and_o also_o that_o the_o jew_n be_v drive_v by_o lust_n and_o not_o enforce_v by_o reason_n to_o desire_v christ_n death_n for_o it_o stand_v he_o upon_o to_o terrify_v the_o hearer_n that_o they_o may_v not_o couple_v themselves_o to_o so_o wicked_a a_o fact_n but_o luke_n do_v now_o in_o few_o word_n set_v down_o after_o his_o common_a custom_n those_o thing_n which_o paul_n do_v then_o more_o at_o large_a declare_v 29_o when_o they_o have_v fulfil_v all_o thing_n to_o wit_n which_o it_o please_v god_n shall_v be_v do_v by_o they_o for_o they_o do_v so_o handle_v christ_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o scripture_n leave_v unfulfil_v by_o this_o mean_n be_v the_o stumble_a block_n which_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o flesh_n conceive_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o ignominy_n of_o the_o cross_n take_v away_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o lay_v open_a to_o the_o furious_a fury_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o he_o obey_v his_o father_n decree_n 27.57_o mat._n 27.57_o furthermore_o it_o do_v also_o in_o scripture_n appear_v what_o condition_n be_v appoint_v for_o he_o in_o time_n past_a whereas_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v bury_v by_o the_o same_o which_o have_v slay_v he_o it_o seem_v contrary_a to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o it_o may_v be_v that_o luke_n do_v take_v the_o word_n bury_v indefinite_o and_o if_o it_o please_v you_o to_o refer_v it_o unto_o the_o same_o it_o shall_v be_v synecdoche_n for_o he_o be_v bury_v with_o pilate_n his_o leave_n and_o at_o the_o appointment_n and_o pleasure_n of_o the_o priest_n there_o be_v watchman_n set_v to_o watch_v the_o grave_n therefore_o though_o joseph_n and_o nicodemus_n do_v bury_v christ_n that_o be_v ascribe_v unproper_o and_o yet_o not_o absurd_o to_o the_o jew_n because_o it_o be_v not_o paul_n drift_n in_o this_o place_n to_o commend_v the_o good_a deed_n but_o to_o prove_v christ_n his_o resurrection_n because_o god_n take_v he_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n who_o his_o enemy_n have_v shut_v up_o there_o therefore_o he_o give_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o take_v thence_o privily_o or_o by_o stealth_n but_o that_o it_o be_v lay_v in_o a_o place_n both_o famous_a and_o know_v to_o the_o adversary_n and_o so_o consequent_o that_o even_o they_o be_v set_v to_o watch_v it_o &_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o it_o be_v not_o find_v whence_o we_o may_v gather_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o resurrection_n 30_o god_n have_v raise_v he_o up_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a yet_o join_v with_o the_o resurrection_n therefore_o do_v paul_n stand_v long_o upon_o this_o second_o point_n for_o he_o shall_v never_o have_v persuade_v his_o hearer_n that_o they_o be_v to_o seek_v salvation_n in_o christ_n death_n unless_o the_o power_n of_o almighty_a god_n have_v appear_v in_o raise_v christ_n from_o death_n 31_o after_o that_o he_o have_v say_v that_o christ_n come_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n which_o be_v beset_v with_o the_o hire_a minister_n of_o the_o adversary_n he_o add_v now_o that_o he_o appear_v to_o many_o of_o the_o disciple_n which_o bear_v faithful_a witness_n to_o the_o people_n and_o he_o call_v they_o witness_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o office_n 1.8_o acts._n 1.8_o because_o they_o be_v choose_v for_o this_o purpose_n as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n or_o else_o declare_v simple_o
yet_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v cure_v of_o those_o disease_n wherewith_o they_o be_v vex_v but_o forasmuch_o as_o god_n be_v determine_v to_o show_v a_o token_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o the_o cripple_n he_o prepare_v his_o mind_n before_o and_o make_v he_o capable_a of_o this_o that_o shall_v come_v upon_o he_o wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o make_v this_o a_o common_a rule_n because_o the_o cripple_n believe_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v heal_v but_o it_o be_v a_o peculiar_a preparation_n to_o receive_v the_o gift_n of_o heal_v and_o this_o kind_n of_o faith_n be_v likewise_o particular_a which_o give_v place_n to_o miracle_n which_o many_o of_o god_n child_n do_v want_v who_o be_v notwithstanding_o endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n who_o when_o paul_n behold_v steadfast_o we_o know_v how_o doubtful_a and_o how_o deceitful_a a_o thing_n the_o countenance_n of_o man_n be_v therefore_o there_o can_v no_o sure_a judgement_n be_v give_v thereby_o of_o faith_n which_o have_v god_n alone_o to_o be_v witness_n thereof_o but_o as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v the_o cripple_n faith_n be_v revel_v to_o paul_n by_o the_o secret_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o he_o be_v to_o the_o apopostle_n their_o only_a guide_n and_o master_n to_o work_v miracle_n 10_o he_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n many_o old_a book_n and_o those_o of_o great_a credit_n add_v i_o say_v to_o thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n &_o sure_o we_o see_v how_o careful_a the_o apostle_n be_v to_o magnify_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o miracle_n therefore_o i_o think_v that_o that_o be_v express_v by_o luke_n and_o yet_o we_o can_v not_o find_v it_o common_o now_o in_o the_o print_a book_n whereas_o luke_n say_v afterward_o that_o the_o lame_a man_n leap_v up_o it_o serve_v not_o only_o for_o the_o commendation_n of_o god_n power_n but_o also_o such_o readiness_n and_o willingness_n to_o obey_v do_v testify_v that_o he_o be_v right_o prepare_v by_o the_o lord_n so_o that_o he_o do_v already_o walk_v in_o mind_n when_o as_o his_o foot_n be_v as_o yet_o dead_a although_o his_o speed_n in_o rise_v make_v the_o power_n of_o god_n more_o manifest_a to_o which_o end_n also_o paul_n exalt_v his_o voice_n that_o the_o sudden_a change_n may_v the_o more_o move_v the_o multitude_n 11_o furthermore_o when_o the_o multitude_n have_v see_v what_o paul_n have_v do_v they_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n say_v in_o the_o speech_n of_o lycaonia_n god_n be_v make_v like_o to_o man_n be_v come_v down_o to_o us._n 12_o and_o they_o call_v barnabas_n jupiter_n and_o paul_n mercury_n because_o he_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o the_o speech_n 13_o and_o jupiters_n priest_n which_o be_v before_o their_o city_n bring_v bull_n &_o crown_n unto_o the_o gate_n will_v have_v do_v sacrifice_n with_o the_o multitude_n 11_o furthermore_o the_o multitude_n this_o history_n do_v abundant_o testify_v how_o ready_a &_o bend_a man_n be_v unto_o vanity_n paul_n utter_v not_o that_o word_n abrupt_o arise_v but_o he_o add_v it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o conclusion_n to_o the_o sermon_n make_v concern_v christ_n yet_o the_o people_n ascribe_v the_o praise_n of_o the_o miracle_n unto_o their_o idol_n as_o if_o they_o have_v hear_v no_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o deed_n it_o be_v no_o such_o wonder_n that_o the_o barbarous_a man_n fall_v unto_o superstition_n which_o they_o have_v learn_v from_o their_o childhood_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o see_v the_o miracle_n but_o this_o vice_n be_v too_o common_a every_o where_n &_o it_o be_v so_o breed_v in_o we_o to_o be_v perverse_a and_o wrong_a interpreter_n of_o the_o work_n of_o god_n hence_o come_v such_o gross_a dote_n of_o superstition_n in_o popery_n because_o catch_v rash_o at_o miracle_n they_o take_v no_o heed_n to_o doctrine_n for_o which_o cause_n we_o must_v take_v the_o better_a heed_n &_o be_v the_o more_o sober_a lest_o we_o happen_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o flesh_n to_o corrupt_v whereunto_o we_o be_v so_o bend_v the_o power_n of_o god_n which_o shine_v &_o appear_v to_o we_o for_o our_o salvation_n and_o no_o marvel_v if_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v only_o a_o few_o miracle_n wrought_v &_o that_o for_o a_o short_a time_n lest_o through_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n they_o shall_v be_v draw_v unto_o a_o far_o contrary_a end_n because_o it_o be_v unmeet_a that_o he_o shall_v set_v his_o name_n to_o be_v mock_v of_o the_o world_n which_o must_v needs_o be_v when_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o he_o be_v translate_v unto_o idol_n or_o the_o unbeliever_n corrupt_v his_o work_n to_o invent_v corrupt_a worship_v while_o that_o set_v the_o word_n aside_o they_o catch_v at_o every_o divine_a power_n which_o they_o feign_v god_n like_a to_o man_n this_o be_v a_o opinion_n draw_v from_o old_a fable_n which_o notwithstanding_o take_v the_o beginning_n of_o truth_n the_o book_n of_o the_o poet_n be_v full_a of_o these_o toy_n that_o the_o god_n be_v often_o see_v upon_o earth_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o we_o may_v well_o think_v that_o this_o come_v not_o of_o nothing_o but_o rather_o that_o profane_a man_n do_v turn_v that_o into_o fable_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n teach_v in_o time_n past_o concern_v angel_n and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o satan_n when_o he_o have_v man_n besot_v do_v with_o diverse_a juggling_n delude_v they_o this_o be_v of_o a_o truth_n whatsoever_o be_v god_n whensoever_o it_o go_v with_o the_o infidel_n it_o be_v corrupt_a by_o their_o wicked_a invention_n the_o same_o must_v we_o likewise_o think_v of_o sacrifice_n wherein_o god_n do_v exercise_v his_o even_n from_o the_o beginning_n that_o they_o may_v have_v external_a sign_n of_o godliness_n &_o of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o after_o that_o the_o unbeliever_n invent_v to_o themselves_o strange_a god_n they_o abuse_v the_o sacrifice_n unto_o their_o sacrilegious_a worship_n when_o the_o man_n of_o lycaonia_n see_v unwonted_a power_n in_o the_o cripple_n that_o be_v heal_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o it_o be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n this_o be_v all_o well_o but_o it_o be_v evil_o do_v in_o that_o they_o forge_n to_o themselves_o false_a god_n in_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n according_a to_o the_o old_a error_n for_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o prefer_v barnabas_n before_o paul_n save_v only_o because_o they_o follow_v the_o childish_a surmise_n concern_v mercury_n the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o god_n in_o which_o they_o have_v be_v nourish_v by_o which_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v what_o a_o mischief_n it_o be_v to_o be_v accustom_v &_o acquaint_v with_o error_n in_o youth_n which_o can_v so_o hardly_o be_v root_v out_o of_o the_o mind_n that_o even_o through_o the_o work_n of_o god_n whereby_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v redress_v they_o wax_v more_o hard_a 13_o also_o jupiters_n priest_n though_o luke_n do_v not_o express_v with_o what_o affection_n he_o be_v move_v to_o be_v so_o diligent_a yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o forasmuch_o as_o there_o be_v great_a hope_n of_o most_o plentiful_a gain_v offer_v he_o be_v move_v with_o coveteousnes_n for_o he_o have_v great_a hope_n of_o gain_n in_o time_n to_o come_v if_o it_o shall_v be_v noise_v abroad_o that_o jupiter_n appear_v ther._n for_o this_o opinion_n will_v by_o &_o by_o have_v follow_v that_o jupiter_n be_v more_o delit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o lystra_n then_o in_o any_o other_o and_o so_o soon_o as_o such_o superstition_n have_v once_o fill_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n they_o spare_v no_o cost_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n the_o world_n be_v in_o deed_n of_o itself_o incline_v to_o this_o but_o then_o come_v the_o sacrifice_a priest_n who_o be_v like_o fan_n &_o bellows_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o whole_a multitude_n be_v move_v with_o ambition_n to_o be_v so_o desirous_a to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o paul_n under_o the_o name_n of_o jupiter_n that_o their_o city_n may_v be_v the_o more_o famous_a and_o noble_a hence_o have_v satan_n so_o great_a liberty_n to_o deceive_v while_o that_o the_o sacrifice_a priest_n set_v net_n to_o get_v gain_n and_o the_o people_n be_v delight_v to_o have_v error_n confirm_v 14_o furthermore_o when_o the_o apostle_n barnabas_n and_o paul_n have_v hear_v rent_v their_o garment_n they_o run_v in_o into_o the_o press_n cry_v 15_o and_o say_v man_n why_o do_v you_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v also_o man_n subject_a to_o like_a misery_n as_o you_o be_v preach_v to_o you_o that_o you_o turn_v from_o those_o vain_a thing_n unto_o the_o live_a god_n who_o have_v make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o the_o sea_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o they_o 16_o who_o in_o time_n past_o suffer_v all_o nation_n to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n
let_v they_o cry_v be_v astonish_v that_o his_o way_n be_v past_o find_v out_o and_o that_o his_o judgement_n be_v too_o deep_a a_o depth_n 19_o wherefore_o i_o think_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o trouble_v those_o who_o of_o the_o gentile_n be_v turn_v to_o god_n 20_o but_o that_o we_o must_v write_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o abstain_v from_o the_o filthiness_n of_o image_n and_o from_o fornication_n and_o from_o strangle_v and_o from_o blood_n 21_o for_o moses_n of_o old_a time_n have_v those_o in_o every_o city_n which_o preach_v he_o when_o he●_n be_v read_v in_o the_o synagogue_n every_o sabbath_n day_n 19_o that_o we_o must_v not_o trouble_v he_o deni_v that_o the_o gentile_n must_v be_v drive_v from_o the_o church_n through_o the_o disagreement_n about_o ceremony_n see_v they_o be_v admit_v by_o god_n yet_o it_o seem_v contrary_a to_o himself_o when_o he_o deni_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v trouble_v &_o yet_o prescribe_v certain_a rite_n the_o answer_n be_v easy_a which_o i_o will_v hereafter_o more_o at_o large_a prosecute_v first_o he_o require_v nothing_o at_o their_o hand_n but_o that_o which_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v by_o brotherly_a concord_n second_o these_o precept_n can_v no_o whit_n trouble_v or_o disquiet_v their_o conscience_n after_o that_o they_o know_v that_o they_o be_v free_a before_o god_n and_o that_o false_a and_o perverse_a religion_n be_v take_v away_o which_o the_o false_a apostle_n seek_v to_o bring_v in_o the_o question_n be_v now_o why_o james_n do_v enjoin_v the_o gentile_n these_o four_o thing_n alone_o some_o say_v that_o this_o be_v fetch_v from_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o father_n who_o do_v not_o make_v any_o covenant_n with_o any_o people_n which_o they_o can_v enforce_v to_o obey_v they_o but_o upon_o this_o condition_n but_o because_o there_o be_v no_o fit_a author_n of_o that_o thing_n bring_v to_o light_v i_o leave_v it_o in_o doubt_n &_o undecided_a but_o here_o appear_v a_o manifest_a reason_n why_o they_o give_v particular_a commandment_n concern_v thing_n offer_v to_o idol_n blood_n &_o that_o which_o be_v strangle_v they_o be_v in_o deed_n of_o themselves_o thing_n indifferent_a yet_o such_o as_o have_v some_o special_a thing_n in_o they_o more_o than_o other_o rite_n of_o the_o law_n we_o know_v how_o strait_o the_o lord_n command_v to_o eschew_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o external_a profession_n of_o faith_n &_o wherein_o there_o be_v any_o appearance_n or_o suspicion_n of_o idolatry_n therefore_o lest_o there_o shall_v any_o blot_n of_o superstition_n remain_v in_o the_o gentile_n &_o lest_o the_o jew_n shall_v see_v any_o thing_n in_o they_o which_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n no_o marvel_v if_o to_o avoid_v offence_n they_o be_v command_v to_o abstain_v from_o thing_n offer_v to_o idol_n the_o word_n alisgema_v which_o luke_n use_v do_v signify_v all_o manner_n of_o profanation_n therefore_o i_o have_v not_o change_v the_o common_a translation_n which_o have_v pollution_n or_o filthiness_n yet_o it_o be_v sometime_o take_v for_o sacrifice_n which_o sense_n shall_v not_o disagree_v with_o james_n his_o purpose_n &_o peradventure_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o plain_a and_o natural_a so_o to_o expound_v it_o in_o this_o place_n because_o where_o luke_n do_v short_o after_o repeat_v the_o same_o decree_n he_o will_v put_v idolothyta_n or_o thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n as_o concern_v blood_n and_o that_o which_o be_v strangle_v not_o only_o the_o jew_n be_v forbid_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n to_o eat_v they_o 9.4_o deut._n 12.23_o gen._n 9.4_o but_o this_o law_n be_v give_v to_o all_o the_o world_n after_o the_o flood_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o those_o which_o be_v not_o quite_o grow_v out_o of_o kind_n do_v loath_a blood_n i_o do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o the_o jew_n but_o of_o many_o of_o the_o gentile_n i_o confess_v in_o deed_n that_o even_o that_o commandment_n be_v but_o temporal_a yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v extend_v far_a than_o unto_o one_o people_n no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o there_o may_v arise_v great_a offence_n thereupon_o which_o to_o cure_n seem_v good_a to_o the_o apostle_n but_o there_o arise_v a_o hard_a question_n concern_v fornication_n because_o james_n seem_v to_o reckon_v the_o same_o among_o thing_n indifferent_a whereof_o they_o must_v beware_v only_o in_o respect_n of_o offence_n but_o there_o be_v another_o cause_n for_o which_o he_o place_v fornication_n among_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o of_o themselves_o unlawful_a it_o be_v well_o know_v what_o unbrideled_a liberty_n to_o run_v a_o whore_v do_v reign_n &_o rage_v every_o where_n and_o this_o disease_n have_v get_v the_o upper_a hand_n principal_o among_o the_o man_n of_o the_o east_n country_n as_o they_o be_v more_o give_v to_o lust_n assure_o the_o faith_n and_o chastity_n of_o wedlock_n be_v never_o less_o observe_v and_o keep_v any_o where_o then_o among_o they_o moreover_o he_o do_v not_o entreat_v indifferent_o in_o my_o judgement_n in_o this_o place_n of_o all_o manner_n fornication_n or_o whoredom_n as_o of_o adultery_n and_o wander_a and_o unbrideled_a lust_n whereby_o all_o chastity_n be_v violate_v and_o corrupt_v but_o i_o think_v he_o speak_v of_o concubineship_n as_o they_o call_v it_o which_o be_v so_o common_a among_o the_o gentile_n that_o it_o be_v almost_o like_a to_o a_o law_n therefore_o whereas_o james_n reckon_v up_o a_o common_a corruption_n among_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o themselves_o not_o corrupt_a there_o be_v therein_o no_o inconvenience_n so_o that_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o meaning_n to_o place_v those_o thing_n in_o one_o order_n which_o be_v very_o far_o unlike_a among_o themselves_o for_o whereas_o unclean_a man_n do_v thereby_o colour_v and_o cloak_v their_o filthiness_n they_o may_v easy_o be_v refute_v james_n say_v they_o couple_v eat_v of_o blood_n with_o whoredom_n but_o do_v he_o compare_v they_o together_o as_o thing_n that_o be_v like_a at_o lest_o which_o disagree_v not_o in_o any_o point_n yea_o he_o do_v only_o respect_v the_o wicked_a and_o corrupt_a custom_n of_o man_n which_o be_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o first_o law_n and_o order_n of_o nature_n appoint_v by_o god_n as_o concern_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n the_o knowledge_n thereof_o must_v be_v fetch_v out_o of_o the_o continual_a doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o it_o be_v nothing_o doutful_a what_o the_o scripture_n say_v to_o wit_n that_o whoredom_n be_v accurse_v before_o god_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v thereby_o defile_v that_o the_o holy_a temple_n of_o god_n be_v pollute_v &_o christ_n be_v rend_v in_o piece_n that_o god_n do_v daily_o punish_v whoremonger_n and_o that_o he_o will_v once_o pay_v they_o home_o the_o filthiness_n of_o whoredom_n which_o the_o heavenly_a judge_n do_v so_o sore_o condemn_v can_v be_v cover_v with_o no_o cloak_n by_o the_o patron_n of_o whoredom_n how_o witty_a and_o eloquent_a soever_o they_o be_v 21_o for_o moses_n have_v this_o place_n in_o my_o judgement_n have_v be_v bad_o expound_v and_o draw_v into_o a_o contrary_a sense_n for_o interpreter_n think_v that_o james_n add_v this_o because_o it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o prescribe_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n &_o to_o who_o it_o be_v read_v every_o sabbath_n day_n and_o they_o pick_v out_o this_o meaning_n let_v we_o be_v content_a to_o require_v these_o few_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o gentile_n which_o be_v not_o accustom_v to_o bear_v the_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n as_o touch_v the_o jew_n they_o have_v moses_n out_o of_o who_o they_o may_v learn_v more_o some_o do_v also_o gather_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o circumcision_n with_o his_o appurtenance_n ought_v to_o be_v observe_v even_o at_o this_o day_n among_o the_o jew_n but_o they_o reason_v unfit_o and_o unskilful_o though_o that_o exposition_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o be_v true_a but_o james_n have_v a_o far_a other_o meaning_n to_o wit_n he_o teach_v that_o it_o can_v be_v that_o ceremony_n can_v be_v abolish_v so_o quick_o as_o it_o be_v at_o the_o first_o dash_n because_o the_o jew_n have_v now_o a_o long_a time_n be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n and_o moses_n have_v his_o preacher_n therefore_o it_o stand_v they_o upon_o to_o redeem_v concord_n for_o a_o short_a time_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o liberty_n get_v by_o christ_n may_v by_o little_a &_o little_o appear_v more_o plain_o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o common_a proverb_n that_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o old_a ceremony_n shall_v be_v bury_v with_o some_o honour_n those_o who_o be_v skilful_a in_o the_o greek_a
cilicia_n establish_v the_o church_n 36_o let_v we_o visit_v our_o brethren_n in_o this_o history_n we_o must_v first_o note_v how_o careful_a paul_n be_v for_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v ordain_v he_o labour_v in_o deed_n at_o antiochia_n profitable_o but_o because_o he_o remember_v that_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n ordain_v of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o pastor_n of_o one_o particular_a place_n he_o keep_v the_o course_n of_o his_o call_n second_o as_o it_o do_v not_o become_v he_o to_o be_v tie_v to_o one_o place_n so_o he_o think_v with_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o all_o who_o he_o beget_v in_o the_o lord_n therefore_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o want_v his_o help_n moreover_o the_o work_n that_o be_v begin_v in_o those_o place_n can_v not_o be_v neglect_v but_o it_o will_v short_o after_o decay_n yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o paul_n stay_v still_o in_o the_o church_n of_o antiochia_n until_o he_o see_v the_o estate_n thereof_o well_o order_v and_o concord_n establish_v for_o we_o know_v and_o try_v what_o great_a force_n principal_a church_n have_v to_o keep_v other_o lesser_a church_n in_o order_n if_o there_o arise_v any_o tumult_n in_o a_o obscure_a street_n or_o if_o there_o fall_v out_o any_o offence_n the_o rumour_n go_v not_o so_o far_o neither_o be_v the_o neighbour_n so_o much_o move_v but_o if_o any_o place_n be_v excellent_a it_o can_v quail_v without_o great_a ruin_n or_o at_o least_o but_o that_o the_o lesser_a building_n shall_v be_v therewith_o sore_o shake_v both_o far_a and_o wide_o therefore_o paul_n in_o stay_v a_o time_n at_o antioch_n do_v provide_v for_o other_o church_n and_o so_o we_o must_v no_o less_o look_v unto_o his_o wisdom_n than_o his_o diligence_n in_o this_o example_n because_o oftentimes_o the_o immoderate_a heat_n of_o the_o pastor_n in_o go_v about_o matter_n do_v no_o less_o hurt_n than_o their_o sluggishness_n how_o they_o do_v paul_n know_v that_o amid_o so_o great_a lightness_n and_o inconstancy_n of_o man_n and_o as_o their_o nature_n be_v incline_v to_o vice_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n well_o order_v among_o they_o it_o do_v seldom_o continue_v stable_n &_o for_o any_o long_a time_n and_o especial_o that_o church_n do_v easy_o decay_v or_o grow_v out_o of_o kind_n unless_o they_o be_v look_v too_o continual_o there_o ought_v nothing_o under_o heaven_n to_o be_v more_o firm_a than_o the_o spiritual_a build_n of_o faith_n who_o stability_n be_v ground_v in_o the_o very_a heaven_n yet_o there_o be_v but_o few_o in_o who_o mind_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v thorough_o take_v lively_a root_n therefore_o firmness_n be_v rare_a in_o man_n again_o even_o those_o who_o have_v their_o anchor_n firm_o fix_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n do_v not_o cease_v notwithstanding_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o diverse_a toss_n whereby_o though_o their_o faith_n be_v not_o overturn_v yet_o have_v it_o need_v of_o strengthen_v that_o it_o may_v be_v underprop_a and_o stay_v moreover_o we_o see_v how_o sathan_n do_v assault_v and_o with_o what_o subtle_a shift_n he_o go_v about_o privy_o to_o pull_v down_o sometime_o whole_a church_n sometime_o every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a particular_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o paul_n be_v so_o careful_a for_o his_o scholar_n lest_o they_o behave_v themselves_o otherwise_o then_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v and_o therefore_o be_v he_o desirous_a in_o time_n to_o prevent_v if_o there_o be_v any_o inconvenience_n rise_v which_o can_v be_v until_o he_o have_v take_v view_n 37_o and_o barnabas_n give_v counsel_n luke_n do_v here_o set_v down_o that_o doleful_a disagreement_n which_o ought_v to_o make_v all_o the_o godly_a afraid_a for_o just_a cause_n the_o society_n of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o heavenly_a oracle_n they_o have_v long_a time_n labour_v be_v of_o one_o mind_n under_o this_o yoke_n whereunto_o the_o lord_n have_v tie_v they_o they_o have_v by_o many_o e●●eriences_n try_v the_o excellent_a favour_n of_o god_n yea_o that_o wonderful_a success_n mention_v heretofore_o by_o luke_n be_v a_o manifest_a blessing_n of_o god_n though_o they_o have_v be_v almost_o drown_v so_o often_o in_o so_o many_o tempest_n of_o persecution_n and_o be_v set_v upon_o so_o sore_o by_o infinite_a enemy_n though_o domestical_a sedition_n be_v every_o where_o kindle_v against_o they_o yet_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v pull_v in_o sunder_o that_o their_o agreement_n be_v then_o most_o of_o all_o try_v but_o now_o for_o a_o light_a matter_n and_o which_o may_v easy_o have_v be_v end_v they_o break_v that_o holy_a bond_n of_o god_n call_v this_o can_v not_o fall_v out_o without_o great_a perturbance_n to_o all_o the_o godly_a see_v that_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o contention_n be_v so_o great_a and_o vehement_a in_o these_o holy_a man_n who_o have_v long_a time_n accustom_v themselves_o to_o suffer_v all_o thing_n what_o shall_v befall_v we_o who_o affection_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o so_o bring_v to_o obey_v god_n do_v oftentimes_o rage_v without_o modesty_n see_v that_o a_o light_a occasion_n do_v separate_v they_o who_o have_v long_a time_n amid_o so_o great_a trial_n retain_v unity_n holy_o how_o easy_o may_v satan_n cause_v those_o to_o be_v divide_v who_o have_v either_o none_n or_o at_o least_o a_o cold_a desire_n to_o foster_v peace_n what_o great_a pride_n be_v it_o for_o barnabas_n who_o have_v no_o more_o honourable_a thing_n than_o to_o be_v paul_n his_o companion_n that_o he_o may_v behave_v himself_o like_o a_o son_n towards_o his_o father_n so_o stubberne_o to_o refuse_v his_o counsel_n peradventure_o also_o some_o may_v think_v that_o paul_n be_v not_o very_o courteous_a in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o forgive_v a_o faithful_a helper_n this_o fault_n therefore_o we_o be_v admonish_v by_o this_o example_n that_o unless_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n take_v great_a heed_n there_o be_v many_o chink_n through_o which_o satan_n will_v creep_v in_o to_o disturb_v that_o concord_n which_o be_v among_o they_o but_o now_o we_o must_v examine_v the_o cause_n itself_o for_o some_o there_o be_v who_o lie_v the_o blame_n of_o the_o disagreement_n upon_o paul_n and_o at_o the_o first_o hear_n the_o reason_n which_o they_o bring_v seem_v probable_a john_n mark_n be_v reject_v because_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o paul_n company_n but_o he_o fall_v not_o away_o from_o christ_n a_o young_a man_n be_v as_o yet_o unacquainted_a with_o bear_v the_o cross_n return_v home_o from_o his_o journey_n he_o be_v somewhat_o to_o be_v bear_v with_o for_o his_o age_n be_v a_o freshwater_n soldier_n he_o faint_v in_o trouble_n even_o at_o the_o first_o dash_n he_o be_v not_o therefore_o about_o to_o be_v a_o slothful_a soldier_n during_o his_o whole_a life_n now_o forasmuch_o as_o his_o return_v to_o paul_n be_v a_o excellent_a testimony_n of_o repentance_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o point_n of_o discourtesy_n to_o reject_v he_o for_o those_o must_v be_v handle_v more_o courteous_o who_o punish_v themselves_o for_o their_o own_o offence_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n there_o be_v also_o other_o cause_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v make_v paul_n more_o courteous_a the_o house_n of_o john_n mark_n be_v a_o famous_a inn_n 12.12_o sup._n 12.12_o his_o mother_n have_v entertain_v the_o faithful_a in_o most_o grievous_a persecution_n when_o herod_n &_o all_o the_o people_n be_v in_o a_o rage_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o have_v their_o secret_a meeting_n there_o as_o luke_n report_v before_o sure_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v bear_v with_o such_o a_o holy_a &_o courageous_a woman_n least_o immoderate_a rigour_n shall_v alienate_v she_o she_o be_v desirous_a to_o have_v her_o son_n addict_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n now_o what_o a_o great_a grief_n may_v it_o have_v be_v to_o she_o that_o his_o pain_n &_o industry_n shall_v be_v refuse_v for_o one_o light_a fault_n &_o now_o whereas_o john_n mark_n do_v not_o only_o bewail_v his_o fault_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n amend_v the_o same_o barnabas_n have_v a_o fair_a colour_n why_o he_o shall_v pardon_v he_o yet_o we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o text_n that_o the_o church_n do_v allow_v paul_n counsel_n for_o barnabas_n depart_v and_o with_o his_o companion_n he_o sail_v into_o cyprus_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o brethren_n as_o if_o he_o have_v depart_v privy_o without_o take_v his_o leave_n but_o the_o brethren_n commend_v paul_n in_o their_o prayer_n to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n whereby_o appear_v thar_z the_o church_n stand_v on_o his_o side_n second_o whereas_o god_n show_v forth_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o blessing_n paul_n &_o do_v bless_v his_o labour_n with_o happy_a success_n of_o his_o grace_n &_o leave_v barnabas_n as_o it_o be_v
have_v change_v his_o coat_n he_o do_v now_o play_v a_o tragedy_n who_o can_v not_o speed_v welbefore_n by_o his_o fair_a speech_n and_o flattery_n and_o though_o the_o heat_n of_o zeal_n wherewith_o paul_n be_v provoke_v to_o anger_n do_v raise_v the_o whirlwind_n of_o persecution_n yet_o be_v he_o not_o therefore_o to_o be_v blame_v neither_o do_v it_o any_o whit_n repent_v paul_n that_o he_o have_v wrought_v the_o miracle_n so_o that_o he_o do_v wish_v that_o that_o be_v undo_v which_o be_v do_v because_o he_o know_v full_a well_o through_o what_o motion_n he_o have_v drive_v the_o devil_n out_o of_o the_o maid_n whereby_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o we_o must_v not_o rash_o condemn_v thing_n which_o be_v well_o do_v and_o that_o which_o be_v take_v in_o hand_n at_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n though_o a_o unhappy_a success_n follow_v because_o god_n do_v then_o examine_v the_o constancy_n of_o those_o which_o be_v he_o until_o a_o more_o joyful_a and_o prosperous_a end_n drive_v away_o all_o sorrow_n as_o touch_v the_o man_n luke_n express_v the_o cause_n why_o they_o be_v so_o mad_a upon_o paul_n to_o wit_n because_o their_o hope_n of_o filthy_a gain_n be_v go_v but_o though_o they_o be_v prick_v forward_o with_o covetousness_n only_o to_o persecute_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o minister_n thereof_o yet_o they_o pretend_v a_o fair_a colour_n that_o it_o greeve_v they_o that_o the_o public_a state_n shall_v be_v pervert_v that_o their_o ancient_a law_n shall_v be_v break_v and_o peace_n trouble_v so_o though_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n behave_v themselves_o wicked_o and_o unhonest_o yet_o they_o always_o invent_v some_o cause_n for_o their_o sin_n yea_o though_o their_o wicked_a desire_n appear_v plain_o yet_o with_o a_o impudent_a face_n they_o always_o bring_v in_o somewhat_o to_o cover_v their_o filthiness_n withal_o so_o at_o this_o day_n those_o papist_n which_o be_v more_o zealous_a over_o their_o law_n have_v nothing_o else_o in_o their_o mind_n beside_o their_o gain_n and_o government_n let_v they_o swear_v and_o forswear_v by_o all_o their_o saint_n and_o sacrifice_n that_o they_o be_v enforce_v only_o with_o a_o godly_a affection_n yet_o the_o matter_n itself_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o it_o be_v the_o coldness_n of_o their_o kitchen_n which_o make_v their_o zeal_n so_o hot_a and_o that_o ambition_n be_v the_o fan_n thereof_o for_o they_o be_v either_o hungry_a dog_n prick_v forward_o with_o greediness_n or_o furious_a lion_n breathe_v out_o nothing_o but_o cruelty_n 20_o these_o man_n trouble_v our_o city_n this_o accusation_n be_v crafty_o compose_v to_o burden_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n for_o on_o the_o one_o side_n they_o pretend_v the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o favourable_a on_o the_o other_o they_o purchase_v hatred_n and_o bring_v they_o in_o contempt_n by_o name_v they_o jew_n which_o name_n be_v at_o that_o time_n infamous_a for_o as_o touch_v religion_n the_o roman_n be_v more_o like_a to_o any_o then_o to_o the_o jewish_a nation_n for_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o man_n which_o be_v a_o roman_a to_o do_v sacrifice_n either_o in_o asia_n or_o in_o grecia_n or_o in_o any_o other_o country_n where_o be_v idol_n &_o superstition_n i_o warrant_v you_o satan_n do_v agree_v with_o himself_o very_o well_o though_o he_o put_v on_o diverse_a shape_n but_o that_o which_o be_v religion_n only_o than_o which_o there_o be_v no_o other_o in_o the_o world_n be_v count_v among_o the_o roman_n detestable_a they_o frame_v a_o three_o accusation_n out_o of_o the_o crime_n of_o sedition_n for_o they_o pretend_v that_o the_o public_a peace_n be_v trouble_v by_o paul_n &_o his_o company_n in_o like_a sort_n be_v christ_n bring_v in_o contempt_n &_o even_o at_o this_o day_n the_o paist_n have_v no_o more_o plausible_a thing_n wherewith_o they_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o be_v hate_v 5_o luk._n 2d_o 5_o than_o when_o they_o cry_v that_o our_o doctrine_n tend_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o procure_v tumult_n that_o at_o length_n there_o may_v follow_v a_o filthy_a confusion_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o we_o must_v valiant_o contemn_v this_o filthy_a &_o false_a infamy_n as_o do_v christ_n and_o paul_n until_o the_o lord_n bring_v to_o light_v the_o malice_n of_o our_o enemy_n and_o refute_v their_o impudency_n 21_o ordinance_n which_o they_o lean_a to_o a_o prejudice_n lest_o the_o cause_n shall_v come_v to_o be_v dispute_v as_o the_o papist_n deal_v with_o we_o at_o this_o day_n this_o be_v decree_v in_o a_o general_a council_n it_o be_v a_o more_o ancient_a &_o common_a opinion_n than_o that_o it_o may_v be_v call_v in_o question_n custom_n have_v long_a time_n approve_v this_o this_o have_v be_v establish_v by_o consent_n more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o but_o to_o what_o end_n tend_v all_o these_o thing_n save_v only_o that_o they_o may_v rob_v the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o all_o authority_n they_o make_v boast_v of_o man_n decree_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n they_o leave_v no_o place_n at_o all_o for_o the_o law_n of_o god_n we_o may_v see_v by_o this_o place_n what_o force_n these_o preiudices_fw-la ought_v to_o have_v the_o law_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v excellent_a but_o religion_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n alone_o therefore_o in_o this_o matter_n we_o must_v take_v great_a heed_n that_o man_n be_v bring_v under_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n alone_o do_v prevail_v and_o that_o he_o make_v all_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o world_n be_v excellent_a subject_a to_o he_o 22_o the_o multitude_n come_v together_o when_o luke_n declare_v that_o there_o be_v great_a concourse_n of_o the_o people_n make_v after_o that_o a_o few_o man_n of_o no_o reputation_n to_o wit_n such_o as_o do_v juggle_v and_o cousin_n to_o get_v gain_n and_o who_o filthiness_n be_v well_o know_v have_v make_v some_o stir_n he_o teach_v with_o what_o fury_n the_o world_n rage_v against_o christ_n foolishness_n and_o inconstancy_n be_v in_o deed_n common_a vice_n among_o all_o people_n and_o almost_o continual_a but_o the_o wonderful_a force_n of_o satan_n do_v therein_o bewray_v itself_o in_o that_o those_o who_o be_v in_o other_o matter_n modest_a &_o quiet_a be_v for_o a_o matter_n of_o no_o importance_n in_o a_o heat_n &_o become_v companion_n of_o most_o vile_a person_n when_o the_o truth_n must_v be_v resist_v there_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n more_o modesty_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o judge_n themselves_o if_o we_o consider_v what_o be_v their_o duty_n for_o they_o ought_v by_o their_o gravity_n to_o have_v appease_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o people_n &_o to_o have_v set_v themselves_o stout_o against_o their_o violence_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v aid_v &_o defend_v the_o guiltless_a but_o they_o lay_v hand_n on_o they_o outrageous_o &_o rent_v their_o garment_n they_o command_v they_o to_o be_v strip_v naked_a &_o whip_v before_o they_o know_v the_o matter_n sure_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v lament_v whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o almost_o all_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o the_o world_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v sanctuary_n of_o justice_n have_v be_v pollute_v with_o the_o wicked_a &_o sacrilegious_a oppugn_n of_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o the_o question_n be_v why_o they_o be_v cast_v in_o prison_n see_v they_o be_v already_o punish_v for_o the_o prison_n be_v ordain_v for_o the_o keep_n of_o man_n they_o use_v this_o kind_n of_o correction_n until_o they_o may_v know_v more_o and_o so_o we_o see_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n more_o sharp_o handle_v than_o adulterer_n robber_n and_o other_o most_o vile_a person_n whereby_o appear_v more_o plain_o that_o force_n of_o satan_n in_o stir_v up_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n that_o they_o observe_v no_o show_n of_o judgement_n in_o persecute_v the_o gospel_n but_o though_o the_o godly_a be_v more_o hardly_o handle_v for_o defend_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n than_o be_v the_o wicked_a for_o their_o wickedness_n yet_o it_o go_v well_o with_o the_o godly_a because_o they_o triumph_v glorious_o before_o god_n &_o his_o angel_n in_o all_o injury_n which_o they_o suffer_v they_o suffer_v reproach_n and_o slander_n but_o because_o they_o know_v that_o the_o mark_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o great_a price_n &_o more_o esteem_v in_o heaven_n than_o the_o vain_a pomp_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o more_o wicked_o and_o reproachful_o the_o world_n do_v vex_v they_o the_o great_a cause_n have_v they_o to_o rejoice_v for_o if_o profane_a writer_n do_v so_o honour_n themistocles_n that_o they_o prefer_v his_o prison_n before_o the_o seat_n &_o court_v of_o judge_n how_o much_o more_o honourable_o must_v we_o think_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o cause_n be_v in_o hand_n so_o often_o as_o the_o faithful_a suffer_v
not_o hear_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o tumult_n if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o he_o do_v now_o seek_v remedy_n too_o late_a and_o out_o of_o season_n yea_o that_o he_o do_v catch_v at_o a_o vain_a &_o foolish_a comfort_n when_o he_o require_v that_o the_o magistrate_n come_v themselves_o we_o may_v ready_o answer_v paul_n be_v like_a to_o fare_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o better_a therefore_o but_o we_o must_v mark_v that_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o provide_v for_o his_o own_o private_a commodity_n but_o that_o he_o may_v ease_v the_o brethren_n somewhat_o afterward_o that_o the_o magistrate_n may_v not_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o rage_v so_o free_o against_o the_o good_a &_o innocent_a brethren_n because_o he_o have_v get_v their_o head_n under_o his_o girdle_n he_o translate_v his_o right_n to_o help_v the_o brethren_n that_o they_o may_v be_v bear_v with_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o which_o he_o do_v chide_v they_o and_o so_o paul_n do_v wise_o use_v the_o opportunity_n offer_v he_o as_o we_o must_v neglect_v nothing_o which_o may_v make_v for_o the_o bridle_a of_o the_o enemy_n that_o they_o take_v not_o to_o themselves_o so_o much_o liberty_n to_o oppress_v or_o vex_v the_o innocent_a forasmuch_o as_o the_o lord_n bring_v to_o our_o hand_n such_o help_v not_o in_o vain_a notwithstanding_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o if_o we_o have_v be_v injury_v in_o any_o thing_n we_o must_v not_o repay_v injury_n but_o we_o must_v only_o endeavour_v to_o stay_v their_o lust_n lest_o they_o hurt_v other_o in_o like_a sort_n 38_o they_o be_v afraid_a because_o they_o be_v roman_n they_o be_v not_o once_o move_v with_o the_o other_o point_n because_o they_o have_v handle_v innocent_n cruel_o without_o discretion_n and_o yet_o that_o be_v the_o great_a reproach_n but_o because_o they_o do_v not_o fear_v that_o any_o man_n will_v punish_v they_o they_o be_v not_o move_v with_o god_n judgement_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o do_v careless_o pass_v over_o that_o which_o be_v object_v concern_v injury_n do_v by_o they_o only_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o roman_n &_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v behead_v for_o violate_v the_o liberty_n in_o the_o body_n of_o a_o citizen_n they_o know_v that_o this_o be_v death_n if_o any_o of_o the_o chief_a governor_n shall_v commit_v it_o then_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o the_o officer_n of_o one_o free_a city_n such_o be_v the_o fear_n of_o the_o wicked_a because_o they_o have_v a_o amaze_a conscience_n before_o god_n they_o do_v long_a time_n flatter_v themselves_o in_o all_o sin_n until_o the_o punishment_n of_o man_n hang_v over_o their_o head_n 40_o when_o they_o see_v etc._n etc._n they_o be_v desire_v to_o part_v present_o yet_o it_o become_v they_o to_o regard_v the_o brethren_n lest_o the_o tender_a seed_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v perish_v &_o undoubted_o they_o will_v have_v tarry_v long_o if_o they_o have_v be_v suffer_v but_o the_o praiere_n &_o request_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v imperious_a &_o arm_a which_o they_o be_v enforce_v to_o obey_v nevertheless_o they_o foreslow_v not_o their_o necessary_a duty_n but_o they_o exhort_v the_o brethren_n to_o be_v constant_a and_o whereas_o they_o go_v straight_o to_o lydia_n it_o be_v a_o token_n that_o though_o the_o church_n be_v increase_v yet_o that_o woman_n be_v the_o chief_a even_o of_o a_o great_a number_n as_o touch_v diligence_n in_o duty_n of_o godliness_n &_o that_o appear_v more_o plain_o thereby_o because_o all_o the_o godly_a be_v assemble_v in_o her_o house_n chap._n xvii_o 1_o and_o when_o they_o have_v iourney_v through_o amphipolis_n and_o appolonia_n they_o come_v to_o thessalonica_n where_o be_v a_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n 2_o and_o as_o his_o manner_n be_v paul_n enter_v in_o unto_o they_o &_o three_o sabbothe_n dispute_v with_o they_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 3_o open_v and_o allege_v that_o christ_n must_v have_v suffer_v and_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o this_o be_v christ_n who_o say_v he_o i_o preach_v to_o you_o 4_o and_o certain_a of_o they_o believe_v and_o be_v join_v to_o paul_n and_o silas_n &_o of_o religious_a grecian_n a_o great_a multitude_n and_o of_o chief_a woman_n not_o a_o few_o 1_o they_o come_v to_o thessalonica_n we_o know_v not_o why_o paul_n attempt_v nothing_o at_o amphipolis_n &_o apollonia_n which_o be_v notwithstanding_o famous_a city_n as_o appear_v by_o pliny_n save_v only_o because_o he_o follow_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o his_o guide_n &_o take_v occasion_n by_o the_o present_a matter_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v to_o speak_v or_o hold_v his_o peace_n &_o peradventure_o he_o do_v also_o assay_v to_o do_v some_o good_a there_o but_o because_o it_o be_v without_o any_o good_a success_n therefore_o luke_n pass_v over_o it_o and_o whereas_o be_v beat_v at_o philippos_n &_o scarce_o escape_v out_o of_o great_a danger_n he_o preach_v christ_n at_o thessalonica_n it_o appear_v thereby_o how_o courageous_a he_o be_v to_o keep_v the_o course_n of_o his_o call_n and_o how_o bold_a he_o be_v ever_o now_o &_o then_o to_o enter_v into_o new_a danger_n this_o so_o invincible_a fortitude_n of_o mind_n &_o such_o patient_a endure_v of_o the_o cross_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v that_o paul_n labour_v not_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n but_o that_o he_o be_v furnish_v with_o the_o heavenly_a power_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o this_o be_v also_o wonderful_a patience_n in_o he_o in_o that_o enter_v in_o unto_o the_o jew_n who_o unbridled_a forwardness_n he_o have_v so_o often_o try_v he_o procee_v to_o procure_v their_o salvation_n but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o the_o jew_n for_o salvation_n &_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v make_v a_o apostle_n upon_o this_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v preach_v repentance_n &_o faith_n first_o to_o the_o jew_n &_o then_o to_o the_o gentile_n commit_v the_o success_n of_o his_o labour_n to_o the_o lord_n he_o obey_v his_o commandment_n though_o he_o have_v no_o great_a hope_n to_o do_v good_a he_o seem_v before_o to_o have_v take_v his_o last_o farewell_n of_o the_o jew_n when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v behoveful_a that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v first_o preach_v to_o you_o but_o because_o you_o receive_v it_o not_o behold_v we_o turn_v to_o the_o gentile_n but_o that_o hard_a sentence_n must_v be_v restrain_v to_o that_o company_n who_o have_v wicked_o reject_v the_o gospel_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o &_o make_v themselves_o unworthy_a the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o towards_o the_o nation_n itself_o paul_n cease_v not_o to_o do_v his_o embassage_n by_o which_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v so_o great_a account_n of_o the_o call_n of_o god_n that_o no_o unthankfulnes_n of_o man_n may_v be_v able_a to_o hinder_v we_o but_o that_o we_o proceed_v to_o be_v careful_a for_o their_o salvation_n so_o long_o as_o the_o lord_n appoint_v we_o to_o be_v their_o minister_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o even_o now_o there_o be_v some_o who_o on_o the_o first_o sabb_n …_o refuse_v sound_a doctrine_n but_o their_o forwardness_n do_v not_o hinder_v he_o but_o that_o he_o come_v again_o upon_o other_o sabbothe_n 2_o he_o dispute_v luke_n set_v down_o first_o what_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o dlsputation_n to_o wit_n that_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o mary_n be_v christ_n who_o be_v promise_v in_o time_n pass_v in_o the_o law_n &_o the_o prophet_n who_o by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n do_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n &_o bring_v righteousness_n &_o life_n by_o his_o resurrection_n second_o how_o he_o prove_v that_o which_o he_o teach_v let_v we_o handle_v this_o second_o member_n first_o luke_n say_v that_o he_o dispute_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o the_o proof_n of_o faith_n must_v be●fet_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n alone_o if_o we_o dispute_v about_o matter_n which_o concern_v man_n they_o let_v human_a reason_n take_v place_n but_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n the_o authority_n of_o god_n alone_o must_v reign_v and_o upon_o it_o must_v we_o depend_v all_o man_n confess_v that_o this_o be_v true_a that_o we_o must_v stay_v ourselves_o upon_o god_n alone_o yet_o there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o which_o hear_v he_o speak_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o and_o if_o that_o maxim_n take_v place_n among_o we_o that_o the_o scripture_n come_v of_o god_n the_o rule_n either_o of_o teach_v or_o of_o learning_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v no_o where_o else_o whereby_o it_o do_v also_o appear_v with_o what_o divelishe_a fury_n the_o papist_n be_v drive_v when_o they_o deny_v that_o there_o can_v any_o
they_o in_o peace_n be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n when_o christ_n do_v meek_o will_v we_o there_o to_o come_v unto_o he_o satan_n and_o the_o wicked_a rage_n therefore_o paul_n and_o silas_n may_v easy_o have_v defend_v themselves_o but_o it_o be_v requisite_a for_o they_o to_o suffer_v this_o false_a slander_n for_o a_o time_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v not_o hear_v to_o put_v it_o up_o quiet_o and_o the_o lord_n mean_v by_o their_o example_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o must_v not_o give_v place_n to_o slander_n &_o false_a report_n but_o we_o must_v stand_v stout_o in_o maintain_v the_o truth_n be_v ready_a to_o hear_v evil_a for_o thing_n do_v well_o wherefore_o away_o with_o the_o perverse_a wisdom_n of_o some_o who_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v escape_v false_a slander_n cease_v not_o to_o betray_v christ_n &_o his_o gospel_n through_o their_o treacherous_a moderation_n as_o though_o their_o good_a name_n be_v more_o precious_a than_o paul_n and_o such_o like_a yea_o than_o the_o sacred_a name_n of_o god_n which_o be_v not_o free_a from_o blasphemy_n 7_o all_o these_o man_n etc._n etc._n the_o second_o point_n of_o the_o accusation_n be_v this_o that_o they_o violate_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o rome_n a_o great_a and_o grievous_a crime_n yet_o too_o impudent_o forge_v paul_n and_o silas_n seek_v to_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v spiritual_a the_o jew_n know_v well_o that_o this_o may_v be_v do_v without_o do_v any_o injury_n to_o the_o roman_a empire_n they_o know_v that_o they_o mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o overthrow_v the_o public_a estate_n or_o to_o take_v from_o caesar_n his_o authority_n therefore_o the_o jew_n catch_v at_o the_o pretence_n of_o treason_n that_o they_o may_v oppress_v the_o innocent_a with_o the_o envy_n of_o the_o crime_n alone_o neither_o do_v satan_n cease_v at_o this_o day_n to_o blear_v man_n eye_n with_o such_o smoke_n and_o mist_n the_o papist_n know_v fulwell_o and_o they_o be_v sufficient_o convict_v before_o god_n that_o that_o be_v more_o than_o false_a which_o they_o lie_v to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o overthrow_v all_o civil_a government_n that_o law_n and_o judgement_n be_v quite_o take_v away_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n be_v subvert_v by_o we_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v make_v all_o the_o whole_a world_n offend_v with_o we_o false_o to_o report_v that_o we_o be_v enemy_n to_o public_a order_n for_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o only_o allege_v that_o caesar_n commandment_n be_v break_v because_o paul_n and_o silas_n dare_v presume_v to_o alter_v &_o innovate_v somewhat_o in_o religion_n but_o because_o they_o say_v there_o be_v another_o king_n this_o crime_n be_v altogether_o forge_v but_o if_o at_o any_o time_n religion_n enforce_v we_o to_o resist_v tyrannical_a edict_n and_o commandment_n which_o forbid_v we_o to_o give_v due_a honour_n to_o christ_n and_o due_a worship_n to_o god_n we_o may_v then_o just_o say_v for_o ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v not_o rebellious_a against_o king_n for_o they_o be_v not_o so_o exalt_v that_o they_o may_v go_v about_o like_a giant_n to_o pull_v god_n out_o of_o his_o seat_n and_o throne_n that_o excuse_n of_o daniel_n be_v true_a that_o he_o have_v not_o offend_v the_o king_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v not_o obey_v his_o wicked_a commandment_n neither_o have_v he_o injury_v mortal_a man_n because_o he_o have_v prefer_v god_n before_o he_o so_o let_v we_o faithful_o pay_v to_o prince_n the_o tribute_n which_o be_v due_a to_o they_o let_v we_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v they_o all_o civil_a obedience_n but_o if_o be_v not_o content_a with_o their_o degree_n they_o go_v about_o to_o pluck_v out_o of_o our_o hand_n the_o fear_n &_o worship_n of_o god_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o we_o despice_fw-la they_o because_o we_o make_v more_o account_n of_o the_o power_n and_o majesty_n of_o god_n 8_o they_o raise_v the_o multitude_n we_o see_v how_o unjust_o the_o holy_a man_n be_v handle_v because_o they_o have_v no_o place_n grant_v they_o to_o defend_v themselves_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o oppress_v they_o though_o they_o be_v guiltless_a we_o see_v likewise_o that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a matter_n for_o magistrate_n to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o rage_n of_o the_o people_n as_o with_o a_o tempest_n especial_o when_o the_o injury_n touch_v those_o who_o be_v stranger_n and_o unknowen_a at_o who_o hand_n they_o look_v for_o no_o reward_n because_o they_o will_v not_o come_v in_o danger_n for_o nothing_o for_o than_o they_o care_v not_o for_o reason_n or_o equity_n neither_o do_v they_o hear_v the_o matter_n but_o one_o drive_v forward_o a_o other_o without_o any_o resistance_n and_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v out_o of_o order_n as_o when_o they_o run_v unto_o some_o great_a fire_n but_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o singular_a goodness_n of_o god_n that_o so_o great_a heat_n be_v stay_v by_o and_o by_o for_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o magistrate_n profess_v that_o they_o will_v know_v far_o of_o the_o matter_n the_o multitude_n be_v appease_v assurance_n be_v take_v and_o at_o length_n the_o matter_n be_v end_v 10_o they_o send_v they_o out_o to_o berrhea_n hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o paul_n his_o labour_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n in_o a_o small_a time_n for_o though_o the_o brethren_n send_v forth_o he_o &_o silas_n yet_o they_o adjoine_v themselves_o as_o voluntary_a companion_n to_o their_o danger_n and_o cross_n by_o this_o duty_n but_o the_o constancy_n of_o paul_n be_v uncredible_a because_o have_v have_v such_o experience_n of_o their_o stubbernesse_n and_o malice_n of_o his_o nation_n he_o do_v never_o cease_v to_o try_v whether_o he_o can_v bring_v any_o to_o christ_n namely_o see_v he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v bind_v both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n no_o injury_n of_o man_n can_v lead_v he_o away_o from_o his_o call_n so_o all_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n must_v so_o wrestle_v with_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o world_n that_o they_o shake_v not_o off_o christ_n yoke_n with_o what_o injury_n soever_o they_o be_v provoke_v 11_o and_o those_o be_v noble_a man_n among_o the_o thessalonian_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o word_n with_o all_o readiness_n of_o mind_n daily_o search_v the_o scripture_n whether_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o 12_o and_o many_o of_o they_o believe_v and_o honest_a woman_n which_o be_v grecian_n and_o man_n not_o a_o few_o 13_o but_o when_o the_o jew_n of_o thessalonica_n know_v that_o paul_n do_v also_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n at_o berrhea_n they_o come_v thither_o also_o move_v the_o multitude_n 14_o and_o then_o straightway_o the_o brethren_n send_v forth_o paul_n that_o he_o may_v go_v as_o it_o be_v unto_o the_o sea_n but_o silas_n and_o timotheus_n remain_v there_o 15_o moreover_o those_o which_o guide_v paul_n bring_v he_o even_o unto_o athens_n and_o when_o they_o have_v receive_v commandment_n to_o silas_n and_o timotheus_n that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o he_o with_o speed_n they_o depart_v 11_o do_v excel_v in_o nobility_n luke_n return_v again_o unto_o the_o man_n of_o thessalonica_n the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n may_v have_v be_v think_v to_o have_v be_v bury_v by_o the_o departure_n of_o paul_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o that_o small_a light_n which_o begin_v to_o shine_v be_v not_o quite_o put_v out_o and_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o sound_n doctrine_n do_v not_o wither_v away_o which_o have_v need_v continual_o to_o be_v water_v that_o it_o may_v spring_v up_o but_o aftet_fw-la paul_n departure_n it_o appear_v how_o effectual_a and_o fruitful_a his_o preach_n have_v be_v for_o those_o who_o have_v only_o taste_v of_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o godliness_n do_v nevertheless_o profit_v and_o go_v forward_o though_o he_o be_v absent_a and_o exercise_v themselves_o in_o the_o continual_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o first_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o chief_a family_n for_o the_o nobility_n whereof_o he_o make_v mention_v be_v refer_v not_o unto_o the_o mind_n but_o unto_o the_o nation_n some_o think_v that_o the_o man_n of_o berrhea_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o man_n of_o thessalonica_n because_o he_o say_v eugenesterous_a and_o not_o in_o the_o superlative_a degree_n eugenestatous_a but_o i_o think_v that_o that_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v usual_a and_o common_a among_o the_o grecian_n which_o the_o latin_n can_v not_o so_o well_o digest_v moreover_o he_o have_v say_v a_o little_a before_o that_o certain_a principal_a woman_n believe_v at_o thessalonica_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o man_n of_o berrhea_n be_v prefer_v before_o those_o of_o this_o
that_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v break_v when_o as_o religion_n be_v pull_v in_o piece_n among_o they_o &_o that_o that_o diversity_n which_o be_v among_o they_o be_v a_o testimony_n that_o godliness_n be_v quite_o overthrow_v because_o they_o be_v fall_v away_o from_o god_n the_o father_n of_o all_o upon_o who_o all_o kindred_n depend_v to_o dwell_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n luke_n do_v brief_o gather_v as_o he_o use_v to_o do_v the_o sum_n of_o paul_n his_o sermon_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o paul_n do_v first_o show_v that_o man_n be_v set_v here_o as_o upon_o a_o theatre_n to_o behold_v the_o work_v of_o god_n and_o second_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n which_o do_v show_v forth_o itself_o in_o the_o whole_a government_n of_o the_o world_n for_o when_o he_o say_v that_o god_n appoint_v the_o time_n ordain_v before_o and_o the_o bound_n of_o man_n habitation_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o this_o world_n be_v govern_v by_o his_o hand_n and_o counsel_n and_o that_o man_n affair_n fall_v not_o out_o by_o chance_n as_o profane_a man_n dream_v and_o so_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o a_o few_o word_n of_o luke_n that_o paul_n do_v handle_v most_o weighty_a matter_n for_o when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o time_n be_v ordain_v before_o by_o he_o he_o do_v testify_v that_o he_o have_v determine_v before_o man_n be_v create_v what_o their_o condition_n and_o estate_n shall_v be_v when_o we_o see_v diverse_a change_n in_o the_o world_n when_o we_o see_v realm_n come_v to_o ruin_n land_n alter_v city_n destroy_v nation_n lay_v waist_n we_o foolish_o imagine_v that_o either_o fate_n or_o fortune_n bear_v the_o swinge_n in_o these_o matter_n but_o god_n do_v testify_v in_o this_o place_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o paul_n that_o it_o be_v appoint_v before_o in_o his_o counsel_n how_o long_o he_o will_v have_v the_o state_n of_o every_o people_n to_o continue_v and_o within_o what_o bound_n he_o will_v have_v they_o contain_v but_o and_o if_o he_o have_v appoint_v they_o a_o certain_a time_n and_o appoint_v the_o bound_n of_o country_n undoubted_o he_o have_v also_o set_v in_o order_n the_o whole_a course_n of_o their_o life_n and_o we_o must_v note_v that_o paul_n do_v attribute_n to_o god_n not_o only_o a_o bare_a foreknowledge_n and_o cold_a speculation_n as_o some_o man_n do_v undiscrete_o but_o he_o place_v the_o cause_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o his_o counsel_n and_o beck_n for_o he_o say_v not_o that_o the_o time_n be_v only_o foresee_v but_o that_o they_o be_v appoint_v and_o set_v in_o such_o order_n as_o please_v he_o best_o and_o when_o he_o add_v also_o that_o god_n have_v appoint_v from_o the_o beginning_n those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v ordain_v before_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o execute_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v decree_v in_o his_o counsel_n according_a to_o that_o our_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n 115.3_o psal_n 115.3_o he_o have_v do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_v now_o we_o see_v as_o in_o a_o camp_n every_o troop_n and_o band_n have_v his_o appoint_a place_n so_o man_n be_v place_v upon_o earth_n that_o every_o people_n may_v be_v content_a with_o their_o bound_n &_o that_o among_o these_o people_n every_o particular_a person_n may_v have_v his_o mansion_n but_o though_o ambition_n have_v oftentimes_o rage_v and_o many_o be_v incense_v with_o wicked_a lust_n have_v past_o their_o bound_n yet_o the_o lust_n of_o man_n have_v never_o bring_v to_o pass_v but_o that_o god_n have_v govern_v all_o event_n from_o out_o his_o holy_a sanctuary_n for_o though_o man_n by_o rage_v upon_o earth_n do_v seem_v to_o assault_v heaven_n that_o they_o may_v overthrow_v god_n providence_n yet_o they_o be_v enforce_v whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o rather_o to_o establish_v the_o same_o therefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o world_n be_v so_o turn_v over_o through_o diverse_a tumult_n that_o god_n do_v at_o length_n bring_v all_o thing_n unto_o the_o end_n which_o he_o have_v appoint_v 27_o that_o they_o may_v seek_v god_n this_o sentence_n have_v two_o member_n to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v man_n duty_n to_o seek_v god_n second_o that_o god_n himself_o come_v forth_o to_o meet_v we_o and_o do_v show_v himself_o by_o such_o manifest_a token_n that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o excuse_n for_o our_o ignorance_n therefore_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o those_o man_n do_v wicked_o abuse_v this_o life_n &_o that_o they_o be_v unworthy_a to_o dwell_v upon_o earth_n which_o do_v not_o apply_v their_o study_n to_o seek_v he_o as_o if_o every_o kind_n of_o bruit_n beast_n shall_v fall_v from_o that_o inclination_n which_o they_o have_v natural_o which_o shall_v for_o good_a cause_n be_v call_v monstrous_a and_o sure_o nothing_o be_v more_o absurd_a than_o that_o man_n shall_v be_v ignorant_a of_o their_o author_n who_o be_v endue_v with_o understand_v principal_o for_o this_o use_n and_o we_o must_v especial_o note_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o that_o he_o do_v so_o familiar_o insinuate_v himself_o that_o even_o the_o blind_a may_v grope_v after_o he_o for_o which_o cause_n the_o blindness_n of_o man_n be_v more_o shameful_a and_o untollerable_a who_o in_o so_o manifest_a and_o evident_a a_o manifestation_n be_v touch_v with_o no_o feel_n of_o god_n presence_n whithersoever_o they_o cast_v their_o eye_n upward_o or_o downward_o they_o must_v needs_o light_v upon_o lively_a and_o also_o infinite_a image_n of_o god_n power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n for_o god_n have_v not_o dark_o shadow_v his_o glory_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o he_o have_v every_o where_o engrave_v such_o manifest_a mark_n that_o even_o blind_a man_n may_v know_v they_o by_o grope_v whence_o we_o gather_v that_o man_n be_v not_o only_o blind_a but_o blockish_a when_o be_v holpen_v by_o such_o excellent_a testimony_n they_o profit_v nothing_o yet_o here_o arise_v a_o question_n whether_o man_n can_v natural_o come_v unto_o the_o true_a and_o merciful_a knowledge_n of_o god._n for_o paul_n do_v give_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o their_o own_o sluggishness_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o they_o can_v perceive_v that_o god_n be_v present_a because_o though_o the_o shut_v their_o eye_n yet_o may_v they_o grope_v after_o he_o i_o answer_v that_o their_o ignorance_n and_o blockishness_n be_v mix_v with_o such_o forwardness_n that_o be_v void_a of_o right_a judgement_n they_o pass_v over_o without_o understand_v all_o such_o sign_n of_o god_n glory_n as_o appear_v manifest_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n yea_o see_v that_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v a_o singular_a gift_n of_o he_o &_o faith_n by_o which_o alone_o he_o be_v right_o know_v come_v only_o from_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n it_o follow_v that_o our_o mind_n can_v pierce_v so_o far_o have_v nature_n only_o for_o our_o guide_n neither_o do_v paul_n entreat_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o hability_n of_o man_n but_o he_o do_v only_o show_v that_o they_o be_v without_o excuse_n when_o as_o they_o be_v so_o blind_a in_o such_o clear_a light_n as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n therefore_o though_o man_n sense_n fail_v they_o in_o seek_v out_o god_n yet_o have_v they_o no_o cloak_n for_o their_o fault_n 14.17_o rom._n 1.20_o cap._n 14.17_o because_o though_o he_o offer_v himself_o to_o be_v handle_v and_o grope_v they_o continue_v notwithstanding_o in_o a_o quandary_n concern_v which_o thing_n we_o have_v speak_v more_o in_o the_o foverteenth_fw-mi chapter_n though_o he_o be_v not_o far_o from_o every_o one_o of_o us._n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v the_o more_o touch_v the_o frowardness_n of_o man_n he_o say_v that_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v through_o many_o crook_n neither_o need_n we_o make_v any_o long_a journey_n to_o find_v he_o because_o every_o man_n shall_v find_v he_o in_o himself_o if_o so_o be_v it_o he_o will_v take_v any_o heed_n by_o which_o experience_n we_o be_v convict_v that_o our_o dulness_n be_v not_o with_o out_o fault_n which_o we_o have_v from_o the_o fault_n of_o adam_n for_o though_o no_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n be_v void_a of_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n glory_n yet_o we_o need_v not_o go_v without_o ourselves_o to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o he_o for_o he_o do_v affect_v and_o move_v every_o one_o of_o we_o inward_o with_o his_o power_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o our_o blockishness_n be_v like_a to_o a_o monster_n in_o that_o in_o feel_v he_o we_o feel_v he_o not_o in_o this_o respect_n certain_a of_o the_o philosopher_n call_v man_n the_o little_a world_n because_o he_o be_v above_o all_o other_o creature_n a_o token_n of_o god_n glory_n
calamity_n may_v have_v more_o provoke_v and_o anger_v a_o great_a part_n because_o they_o be_v wrongful_o accuse_v for_o that_o religion_n which_o they_o do_v detest_v 3_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o trade_n this_o place_n teach_v that_o paul_n before_o he_o come_v to_o corinthus_n be_v wont_a to_o work_v with_o his_o hand_n and_o that_o not_o upon_o pleasure_n but_o that_o he_o may_v get_v his_o live_n with_o his_o handiwork_n it_o be_v not_o know_v where_o he_o first_o learn_v his_o occupation_n notwithstanding_o it_o appear_v by_o his_o own_o testimony_n that_o he_o wrought_v principal_o at_o corinthus_n 9.12.15_o 1._o co._n 9.12.15_o and_o he_o show_v a_o reason_n because_o the_o false_a apostle_n teach_v free_o without_o take_v any_o thing_n that_o they_o may_v crafty_o creep_v in_o therefore_o the_o holy_a man_n will_v not_o give_v place_n to_o they_o in_o that_o point_n lest_o he_o shall_v cause_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v evil_o speak_v off_o but_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o whithersoever_o he_o come_v until_o he_o be_v occupy_v in_o the_o continual_a labour_n of_o teach_v he_o wrought_v of_o his_o occupation_n that_o he_o may_v get_v his_o live_n when_o chrysostome_n say_v that_o paul_n be_v a_o cordiner_n he_o do_v no_o whit_n dissent_v from_o luke_n because_o they_o be_v wont_v at_o that_o time_n to_o make_v tent_n of_o skin_n 4_o he_o dispute_v in_o the_o synagogue_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n how_o that_o crope_n in_o which_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a book_n that_o paul_n put_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n unless_o it_o be_v because_o some_o reader_n will_v supply_v the_o want_n of_o the_o general_a sentence_n for_o luke_n set_v down_o two_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n to_o wit_n that_o paul_n dispute_v among_o the_o jew_n second_o that_o he_o begin_v more_o plain_o to_o profess_v christ_n after_o that_o silas_n and_o timotheus_n be_v come_v and_o though_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o he_o begin_v to_o speak_v of_o christ_n even_o at_o the_o first_o entrance_n because_o he_o can_v not_o omit_v the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n yet_o that_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o he_o may_v use_v some_o other_o manner_n of_o disputation_n therefore_o i_o take_v pithein_o that_o be_v to_o persuade_v for_o to_o induce_v by_o little_a and_o little_a for_o in_o my_o judgement_n luke_n do_v signify_v that_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v handle_v the_o law_n cold_o and_o foolish_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o corrupt_a &_o wicked_a nature_n of_o man_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o grace_n of_o the_o redeemer_n which_o be_v promise_v of_o the_o mean_n to_o obtain_v salvation_n that_o he_o may_v awake_v they_o for_o this_o be_v a_o fit_a and_o brief_a preparation_n unto_o christ_n again_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v force_v in_o spirit_n to_o teach_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o be_v enforce_v with_o great_a vehemency_n to_o entreat_v &_o speak_v of_o christ_n free_o &_o open_o so_o that_o we_o see_v that_o paul_n do_v not_o utter_v all_o thing_n at_o one_o time_n but_o he_o temper_v his_o doctrine_n as_o occasion_n do_v serve_v and_o because_o like_o moderation_n be_v profitable_a at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v convenient_a for_o faithful_a teacher_n wise_o to_o consider_v where_o to_o begin_v lest_o a_o preposterous_a and_o confuse_a order_n do_v hinder_v the_o proceed_n of_o doctrine_n furthermore_o though_o there_o be_v ferventness_n enough_o in_o paul_n yet_o be_v it_o no_o inconvenient_a thing_n that_o he_o be_v make_v more_o courageous_a by_o some_o new_a help_n not_o that_o he_o be_v encourage_v by_o shame_n or_o the_o hope_n which_o he_o repose_v in_o his_o fellow_n but_o because_o he_o consider_v that_o this_o help_n be_v send_v he_o as_o it_o be_v from_o heaven_n but_o this_o force_n in_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o take_v for_o a_o violent_a or_o external_a impulsion_n as_o they_o say_v as_o those_o which_o be_v call_v phaebade_n and_o frantic_a man_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o devilish_a madness_n but_o there_o be_v more_o ferventness_n add_v unto_o the_o wont_a inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o paul_n so_o that_o he_o be_v move_v with_o new_a power_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o do_v he_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n follow_v the_o spirit_n as_o his_o guide_n whereas_o paul_n do_v testify_v that_o jesus_n be_v christ_n i_o expound_v it_o thus_o when_o he_o have_v thorough_o teach_v the_o jew_n concern_v the_o office_n of_o the_o redeemer_n he_o declare_v by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n that_o this_o be_v he_o which_o be_v to_o be_v hope_v for_o because_o all_o those_o thing_n agree_v to_o he_o which_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n attribute_n to_o christ_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o simple_o affirm_v but_o use_v a_o solemn_a testification_n he_o prove_v jesus_n the_o son_n of_o mary_n to_o be_v that_o christ_n who_o shall_v be_v the_o mediator_n between_o god_n &_o man_n that_o he_o may_v restore_v the_o world_n from_o destruction_n to_o life_n 6_o and_o when_o they_o gainsay_v he_o and_o rail_v upon_o he_o shake_v his_o garment_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o your_o blood_n be_v upon_o your_o own_o head_n i_o will_v go_v henceforth_o clean_o unto_o the_o gentile_n 7_o and_o go_v thence_o he_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o a_o certain_a man_n name_v justus_n a_o worshipper_n of_o god_n who_o house_n join_v to_o the_o synagogue_n 8_o and_o crispus_n the_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n believe_v in_o the_o lord_n with_o all_o his_o household_n and_o many_o of_o the_o corinthian_n which_o hear_v believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v 9_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v by_o night_n by_o a_o vision_n to_o paul_n fear_v not_o but_o speak_v &_o hold_v not_o thy_o peace_n 10_o because_o i_o be_o wit_n thou_o and_o no_o man_n shall_v lay_v hand_n on_o thou_o to_o hurt_v thou_o because_o i_o have_v much_o people_n in_o this_o city_n 11_o and_o he_o remain_v there_o a_o year_n and_o six_o month_n teach_v they_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n 6_o when_o they_o gainsay_v the_o jew_n suffer_v paul_n after_o a_o sort_n until_o he_o come_v unto_o the_o manifest_a preach_v of_o christ_n and_o here_o break_v out_o their_o rage_n and_o we_o must_v note_v the_o speech_n that_o they_o go_v from_o gainsay_v unto_o blaspheme_v and_o rail_v for_o it_o fall_v out_o thus_o for_o the_o most_o part_n when_o man_n take_v to_o themselves_o such_o liberty_n that_o the_o devil_n do_v inflame_v they_o by_o little_a &_o little_a unto_o great_a madness_n for_o which_o cause_n we_o must_v take_v good_a heed_n that_o no_o wicked_a lust_n or_o desire_n provoke_v we_o to_o resist_v the_o truth_n &_o above_o all_o let_v that_o horrible_a judgement_n terrify_v we_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n thunder_v out_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o paul_n against_o all_o rebel_n for_o undoubted_o in_o that_o paul_n by_o shake_v his_o garment_n give_v some_o token_n of_o detestation_n it_o be_v no_o humane_a or_o private_a indignation_n but_o zeal_n kindle_v by_o god_n in_o his_o heart_n yea_o god_n raise_v he_o up_o to_o be_v a_o preacher_n &_o setter_n forth_o of_o his_o vengeance_n to_o the_o end_n the_o enemy_n of_o the_o word_n may_v know_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o escape_v scotfree_a for_o their_o stubbornness_n we_o speak_v somewhat_o touch_v this_o sign_n of_o execration_n or_o curse_v in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n let_v the_o reader_n repair_v thither_o the_o sum_n be_v that_o god_n be_v sore_a displease_v with_o contempt_n of_o his_o word_n 13.51_o ch._n 13.51_o then_o with_o any_o wickedness_n and_o sure_o man_n be_v quite_o past_a hope_n when_o they_o tread_v under_o foot_n or_o drive_v from_o they_o the_o only_a remedy_n of_o all_o evil_n and_o malady_n now_o as_o the_o lord_n can_v abide_v rebellion_n against_o his_o word_n so_o it_o ought_v to_o sting_v &_o netle_v we_o fulsore_n my_o meaning_n be_v this_o that_o when_o the_o wicked_a enter_z combat_n with_o god_n &_o as_o it_o be_v arm_v themselves_o to_o resist_v we_o be_v call_v as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o heavenly_a trumpet_n unto_o the_o conflict_n because_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o filthy_a than_o that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v mock_v god_n to_o his_o face_n while_o we_o say_v nothing_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v even_o break_v out_o into_o reproach_n and_o blasphemy_n your_o blood_n he_o denounce_v to_o they_o vengeance_n because_o they_o be_v with_o out_o excuse_v for_o they_o can_v shift_v no_o part_n of_o their_o fault_n from_o themselves_o after_o that_o despise_v the_o call_n of_o god_n they_o have_v endeavour_v to_o put_v out_o the_o light_n of_o life_n therefore_o see_v they_o bear_v the_o blame_n of_o their_o
return_v to_o you_o again_o godwilling_a and_o he_o loose_v from_o ephesus_n 22_o and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v down_o to_o cesaria_n and_o be_v go_v up_o and_o have_v salute_v the_o church_n he_o come_v down_o to_o antioch_n 23_o and_o when_o he_o have_v tarry_v there_o some_o time_n he_o depart_v walk_v through_o the_o country_n of_o galacia_n and_o phrygia_n in_o order_n strengthen_v all_o the_o disciple_n 18_o and_o when_o he_o have_v tarry_v there_o many_o day_n paul_n his_o constancy_n appear_v in_o this_o in_o that_o he_o be_v not_o drive_v away_o with_o fear_n lest_o he_o shall_v trouble_v the_o disciple_n who_o be_v as_o yet_o ignorant_a &_o weak_a with_o his_o sudden_a and_o untimely_a departure_n we_o read_v in_o many_o other_o place_n that_o when_o persecution_n be_v raise_v against_o he_o elsewhere_o he_o flee_v forthwith_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n then_o that_o he_o stay_v at_o corinthus_n to_o wit_n when_o he_o see_v that_o the_o enemy_n be_v provoke_v with_o his_o presence_n to_o rage_n against_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o faithful_a shall_v have_v peace_n and_o rest_n by_o his_o departure_n but_o now_o when_o he_o see_v their_o malice_n bridle_v so_o that_o they_o can_v not_o hurt_v the_o flock_n of_o god_n he_o have_v rather_o sting_v and_o nettle_n they_o then_o by_o depart_v to_o minister_v unto_o they_o any_o new_a occasion_n of_o rage_n furthermore_o this_o be_v the_o three_o journey_n which_o paul_n take_v to_o jerusalem_n for_o go_v from_o damascus_n he_o go_v once_o up_o that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o he_o be_v send_v the_o second_o time_n with_o barnabas_n that_o he_o may_v handle_v and_o end_v the_o controversy_n about_o ceremony_n but_o luke_n do_v not_o set_v down_o for_o what_o cause_n he_o now_o take_v such_o a_o long_a and_o laborous_a journey_n determine_v with_o all_o speed_n to_o return_v when_o he_o have_v shear_v his_o head_n it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o aquila_n or_o of_o paul_n neither_o skill_v it_o much_o though_o i_o interpret_v it_o willing_o of_o paul_n because_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o a_o likely_a thing_n that_o he_o do_v this_o for_o because_o of_o the_o jew_n unto_o who_o he_o be_v about_o to_o come_v assure_o i_o think_v this_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o all_o man_n grant_v that_o he_o make_v not_o any_o ceremonial_a vow_n for_o his_o own_o cause_n only_o that_o he_o may_v do_v some_o worship_n to_o god_n he_o know_v that_o that_o be_v to_o continue_v only_o for_o a_o time_n which_o god_n command_v under_o the_o law_n to_o the_o old_a people_n and_o we_o know_v how_o diligent_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n consist_v not_o in_o these_o external_a element_n and_o how_o straight_o he_o urge_v the_o abrogate_a thereof_o it_o have_v be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n for_o he_o to_o bind_v his_o own_o conscience_n with_o that_o religion_n from_o which_o he_o have_v loose_v all_o other_o man_n therefore_o he_o do_v shear_v his_o head_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n save_v only_o that_o he_o may_v apply_v himself_o to_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v as_o yet_o ignorant_a &_o not_o thorough_o teach_v as_o he_o do_v testify_v that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o voluntary_a observe_v of_o the_o law_n from_o which_o he_o be_v free_v that_o he_o may_v gain_v those_o who_o be_v under_o the_o law_n if_o any_o man_n object_n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o make_v semblance_n of_o a_o vow_n which_o he_o have_v not_o make_v from_o his_o hart_n we_o may_v easy_o answer_v 9.20_o 1._o cor._n 9.20_o that_o as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o purifi_v he_o do_v not_o dissemble_v and_o that_o he_o use_v the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v as_o yet_o free_a not_o as_o if_o god_n do_v require_v such_o worship_n but_o that_o he_o may_v somewhat_o bear_v with_o the_o ignorant_a therefore_o the_o papist_n be_v ridiculous_a when_o they_o set_v from_o hence_o a_o example_n of_o make_v vow_n paul_n be_v move_v with_o no_o religion_n to_o make_v his_o vow_n but_o these_o man_n place_v a_o feign_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o vow_n respect_n of_o time_n enforce_v paul_n to_o keep_v the_o rite_n of_o the_o law_n these_o man_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o entangle_v in_o superstition_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v set_v free_a long_o ago_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o bring_v in_o use_n again_o old_a ceremony_n use_v long_o ago_o and_o another_o to_o tolerate_v the_o same_o be_v as_o yet_o use_v until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o may_v by_o little_a and_o little_o grow_v out_o of_o use_n i_o omit_v that_o the_o papist_n in_o vain_a and_o foolish_o compare_v the_o shave_n of_o their_o priest_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o purify_n which_o god_n have_v allow_v in_o the_o law_n but_o because_o we_o need_v not_o stand_v any_o long_a to_o refute_v they_o let_v this_o one_o thing_n suffice_v we_o that_o paul_n bind_v himself_o with_o a_o vow_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v those_o which_o be_v weak_a to_o christ_n at_o least_o that_o he_o may_v not_o offend_v they_o which_o vow_v he_o know_v be_v of_o no_o importance_n before_o god_n 19_o enter_v into_o the_o synagogue_n in_o that_o he_o shake_v his_o garment_n at_o corinthus_n it_o be_v do_v for_o that_o cause_n as_o this_o place_n teach_v that_o he_o may_v cast_v off_o the_o whole_a nation_n but_o only_o such_o as_o he_o have_v already_o try_v to_o be_v of_o desperate_a obstinacy_n now_o he_o come_v afresh_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n that_o he_o may_v try_v whether_o he_o can_v find_v any_o more_o obedience_n among_o they_o furthermore_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o see_v it_o appear_v by_o luke_n his_o report_n that_o he_o be_v hear_v more_o patient_o in_o this_o synagogue_n then_o in_o any_o other_o place_n &_o also_o that_o he_o be_v request_v to_o tarry_v he_o do_v not_o grant_v their_o request_n hence_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v that_o which_o i_o say_v before_o that_o he_o have_v some_o great_a cause_n to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n in_o haste_n also_o he_o himself_o show_v that_o he_o must_v make_v haste_n say_v i_o must_v keep_v the_o feast_n which_o be_v at_o hand_n at_o jerusalem_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o after_o he_o have_v set_v thing_n in_o good_a order_n there_o he_o depart_v with_o their_o good_a leave_n and_o we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o luke_n his_o word_n that_o they_o do_v admit_v his_o excuse_n lest_o the_o repulse_n shall_v offend_v they_o and_o this_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n that_o when_o better_a hope_n to_o do_v good_a be_v offer_v we_o than_o we_o be_v wont_a to_o have_v we_o be_v draw_v unto_o diverse_a affair_n as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o give_v over_o ourselves_o to_o be_v govern_v at_o his_o pleasure_n the_o feast_n that_o which_o i_o say_v of_o late_o touch_v the_o vow_n do_v also_o appertain_v unto_o the_o feast_n day_n for_o paul_n mean_v not_o to_o do_v thereby_o any_o duty_n of_o godliness_n to_o god_n but_o to_o be_v at_o the_o assembly_n wherein_o he_o may_v do_v more_o good_a then_o at_o any_o other_o time_n of_o the_o year_n for_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o do_v sufficient_o testify_v what_o account_n he_o make_v of_o difference_n of_o day_n and_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o make_v no_o promise_n touch_v his_o return_n 4.10_o gal._n 4.10_o with_o out_o use_v this_o exception_n if_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n we_o do_v all_o confess_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stir_v one_o finger_n without_o his_o direction_n but_o because_o there_o reign_v in_o man_n so_o great_a arrogancy_n every_o where_o that_o they_o dare_v determine_v any_o thing_n pass_v over_o god_n not_o only_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v but_o also_o for_o many_o year_n we_o must_v oftentimes_o think_v upon_o this_o reverence_n and_o sobriety_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o make_v our_o counsel_n subject_a to_o the_o will_n and_o providence_n of_o god_n lest_o if_o we_o delyberate_v and_o take_v counsel_n as_o those_o use_n to_o do_v who_o think_v that_o they_o have_v fortune_n at_o their_o commandment_n we_o be_v just_o punish_v for_o our_o rashness_n and_o though_o there_o be_v not_o so_o great_a religion_n in_o word_n but_o that_o we_o may_v at_o our_o pleasure_n say_v that_o we_o will_v do_v this_o or_o that_o yet_o be_v it_o good_a to_o accustom_v ourselves_o to_o use_v certain_a form_n in_o our_o speech_n that_o they_o may_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o god_n do_v direct_v all_o our_o do_n 22_o when_o he_o come_v down_o to_o caesarea_n though_o luke_n say_v in_o a_o word_n that_o paul_n salute_v
word_n way_n let_v the_o reader_n understand_v thus_o much_o that_o it_o be_v here_o take_v for_o that_o which_o the_o latin_n call_v sect_n the_o greek_a philosopher_n call_v it_o heresy_n or_o heresy_n but_o because_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n where_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n ought_v to_o reign_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o odious_a or_o detestable_a than_o for_o every_o man_n to_o choose_v at_o his_o pleasure_n that_o which_o he_o will_v follow_v i_o think_v that_o luke_n do_v fly_v that_o name_n which_o be_v for_o good_a cause_n infamous_a among_o the_o godly_a and_o that_o after_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n he_o put_v way_n in_o steed_n of_o ordinance_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o matter_n we_o see_v how_o wonderful_o the_o lord_n do_v exercise_v his_o servant_n he_o do_v hope_v when_o he_o do_v address_v himself_o for_o his_o journey_n that_o the_o church_n will_v be_v quiet_a after_o his_o departure_n and_o lo_o there_o arise_v a_o uproar_n at_o a_o sudden_a where_o he_o do_v least_o fear_n but_o in_o demetrius_n it_o appear_v what_o a_o hurtful_a plague_n covetousness_n be_v for_o one_o man_n for_o his_o own_o gain_n sake_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o trouble_v a_o whole_a city_n with_o sedition_n and_o the_o craft_n man_n who_o be_v as_o firebrand_n kindle_v by_o he_o and_o do_v spread_v abroad_o the_o fire_n every_o where_o do_v teach_v we_o what_o a_o easy_a matter_n it_o be_v to_o cause_v filthy_a man_n and_o those_o who_o belly_n be_v their_o god_n to_o commit_v all_o manner_n wickedness_n especial_o if_o they_o live_v only_o by_o gain_n evil_o get_v and_o the_o hope_n of_o gain_n be_v take_v from_o they_o moreover_o in_o this_o history_n we_o see_v a_o lively_a image_n of_o our_o time_n demetrius_n and_o his_o band_n raise_v a_o tumult_n because_o if_o superstition_n whereby_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o get_v gain_n be_v take_v away_o their_o craft_n will_v fall_v to_o ground_n therefore_o they_o fight_v as_o if_o it_o be_v for_o their_o life_n lest_o demetrius_n go_v without_o his_o fat_a prey_n and_o the_o rest_n want_v their_o daily_a lyve_n what_o zeal_n do_v at_o this_o day_n prick_v forward_o the_o pope_n the_o horn_a byshoppe_n the_o munke_n and_o all_o the_o rabblement_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n yea_o what_o fury_n do_v drive_v they_o so_o sore_o to_o resist_v the_o gospel_n they_o boast_v that_o they_o strive_v for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n neither_o do_v demetrius_n want_v a_o honest_a colour_n pretend_v the_o worship_n of_o diana_n but_o the_o matter_n itself_o do_v plain_o declare_v that_o they_o fight_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o altar_n as_o for_o the_o fi●es_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o may_v have_v hot_a kitching_n they_o can_v well_o wink_v at_o filthy_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n so_o they_o lack_v nothing_o of_o their_o revenue_n only_o they_o be_v more_o than_o courageous_a in_o maintain_v such_o superstition_n as_o be_v meet_a for_o their_o purpose_n therefore_o be_v teach_v by_o such_o example_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o make_v choice_n of_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o life_n as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n lest_o desire_n of_o gain_n provoke_v we_o to_o enter_v a_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a combat_n and_o as_o for_o those_o who_o through_o ignorance_n or_o error_n be_v fall_v unto_o any_o ungodly_a occupation_n or_o be_v entangle_v in_o any_o other_o impure_a and_o wicked_a kind_n of_o life_n let_v they_o notwithstanding_o beware_v of_o such_o sacrilegious_a rashness_n and_o as_o touch_v godly_a teacher_n let_v they_o learn_v by_o this_o example_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o want_v adversary_n until_o the_o whole_a world_n through_o denial_n of_o itself_o offer_v peace_n which_o we_o know_v will_v never_o come_v to_o pass_v because_o paul_n doctrine_n take_v away_o demetrius_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o silver_n smith_n gain_n they_o leap_v out_o furious_o to_o put_v out_o the_o same_o will_v not_o they_o do_v the_o same_o who_o the_o gospel_n shall_v contrary_v but_o there_o be_v no_o man_n who_o have_v not_o occasion_n to_o fight_v for_o all_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enemies_n to_o god_n so_o that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o how_o many_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n there_o be_v in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v as_o many_o arm_a enemy_n to_o resist_v christ_n it_o will_v in_o deed_n oftentimes_o fall_v out_o that_o god_n will_v bridle_v the_o wicked_a lest_o they_o raise_v some_o tumult_n or_o break_v out_o into_o open_a rage_n yet_o whosoever_o be_v not_o tame_v and_o bring_v down_o to_o bear_v christ_n yoke_n he_o shall_v always_o hate_v his_o gospel_n so_o that_o faithful_a &_o godly_a teacher_n must_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v always_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o great_a store_n of_o enemy_n demetrius_z his_o covetousness_n be_v manifest_a nevertheless_o we_o must_v also_o know_v this_o that_o he_o be_v satan_n his_o fan_n who_o seek_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o overthrow_v paul_n doctrine_n find_v this_o fit_a instrument_n now_o forasmuch_o as_o we_o know_v that_o satan_n be_v a_o deadly_a enemy_n to_o christ_n and_o the_o truth_n do_v we_o think_v that_o he_o shall_v ever_o want_v minister_n who_o shall_v rage_v through_o his_o motion_n and_o persuasion_n either_o with_o open_a rage_n or_o else_o seek_v to_o work_v the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o secret_a practice_n or_o spew_v out_o the_o poison_n of_o their_o hatred_n or_o else_o at_o least_o show_v some_o token_n of_o enmity_n by_o fret_v and_o murmur_v 25_o by_o this_o craft_n demetrius_n do_v in_o this_o place_n filthy_o bewray_v his_o malice_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o man_n in_o some_o measure_n to_o provide_v for_o his_o priva●●_n profit_n but_o to_o trouble_v common_a peace_n for_o a_o man_n own_o gain_n to_o overthrow_v equity_n and_o right_a to_o give_v over_o a_o man_n self_n to_o do_v violence_n &_o commit_v murder_n to_o extinguish_v that_o of_o set_a purpose_n which_o be_v just_a and_o right_o that_o be_v too_o great_a wickedness_n demetrius_n confess_v that_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o cause_n because_o paul_n deni_v that_o those_o be_v god_n which_o be_v make_v with_o man_n hand_n he_o do_v not_o inquire_v whether_o this_o be_v true_a or_o no_o but_o be_v blind_v with_o a_o desire_n to_o get_v gain_n he_o be_v carry_v headlong_o to_o oppress_v ●●ue_a doctrine_n the_o same_o blindness_n do_v drive_v he_o headlong_o to_o seek_v violent_a remedy_n also_o the_o craft_n man_n because_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o poverty_n and_o hunger_n run_v headlong_o as_o violent_o for_o the_o belly_n be_v blind_a and_o deaf_a so_o that_o it_o can_v admit_v no_o equity_n for_o which_o cause_n every_o one_o of_o we_o aught_o more_o to_o suspect_v himself_o when_o the_o question_n be_v touch_v our_o own_o gain_n &_o profit_n lest_o the_o same_o covetous_a desire_n which_o make_v these_o man_n so_o mad_a take_v away_o all_o difference_n of_o justice_n and_o unjustice_n of_o that_o which_o be_v filthy_a and_o that_o which_o be_v honest_a 27_o not_o only_o this_o part_n this_o be_v first_o disordered_o handle_v in_o that_o demetrius_n be_v careful_a for_o religion_n after_o other_o thing_n because_o nothing_o be_v more_o absurd_a then_o to_o prefer_v the_o belly_n before_o the_o goddess_n but_o even_o this_o be_v also_o vain_a in_o that_o he_o pretend_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o diana_n be_v in_o hazard_n for_o if_o he_o have_v suffer_v no_o loss_n by_o paul_n his_o doctrine_n he_o will_v have_v sit_v quiet_o at_o home_n he_o will_v neither_o have_v take_v think_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o diana_n neither_o will_v he_o have_v trouble_v other_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n then_o he_o be_v so_o diligent_a and_o so_o earnest_a in_o his_o business_n even_o this_o because_o he_o be_v plague_v at_o home_n and_o because_o he_o see_v that_o he_o and_o his_o copartner_n have_v no_o honest_a or_o probable_a cause_n to_o make_v any_o stir_n he_o go_v about_o to_o colour_v the_o matter_n with_o some_o other_o colour_n therefore_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v cover_v the_o shame_n of_o his_o wicked_a fact_n he_o cloke_v it_o with_o the_o title_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v plausible_a so_o that_o the_o wicked_a howsoever_o they_o strive_v froward_o against_o god_n yet_o they_o gather_v here_o and_o there_o honest_a excuse_n impudent_o but_o god_n do_v not_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v mock_v but_o do_v rather_o pull_v they_o out_o of_o their_o start_a hole_n there_o need_v no_o other_o witness_n to_o refute_v demetrius_n his_o hypocrisy_n because_o he_o cut_v his_o own_o throat_n with_o his_o own_o word_n when_o he_o bewray_v the_o sorrow_n which_o he_o have_v conceive_v because_o of_o the_o loss_n which_o he_o sustain_v in_o like_a state_n do_v
apply_v a_o remedy_n do_v forthwith_o rid_v the_o mind_n of_o he_o of_o all_o perturbation_n 10_o he_o lay_v down_o upon_o he_o we_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o work_a miracle_n do_v sometime_o use_v certain_a external_a rite_n whereby_o they_o may_v give_v the_o glory_n to_o god_n the_o author_n and_o now_o whereas_o paul_n do_v stretch_v himself_o upon_o the_o young_a man_n i_o think_v it_o be_v do_v to_o no_o other_o end_n save_v only_o that_o he_o may_v more_o stir_v up_o himself_o unto_o prayer_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v mix_v himself_o with_o the_o dead_a man_n and_o peradventure_o this_o be_v do_v for_o the_o imitation_n of_o elizeus_fw-la of_o who_o the_o sacred_a history_n do_v report_v the_o same_o thing_n yet_o the_o vehemency_n of_o his_o affection_n do_v more_o move_v he_o that_o the_o emulation_n of_o the_o prophet_n for_o that_o stretch_n of_o himself_o upon_o he_o do_v more_o provoke_v he_o to_o crave_v his_o life_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o when_o he_o embrace_v the_o body_n of_o the_o dead_a man_n by_o this_o gesture_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o offer_v it_o to_o god_n to_o be_v quicken_v and_o out_o of_o the_o text_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o he_o do_v not_o depart_v from_o embrace_v it_o until_o he_o know_v that_o the_o life_n be_v restore_v again_o be_v you_o not_o trouble_v we_o must_v note_v that_o paul_n take_v great_a care_n principal_o for_o this_o cause_n lest_o that_o sorrowful_a event_n shall_v shake_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o shall_v trouble_v their_o mind_n nevertheless_o the_o lord_n do_v as_o it_o be_v seal_v up_o &_o establish_v that_o last_o sermon_n which_o paul_n make_v at_o troas_n when_o he_o say_v that_o his_o soul_n be_v in_o he_o he_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a because_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o shall_v extinguish_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o miracle_n but_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n be_v that_o his_o life_n be_v restore_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o do_v not_o restrain_v that_o which_o follow_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v great_o comfort_v unto_o the_o joy_n which_o they_o have_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o young_a man_n which_o be_v restore_v to_o life_n but_o i_o do_v also_o comprehend_v the_o confirmation_n of_o faith_n see_v god_n give_v they_o such_o a_o excellent_a testimony_n of_o his_o love_n 13_o when_o we_o have_v take_v ship_n it_o be_v uncertain_a why_o paul_n do_v choose_v rather_o to_o go_v by_o land_n whether_o it_o be_v because_o sail_v may_v be_v to_o he_o troublesome_a or_o that_o as_o he_o do_v pass_v by_o he_o may_v visit_v the_o brethren_n i_o think_v that_o he_o do_v then_o eschew_v the_o sea_n for_o his_o health_n sake_n and_o his_o courtesy_n be_v great_o to_o be_v commend_v in_o that_o he_o spare_v his_o companion_n for_o to_o what_o end_n do_v he_o suffer_v they_o to_o depart_v save_v only_o that_o he_o may_v ease_v they_o of_o the_o trouble_n so_o that_o we_o see_v that_o they_o do_v strive_v among_o themselves_o in_o courtesy_n and_o good_a turn_n they_o be_v ready_a and_o willing_a to_o do_v their_o duty_n but_o paul_n be_v so_o far_o from_o require_v thing_n streit_o at_o their_o hand_n that_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o courteous_o he_o do_v remit_v those_o duty_n which_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v yea_o set_v aside_o his_o own_o commodity_n he_o command_v they_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v for_o their_o comfort_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o city_n asson_n be_v by_o the_o describer_n of_o country_n attribute_v to_o troas_n the_o same_o as_o pliny_n do_v witness_n be_v call_v appolonia_n they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o free_a city_n of_o the_o aetolianes_n 14_o and_o when_o we_o be_v come_v together_o at_o asson_n have_v receive_v he_o we_o come_v to_o mitylenes_n 15_o and_o sail_v thence_o the_o day_n follow_v we_o come_v over_o against_o chios_n and_o on_o the_o morrow_n we_o arrive_v at_o samos_n and_o have_v tarry_v at_o trogyllium_n we_o come_v to_o miletum_n 16_o for_o paul_n purpose_v to_o sail_v beyond_o ephesus_n lest_o he_o shall_v spend_v the_o time_n in_o asia_n for_o he_o make_v haste_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o he_o to_o keep_v the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n at_o jerusalem_n 17_o and_o have_v send_v messenger_n from_o miletum_fw-la to_o ephesus_n he_o call_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n 18_o who_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o he_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o know_v from_o the_o first_o day_n wherein_o i_o enter_v into_o asia_n how_o i_o have_v be_v with_o you_o at_o all_o season_n 19_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o humility_n of_o mind_n &_o with_o many_o tear_n &_o temptation_n which_o happen_v to_o i_o by_o the_o lay_n in_o wait_n of_o the_o jew_n 20_o so_o that_o i_o have_v keep_v nothing_o back_o which_o may_v be_v for_o your_o profit_n but_o do_v show_v to_o you_o and_o teach_v you_o public_o and_o through_o every_o house_n 21_o testifi_v both_o to_o the_o jew_n and_o grecian_n the_o repentance_n which_o be_v toward_o god_n and_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v towards_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 16_o for_o paul_n purpose_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o have_v great_a &_o weighty_a cause_n to_o make_v haste_n not_o that_o he_o make_v so_o great_a account_n of_o the_o day_n but_o because_o stranger_n do_v they_o use_v to_o come_v together_o to_o jerusalem_fw-la out_o of_o all_o quarter_n forasmuch_o as_o he_o do_v hope_n that_o he_o may_v do_v some_o good_a in_o such_o a_o great_a assembly_n he_o will_v not_o foreslow_v the_o opportunity_n therefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o law_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n that_o he_o make_v so_o great_a haste_n but_o he_o set_v before_o his_o eye_n the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n partly_o that_o he_o may_v show_v to_o the_o faithful_a that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v enlarge_v partly_o that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o as_o yet_o stranger_n from_o christ_n he_o may_v gain_v they_o partly_o that_o he_o may_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o wicked_a notwithstanding_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o do_v in_o the_o mean_a season_n provide_v for_o other_o church_n for_o in_o send_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n to_o miletum_n he_o show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o neglect_n asia_n and_o whereas_o they_o come_v together_o when_o they_o be_v call_v it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o token_n of_o concord_n but_o also_o of_o modesty_n for_o they_o be_v many_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o irk_v they_o to_o obey_v one_o apostle_n of_o christ_n who_o they_o know_v to_o be_v endue_v with_o singular_a gift_n moreover_o it_o appear_v more_o plain_o by_o the_o text_n that_o those_o be_v call_v elder_n not_o which_o be_v gray_a head_v but_o such_o as_o be_v ruler_n of_o the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v a_o usual_a thing_n almost_o in_o all_o tongue_n that_o those_o be_v call_v elder_n &_o father_n who_o be_v appoint_v to_o govern_v other_o though_o their_o age_n be_v not_o always_o according_a 18_o you_o know_v paul_n in_o this_o sermon_n stand_v principal_o upon_o this_o that_o he_o may_v exhort_v those_o pastor_n of_o ephesus_n by_o his_o own_o example_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n faithful_o for_o that_o be_v the_o true_a kind_n of_o censure_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v authority_n purchase_v to_o doctrine_n when_o the_o teacher_n prescribe_v nothing_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v not_o do_v in_o deed_n before_o and_o it_o be_v no_o unseemly_a thing_n for_o paul_n to_o speak_v of_o his_o virtue_n there_o be_v nothing_o less_o tolerable_a in_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n then_o ambyrion_n and_o vanity_n but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o man_n know_v full_a well_o what_o modesty_n and_o humility_n be_v in_o the_o holy_a man_n he_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v lest_o he_o shall_v incur_v the_o suspicion_n of_o vain_a boast_n especial_o see_v that_o be_v enforce_v by_o necessity_n he_o do_v declare_v his_o faithfulness_n and_o diligence_n that_o other_o may_v take_v example_n thereby_o he_o do_v in_o deed_n great_o extol_v his_o labour_n patience_n fortitude_n and_o other_o virtue_n but_o to_o what_o end_n sure_o not_o that_o he_o may_v purchase_v commendation_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o auditory_a but_o that_o this_o holy_a exhortation_n may_v pierce_v more_o deep_o and_o may_v stick_v fast_o in_o their_o mind_n he_o do_v also_o shoot_v at_o another_o mark_n that_o his_o integrity_n and_o uprightness_n in_o deal_n may_v serve_v afterward_o to_o commend_v his_o doctrine_n and_o he_o cit_v eye_n witness_n lest_o he_o seem_v to_o speak_v of_o thing_n unknowen_a i_o call_v those_o
token_n when_o a_o man_n be_v more_o bend_v to_o give_v then_o to_o take_v neither_o do_v christ_n speak_v only_o politikelie_a as_o if_o those_o who_o be_v liberal_a be_v therefore_o bless_v because_o they_o bind_v other_o man_n unto_o they_o with_o their_o benefit_n and_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o bondage_n to_o owe_v any_o thing_n but_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o a_o high_a thing_n because_o he_o which_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a 19.17_o prou._n 19.17_o dare_v unto_o the_o lord_n that_o those_o be_v faithful_a and_o good_a steward_n of_o god_n who_o impart_v to_o their_o brethren_n some_o of_o that_o plenty_n which_o they_o have_v lend_v they_o that_o man_n draw_v near_o unto_o god_n in_o nothing_o then_o in_o liberality_n we_o do_v also_o read_v these_o title_n of_o liberality_n in_o profane_a author_n and_o a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o world_n confess_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a but_o they_o consent_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o proverb_n with_o ass_n ear_n for_o the_o common_a life_n do_v show_v how_o few_o be_v persuade_v that_o nothing_o ought_v more_o to_o be_v wish_v then_o that_o we_o bestow_v our_o good_n to_o help_v our_o brethren_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n must_v more_o studious_o think_v upon_o this_o felicity_n that_o abstain_v so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v from_o that_o which_o be_v a_o other_o man_n they_o accustom_v themselves_o to_o give_v and_o yet_o they_o must_v not_o do_v this_o with_o a_o haughty_a heart_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o miserable_a thing_n for_o they_o to_o be_v in_o any_o man_n danger_n either_o through_o ambition_n that_o they_o may_v bind_v other_o man_n to_o they_o but_o only_o that_o they_o may_v exercise_v themselves_o willing_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o love_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n make_v know_v the_o grace_n of_o their_o adoption_n 36_o and_o kneel_v down_o the_o inward_a affection_n be_v in_o deed_n the_o chief_a thing_n in_o prayer_n yet_o the_o external_a sign_n as_o kneel_v uncover_v of_o the_o head_n lift_v up_o of_o the_o hand_n have_v a_o double_a use_n the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o exercise_v all_o our_o member_n to_o the_o glory_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n second_o that_o by_o this_o exercise_n our_o sluggishness_n may_v be_v awake_v as_o it_o be_v there_o be_v also_o a_o third_o use_n in_o solemn_a and_o public_a prayer_n because_o the_o child_n of_o god_n do_v by_o this_o mean_n make_v profession_n of_o their_o godliness_n and_o one_o of_o they_o do_v provoke_v another_o unto_o the_o reverence_n of_o god_n and_o as_o the_o lift_n up_o of_o the_o hand_n be_v a_o token_n of_o boldness_n and_o of_o a_o earnest_a desire_n so_o to_o testify_v our_o humility_n we_o fall_v down_o upon_o our_o knee_n but_o he_o seal_v up_o and_o conclude_v that_o sermon_n which_o he_o make_v before_o with_o prayer_n because_o we_o can_v hope_v for_o no_o profit_n of_o our_o doctrine_n save_v only_o from_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o we_o be_v desirous_a to_o do_v any_o good_a by_o teach_v admonish_a &_o exhort_v let_v we_o always_o end_v after_o this_o sort_n to_o wit_n with_o prayer_n 37_o great_a weep_v no_o marvel_n if_o all_o the_o godly_a do_v entire_o love_v this_o holy_a man_n for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o point_n of_o too_o gross_a unthankfulness_n to_o despice_fw-la he_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v so_o beautify_v with_o so_o many_o excellent_a gift_n and_o the_o chief_a cause_n of_o their_o weep_n be_v as_o luke_n note_v because_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o no_o more_o for_o they_o do_v bewail_v their_o own_o condition_n &_o the_o condition_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o asia_n not_o in_o vain_a which_o they_o see_v to_o be_v deprive_v of_o a_o inestimable_a treasure_n and_o when_o the_o spirit_n commend_v their_o tear_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o luke_n as_o witness_n of_o sincere_a godliness_n he_o condemn_v the_o rashness_n of_o those_o who_o require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o faithful_a hard_a and_o cruel_a constancy_n for_o that_o be_v false_a whereof_o they_o dream_v that_o those_o affection_n proceed_v only_o of_o corruption_n which_o we_o have_v natural_o from_o god_n wherefore_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o faithful_a consist_v not_o in_o this_o that_o they_o put_v off_o all_o affection_n but_o that_o they_o be_v move_v therewith_o only_o for_o just_a cause_n and_o that_o they_o moderate_v the_o same_o chap._n xxi_o 1_o and_o when_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o have_v loose_v be_v pull_v away_o from_o they_o we_o come_v with_o a_o straight_a course_n to_o choo_n and_o the_o next_o day_n to_o the_o rhodes_n and_o thence_o to_o patara_n 2_o and_o when_o we_o have_v get_v a_o ship_n which_o sail_v over_o to_o phenice_n when_o we_o be_v enter_v into_o it_o we_o launch_v 3_o and_o when_o cyprus_n begin_v to_o appear_v to_o we_o leave_v it_o on_o the_o left_a hand_n we_o sail_v into_o syria_n and_o come_v to_o tyrus_n for_o here_o the_o ship_n do_v unloade_v her_o burden_n 4_o and_o when_o we_o have_v find_v disciple_n we_o stay_v there_o seven_o day_n who_o say_v to_o paul_n by_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n 5_o and_o when_o the_o day_n be_v end_v we_o depart_v and_o go_v our_o way_n and_o they_o all_o with_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n accompany_v we_o until_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o when_o we_o have_v kneel_v down_o upon_o the_o shore_n we_o pray_v 6_o and_o when_o we_o have_v take_v our_o leave_n one_o of_o another_o we_o go_v up_o into_o the_o ship_n &_o they_o return_v home_o 1_o luke_n reckon_v up_o brief_o the_o course_n of_o his_o sail_v and_o that_o not_o only_o to_o win_v credit_n to_o the_o history_n that_o we_o may_v know_v what_o be_v do_v in_o every_o place_n but_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v weigh_v with_o themselves_o the_o invincible_a and_o heroical_a fortitude_n which_o be_v in_o paul_n who_o have_v rather_o be_v toss_v and_o trouble_v with_o such_o long_a unleavell_n and_o troublesome_a journey_n that_o he_o may_v serve_v christ_n then_o provide_v for_o his_o own_o quietness_n whereas_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v draw_v and_o pull_v away_o it_o be_v not_o simple_o refer_v unto_o the_o distance_n of_o place_n but_o because_o the_o brethren_n stand_v on_o the_o shore_n so_o long_o as_o they_o can_v see_v the_o ship_n wherein_o paul_n and_o his_o companion_n be_v carry_v he_o name_v the_o haven_n where_o the_o ship_n arrive_v for_o this_o cause_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o they_o sail_v quiet_o without_o trouble_n of_o tempest_n let_v we_o search_v the_o describer_n of_o country_n touch_v the_o situation_n of_o the_o city_n whereof_o he_o make_v mention_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o show_v luke_n his_o purpose_n 4_o and_o when_o they_o have_v find_v disciple_n though_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v but_o small_a yet_o there_o come_v some_o seed_n of_o the_o gospel_n thither_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o prophet_n lest_o tyrus_n shall_v be_v altogether_o void_a of_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n and_o here_o as_o in_o other_o place_n go_v before_o 23.18_o esai_n 23.18_o luke_n call_v christian_n disciple_n that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o those_o alone_o be_v number_v in_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n who_o have_v embrace_v his_o doctrine_n by_o faith_n for_o that_o be_v a_o vain_a &_o false_a profession_n for_o a_o man_n to_o give_v his_o name_n to_o christ_n &_o not_o to_o understand_v what_o he_o teach_v or_o speak_v and_o let_v the_o reader_n mark_v that_o paul_n stay_v seven_o day_n at_o tyrus_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n save_v that_o he_o may_v strengthen_v they_o so_o that_o we_o see_v that_o whither_o soever_o he_o come_v he_o foreslow_v no_o occasion_n to_o do_v good_a they_o say_v by_o the_o spirit_n namely_o with_o the_o approbation_n of_o speech_n that_o paul_n may_v know_v that_o they_o speak_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n sure_o this_o be_v no_o small_a temptation_n to_o cause_v he_o not_o to_o finish_v the_o journey_n which_o he_o have_v take_v in_o hand_n see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v disuade_v he_o from_o the_o same_o and_o this_o be_v a_o very_a fair_a colour_n to_o fly_v from_o the_o cross_n if_o he_o have_v care_v for_o his_o own_o safety_n to_o be_v draw_v back_o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o he_o cease_v not_o to_o hold_v on_o thither_o whither_o he_o know_v he_o be_v call_v by_o the_o lord_n notwithstanding_o here_o arise_v a_o question_n how_o the_o brethren_n can_v disuade_v he_o by_o the_o spirit_n from_o do_v that_o which_o paul_n do_v testify_v he_o do_v by_o the_o secret_a motion_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n
other_o unto_o the_o like_a rebellion_n that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o circumcise_v it_o be_v so_o indeed_o for_o paul_n teach_v that_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n for_o these_o sentence_n be_v general_a with_o he_o 7.19_o ●_o cor._n 7.19_o circumcision_n be_v nothing_o again_o we_o be_v circumcise_v by_o baptism_n in_o christ_n 2.11.16_o col._n 2.11.16_o not_o with_o circumcision_n make_v with_o hand_n again_o let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o drink_v or_o in_o choice_n of_o feast_n which_o be_v shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v 10.25_o ●_o cor._n 10.25_o but_o the_o body_n be_v in_o christ_n again_o whatsoever_o come_v into_o the_o shambles_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v set_v before_o you_o that_o eat_v ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n sake_n again_o be_v not_o enwrap_v again_o in_o the_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n see_v that_o he_o speak_v thus_o every_o where_n without_o exception_n 5.1_o gal._n 5.1_o he_o free_v the_o jew_n from_o the_o necessity_n of_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o lest_o i_o stand_v too_o long_o upon_o this_o one_o place_n shall_v be_v sufficient_a where_o he_o compare_v the_o law_n to_o a_o tutor_n under_o which_o the_o old_a church_n be_v as_o in_o the_o childhood_n thereof_o but_o now_o know_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v grow_v up_o that_o it_o may_v be_v free_a from_o ceremony_n in_o that_o place_n he_o speak_v undoutedlie_o both_o of_o the_o jew_n &_o gentile_n also_o when_o he_o say_v 2.14_o gal._n 2.14_o that_o the_o handwriting_n of_o the_o law_n which_o do_v consist_v in_o decree_n be_v blot_v out_o and_o nail_v to_o the_o cross_n by_o christ_n he_o set_v free_a the_o jew_n as_o well_o as_o the_o gentile_n from_o the_o ceremony_n which_o he_o call_v in_o that_o place_n decree_n but_o see_v that_o he_o do_v not_o precise_o reject_v ceremony_n in_o teach_v that_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n do_v make_v a_o end_n of_o the_o observe_v thereof_o that_o be_v no_o revolt_n as_o the_o envious_a jew_n think_v it_o to_o be_v neither_o be_v the_o elder_n ignorant_a of_o paul_n his_o liberty_n therefore_o see_v they_o understand_v the_o matter_n very_o well_o their_o meaning_n be_v to_o have_v this_o alone_o make_v know_v to_o the_o rude_a and_o unskilful_a that_o paul_n mean_v nothing_o less_o then_o to_o persuade_v the_o jew_n to_o contemn_v the_o law_n therefore_o they_o behold_v not_o the_o bare_a matter_n but_o know_v what_o the_o common_a sort_n think_v of_o paul_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o report_n which_o go_v about_o concern_v he_o they_o seek_v to_o cure_v the_o same_o though_o i_o wot_v not_o whether_o this_o be_v more_o importunate_a than_o equal_a which_o they_o require_v at_o paul_n his_o hand_n and_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v how_o preposterous_a the_o cruelty_n of_o man_n be_v in_o receive_v false_a report_n and_o how_o fast_o a_o false_a opinion_n once_o rash_o receive_v do_v stick_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o james_n and_o his_o fellow_n in_o office_n do_v endeavour_n to_o maintain_v &_o defend_v paul_n his_o good_a report_n &_o to_o put_v away_o those_o lie_n which_o do_v hurt_v his_o estimation_n yet_o let_v they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v they_o will_v speak_v evil_a of_o paul_n unless_o peradventure_o they_o be_v too_o slack_a in_o the_o beginning_n that_o they_o may_v gratify_v their_o country_n man_n so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o their_o own_o man_n afterward_o 22_o the_o multitude_n must_v needs_o come_v together_o the_o verb_n be_v a_o verb_n neuter_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v the_o multitude_n must_v of_o necessity_n come_v together_o for_o it_o have_v be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n that_o a_o apostle_n of_o such_o rare_a report_n shall_v not_o come_v before_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o if_o he_o have_v eschew_v the_o light_n and_o sight_n of_o people_n the_o sinister_a suspicion_n may_v have_v be_v increase_v nevertheless_o we_o see_v how_o modest_o the_o elder_n behave_v themselves_o in_o nourish_a concord_n when_o as_o they_o prevent_v the_o offence_n of_o the_o people_n in_o time_n save_v that_o they_o bear_v too_o much_o peradventure_o with_o their_o infirmity_n in_o require_v a_o vow_n of_o paul_n but_o this_o moderation_n must_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o pastor_n be_v in_o great_a authority_n &_o yet_o that_o they_o rule_v not_o proud_o as_o lord_n neither_o despice_fw-la the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n for_o the_o distinction_n of_o order_n which_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o peace_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v any_o cause_n of_o dissension_n 23_o do_v that_o which_o we_o say_v to_o thou_o the_o elder_n seem_v as_o i_o say_v even_o now_o to_o be_v fall_v unto_o a_o foolish_a pamper_n through_o too_o much_o love_n of_o their_o nation_n but_o the_o manifest_a judgement_n of_o that_o thing_n depend_v upon_o the_o circumstance_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o at_o this_o day_n yet_o they_o know_v they_o well_o the_o whole_a body_n almost_o do_v consist_v upon_o jew_n so_o that_o they_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v the_o offend_n of_o the_o gentile_n for_o in_o other_o region_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o departure_n because_o every_o man_n be_v wed_v to_o his_o own_o custom_n &_o will_v prescribe_v a_o law_n to_o other_o furthermore_o they_o have_v at_o jerusalem_fw-la many_o thing_n which_o may_v provoke_v they_o to_o keep_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n so_o that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a excuse_n if_o they_o do_v more_o slow_o forsake_v they_o and_o though_o their_o zeal_n be_v not_o void_a of_o fault_n yet_o as_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o reform_v it_o so_o it_o can_v not_o be_v do_v at_o a_o sudden_a we_o see_v how_o this_o superstition_n be_v scarce_o in_o long_a time_n pull_v from_o the_o apostle_n &_o because_o new_a disciple_n come_v daily_o unto_o the_o faith_n the_o infirmity_n be_v nourish_v in_o all_o together_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o ignorance_n be_v couple_v with_o obstinacy_n which_o the_o elder_n do_v nevertheless_o tolerate_v lest_o they_o shall_v do_v more_o hurt_n by_o use_v violent_a remedy_n i_o leave_v it_o indifferent_a whether_o they_o do_v pass_v measure_n or_o no._n have_v a_o vow_n upon_o they_o though_o these_o four_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o faithful_a yet_o their_o vow_n be_v superstitious_a whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v much_o trouble_n in_o that_o nation_n which_o be_v not_o only_o harden_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o law_n through_o long_a use_n but_o be_v also_o natural_o malipart_v &_o almost_o intractable_a though_o it_o may_v be_v that_o these_o man_n be_v as_o yet_o but_o novice_n &_o therefore_o their_o faith_n be_v yet_o but_o slender_a &_o scarce_o well_o frame_v wherefore_o the_o doctor_n do_v suffer_v they_o to_o perform_v the_o vow_n which_o they_o have_v unaduised_o make_v as_o touch_v paul_n because_o he_o make_v this_o vow_n not_o move_v thereunto_o by_o his_o own_o conscience_n but_o for_o their_o sake_n with_o who_o error_n he_o do_v bear_v the_o case_n stand_v otherwise_o with_o he_o notwithstanding_o we_o must_v see_v 18.18_o sap._n 18.18_o whether_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o indifferent_a ceremony_n which_o the_o faithful_a may_v omit_v or_o keep_v at_o their_o pleasure_n it_o seem_v indeed_o to_o have_v in_o it_o certain_a thing_n which_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n but_o because_o the_o end_n thereof_o be_v thanksgiving_n as_o we_o say_v before_o in_o the_o 18._o cha_n &_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o rite_n itself_o repugnant_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n 9.20_o 1._o cor._n 9.20_o paul_n do_v not_o doubt_v to_o descend_v thus_o far_o to_o make_v his_o religion_n know_v therefore_o paul_n do_v that_o which_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o elswher_o because_o he_o make_v himself_o a_o companion_n of_o those_o which_o follow_v the_o law_n as_o if_o he_o himself_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o the_o law_n final_o he_o be_v make_v all_o thing_n to_o all_o man_n that_o he_o may_v win_v all_o to_o wit_n even_o unto_o the_o altar_n so_o that_o he_o may_v pollute_v himself_o with_o no_o sacrilege_n under_o a_o colour_n of_o love_n it_o have_v not_o be_v so_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o go_v unto_o the_o solemn_a sacrifice_n of_o satisfaction_n but_o as_o for_o this_o part_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o consist_v in_o a_o vow_n he_o may_v do_v it_o indifferent_o so_o it_o be_v not_o do_v for_o religion_n sake_n but_o only_o to_o support_v the_o week_n but_o it_o be_v neither_o his_o intent_n to_o worship_n god_n with_o this_o rite_n neither_o be_v his_o conscience_n tie_v but_o he_o do_v freley_o submit_v himself_o to_o his_o weak_a brethren_n 24_o which_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o thou_o be_v
and_o so_o god_n predestination_n do_v abolish_v all_o preparation_n which_o sophister_n imagine_v as_o if_o man_n do_v prevent_v god_n grace_n by_o his_o own_o free_a will_n in_o call_v he_o the_o god_n of_o the_o father_n he_o renew_v the_o rembrance_n of_o the_o promise_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v know_v that_o the_o new_a call_n of_o paul_n be_v join_v with_o they_o and_o that_o those_o fall_v not_o away_o from_o the_o law_n who_o passover_o unto_o christ_n therefore_o paul_n confirm_v that_o by_o these_o word_n which_o he_o avouch_v before_o in_o his_o own_o person_n that_o he_o have_v not_o make_v any_o departure_n from_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n who_o the_o jew_n have_v in_o time_n pass_v worship_v but_o that_o he_o continue_v in_o the_o ancient_a worship_n which_o the_o father_n do_v use_v which_o he_o have_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o law_n wherefore_o when_o the_o question_n be_v about_o religion_n let_v we_o learn_v by_o the_o example_n of_o paul_n not_o to_o imagine_v any_o new_a god_n as_o the_o papist_n and_o mahometistes_n have_v do_v and_o as_o all_o heretic_n use_v to_o do_v but_o let_v we_o retain_v that_o god_n who_o have_v reveal_v himself_o in_o time_n pass_v to_o the_o father_n both_o by_o the_o law_n and_o also_o by_o diverse_a oracle_n this_o be_v that_o antiquity_n wherein_o we_o must_v remain_v and_o not_o in_o that_o whereof_o the_o papist_n boast_v in_o vain_a who_o have_v invent_v to_o themselves_o a_o strange_a god_n see_v they_o have_v forsake_v the_o lawful_a father_n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v say_v at_o this_o day_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o religion_n see_v it_o disagree_v with_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n their_o god_n must_v also_o be_v degenerate_a and_o feign_a for_o he_o who_o will_v in_o time_n past_a be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n and_o of_o the_o father_n appear_v at_o length_n in_o the_o person_n of_o his_o son_n that_o he_o may_v now_o be_v call_v by_o his_o own_o name_n or_o title_n the_o father_n of_o christ_n therefore_o he_o which_o reject_v the_o son_n have_v not_o the_o father_n who_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o he_o and_o ananias_n say_v that_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v through_o the_o free_a election_n of_o god_n that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v now_o appear_v to_o paul_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o do_v not_o attain_v unto_o this_o by_o his_o own_o industry_n which_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v also_o declare_v for_o nothing_o be_v more_o stubborn_a than_o paul_n until_o christ_n do_v tame_v he_o and_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o cause_n and_o beginning_n ananias_n call_v we_o back_o unto_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o be_v appoint_v and_o ordain_v and_o assure_o it_o be_v a_o more_o precious_a thing_n to_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n than_o that_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o it_o by_o their_o own_o industry_n that_o which_o ananias_n affirm_v of_o paul_n ought_v to_o be_v translate_v unto_o all_o that_o the_o treasure_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o but_o it_o be_v offer_v peculiar_o to_o the_o elect._n furthermore_o it_o appear_v more_o plain_o by_o the_o next_o member_n what_o this_o will_n of_o god_n be_v for_o god_n speak_v at_o sundry_a time_n and_o many_o way_n by_o his_o prophet_n but_o last_o of_o all_o he_o reveal_v and_o make_v know_v his_o will_n and_o himself_o whole_o in_o his_o son_n to_o see_v the_o just_a see_v all_o the_o greek_a book_n in_o a_o manner_n agree_v together_o in_o the_o masculine_a gender_n i_o wonder_v why_o erasmus_n will_v rather_o translate_v it_o in_o the_o neuter_n which_o be_v just_o which_o sense_n the_o reader_n see_v to_o be_v cold_a and_o far_o fetch_v 1.1_o heb._n 1.1_o therefore_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o just_o be_v take_v in_o this_o place_n for_o christ_n and_o the_o text_n run_v very_o fine_o thus_o because_o it_o follow_v immediate_o after_o &_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o his_o mouth_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o godly_a and_o holy_a man_n do_v most_o of_o all_o desire_n that_o they_o may_v see_v christ_n thence_o flow_v that_o confession_n of_o simeon_n lord_n now_o let_v thou_o thy_o seruamt_a depart_n in_o peace_n because_o my_o eye_n have_v see_v thy_o salvation_n therefore_o this_o see_v which_o godly_a king_n and_o prophet_n do_v most_o earnest_o desire_v as_o christ_n himself_o do_v witness_v 10.24_o luke_n 2.29_o luk._n 10.24_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n extol_v as_o a_o singular_a benefit_n of_o god_n but_o because_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o eye_n shall_v profit_v little_a or_o nothing_o which_o we_o know_v be_v to_o many_o deadly_a he_o adjoin_v the_o hear_n of_o the_o voice_n ananias_n set_v down_o the_o cause_n why_o god_n do_v vouchsafe_v paul_n of_o so_o great_a honour_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o may_v be_v to_o his_o son_n a_o public_a witness_n and_o he_o do_v so_o prepare_v he_o that_o he_o may_v learn_v not_o only_o for_o himself_o alone_o but_o that_o he_o may_v have_v so_o much_o the_o more_o care_n to_o profit_n because_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o teacher_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n 16_o and_o now_o why_o tarry_v thou_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o ananias_n do_v faithful_o instruct_v paul_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o godliness_n for_o he_o will_v not_o have_v baptize_v he_o if_o he_o have_v be_v void_a of_o true_a faith_n but_o luke_n pass_v over_o many_o thing_n and_o do_v brief_o gather_v the_o sum_n therefore_o see_v paul_n do_v understand_v that_o the_o promise_a redemption_n be_v now_o give_v in_o christ_n ananias_n say_v for_o good_a cause_n that_o nothing_o ought_v to_o stay_v he_o from_o be_v baptise_a but_o when_o he_o say_v why_o tarry_v thou_o he_o do_v not_o chide_v paul_n neither_o do_v he_o accuse_v he_o of_o slackness_n but_o he_o do_v rather_o amplify_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o add_v baptism_n the_o like_a sentence_n have_v we_o in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n 10.47_o cha._n 10.47_o can_v any_o man_n let_v those_o from_o be_v baptise_a with_o water_n who_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v they_o even_o as_o we_o but_o when_o he_o say_v wash_v away_o thy_o sin_n by_o this_o speech_n he_o express_v the_o force_n and_o fruit_n of_o baptism_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v wash_v away_o thy_o sin_n by_o baptism_n but_o because_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n more_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o outward_a and_o corruptible_a element_n than_o be_v meet_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o baptism_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o purge_n sure_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a mean_n whereby_o our_o sin_n be_v wash_v away_o and_o as_o it_o be_v once_o shed_v to_o this_o end_n so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o sprinkle_n thereof_o through_o faith_n do_v make_v we_o clean_o continual_o this_o honour_n can_v be_v translate_v unto_o the_o sign_n of_o water_n without_o do_v open_a injury_n to_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o experience_n do_v teach_v how_o earnest_o man_n be_v bend_v unto_o this_o superstition_n therefore_o many_o godly_a man_n lest_o they_o put_v confidence_n in_o the_o outward_a sign_n do_v overmuch_o extenuate_v the_o force_n of_o baptism_n but_o they_o must_v keep_v a_o measure_n that_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v keep_v within_o their_o bound_n lest_o they_o darken_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o they_o may_v not_o want_v their_o force_n and_o use_v wherefore_o we_o must_v hold_v this_o first_o that_o it_o be_v god_n alone_o who_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n and_o to_o the_o end_n this_o wash_n may_v be_v effectual_a in_o we_o he_o work_v by_o the_o hide_a power_n of_o his_o spirit_n therefore_o when_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v remission_n of_o sin_n we_o must_v seek_v no_o other_o author_n thereof_o but_o the_o heavenly_a father_n we_o must_v imagine_v no_o other_o material_a cause_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o when_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o formal_a cause_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o chief_a but_o there_o be_v a_o inferior_a instrument_n and_o that_o be_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n &_o baptism_n itself_o but_o though_o god_n alone_o do_v work_v by_o the_o inward_a power_n of_o his_o spirit_n yet_o that_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o he_o may_v use_v at_o his_o pleasure_n such_o instrument_n and_o mean_n as_o he_o know_v to_o be_v convenient_a not_o that_o he_o include_v in_o the_o element_n any_o thing_n which_o he_o take_v either_o from_o his_o spirit_n or_o from_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o because_o he_o will_v have_v the_o sign_n itself_o to_o be_v a_o
remembrance_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v wherefore_o the_o oracle_n be_v not_o superfluous_a those_o former_a thing_n whereby_o he_o be_v teach_v that_o god_n care_v for_o he_o aught_o to_o have_v suffice_v to_o nourish_v his_o hope_n and_o to_o have_v keep_v he_o from_o faint_v but_o because_o in_o great_a danger_n satan_n do_v oftentimes_o procure_v new_a fear_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o if_o he_o can_v altogether_o overwhelm_v god_n promise_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a at_o least_o darken_v the_o same_o with_o cloud_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o be_v renew_a that_o faith_n be_v holpen_v with_o new_a prop_n and_o stay_n may_v stand_v more_o steadfast_o but_o the_o sum_n be_v that_o paul_n may_v behave_v himself_o bold_o because_o he_o must_v be_v christ_n his_o witness_n at_o rome_n also_o but_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v but_o a_o cold_a and_o vain_a consolation_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v fear_v not_o because_o thou_o must_v abide_v a_o sore_a brunt_n for_o it_o have_v be_v better_a accord_v to_o the_o flesh_n once_o to_o die_v and_o with_o speed_n to_o end_v his_o day_n then_o to_o pine_v away_o in_o band_n and_o long_a time_n to_o lie_v in_o prison_n the_o lord_n do_v not_o promise_v to_o deliver_v he_o no_o he_o say_v not_o so_o much_o as_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o joyful_a end_n only_o he_o say_v that_o those_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n wherewith_o he_o be_v too_o sore_o oppress_v already_o shall_v continue_v long_o but_o by_o this_o we_o gather_v better_o of_o what_o great_a importance_n this_o confidence_n be_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v respect_n unto_o we_o in_o our_o misery_n though_o he_o stretch_v not_o forth_o his_o hand_n by_o and_o by_o to_o help_v us._n therefore_o let_v we_o learn_v even_o in_o most_o extreme_a affliction_n to_o stay_v ourselves_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o let_v we_o never_o faint_v so_o long_o as_o he_o quicken_v we_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o fatherly_a love_n and_o because_o oracle_n be_v not_o now_o send_v from_o heaven_n neither_o do_v the_o lord_n himself_o appear_v by_o vision_n we_o must_v meditate_v upon_o his_o innumerable_a promise_n whereby_o he_o do_v testify_v that_o he_o will_v be_v nigh_o unto_o we_o continual_o if_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o a_o angel_n come_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o deny_v even_o this_o kind_n of_o confirmation_n nevertheless_o we_o must_v give_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o word_n that_o be_v content_a with_o it_o alone_o we_o wait_v patient_o for_o that_o help_n which_o it_o promise_v us._n moreover_o it_o do_v profit_v some_o nothing_o to_o hear_v angeles_n which_o be_v send_v down_o from_o heaven_n but_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o in_o vain_a seal_n up_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o his_o spirit_n those_o promise_n which_o be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o as_o he_o do_v not_o in_o vain_a beat_v they_o in_o and_o often_o repeat_v they_o so_o let_v our_o faith_n exercise_v itself_o diligent_o in_o the_o continual_a remembrance_n of_o they_o for_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o paul_n faith_n shall_v be_v oftentimes_o set_v and_o shoar_v up_o with_o a_o new_a help_n there_o be_v none_o of_o we_o which_o need_v not_o many_o more_o help_n also_o our_o mind_n must_v be_v arm_v with_o patience_n that_o they_o may_v pass_v through_o the_o long_a and_o troublesome_a circuit_n of_o trouble_n and_o affliction_n 12_o and_o when_o it_o be_v day_n by_o this_o circumstance_n luke_n show_v how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o paul_n to_o gather_v new_a and_o fresh_a strength_n of_o faith_n that_o he_o may_v nor_o quake_v in_o most_o great_a and_o sudden_a danger_n for_o be_v tell_v of_o this_o so_o desperate_a madness_n of_o his_o enemy_n he_o can_v not_o otherwise_o think_v but_o that_o he_o shall_v loose_v his_o life_n this_o vow_n whereof_o luke_n speak_v be_v a_o kind_n of_o curse_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o vow_n be_v that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o change_v their_o purpose_n nor_o to_o call_v back_o that_o which_o they_o have_v promise_v there_o be_v always_o in_o deed_n in_o a_o oath_n a_o secret_a curse_n if_o any_o man_n deceive_v or_o forswear_v but_o sometime_o to_o the_o end_n man_n may_v the_o more_o bind_v themselves_o they_o use_v certain_a form_n of_o curse_v and_o they_o make_v themselves_o subject_a to_o cruel_a torment_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v thou_o more_o afraid_a this_o history_n do_v teach_v that_o zeal_n be_v so_o bloody_a in_o hypocrite_n that_o they_o weigh_v not_o what_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o but_o they_o run_v careless_o whither_o soever_o their_o lust_n do_v carry_v they_o admit_v we_o grant_v that_o paul_n be_v a_o wicked_a man_n and_o worthy_a to_o die_v yet_o who_o have_v give_v private_a man_n leave_v to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n now_o if_o any_o man_n have_v ask_v why_o they_o do_v so_o hate_n paul_n they_o will_v quick_o have_v answer_v because_o he_o be_v a_o revolt_n &_o schismatic_n but_o it_o be_v but_o a_o foolish_a opinion_n and_o a_o opinion_n conceive_v of_o a_o uncertain_a report_n concern_v this_o matter_n which_o have_v rash_o possess_v their_o mind_n the_o same_o blindness_n and_o blockishness_n do_v at_o this_o day_n prick_v forward_o the_o papist_n so_o that_o they_o think_v nothing_o unlawful_a for_o they_o in_o destroy_v us._n hypocrisy_n do_v so_o blind_a their_o eye_n that_o as_o man_n free_v from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n they_o be_v carry_v by_o their_o zeal_n sometime_o unto_o treachery_n sometime_o unto_o guile_n sometime_o unto_o intolerable_a cruelty_n &_o final_o to_o attempt_v whatsoever_o they_o will_n moreover_o we_o see_v in_o this_o history_n how_o great_a the_o rashness_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v they_o bound_v themselves_o with_o a_o curse_n that_o they_o will_v eat_v no_o meat_n till_o they_o have_v slay_v paul_n as_o if_o his_o life_n be_v in_o their_o hand_n therefore_o these_o brainsick_a man_n take_v to_o themselves_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n do_v so_o often_o in_o scripture_n say_v be_v he_o to_o wit_n 32.39_o deut._n 32.39_o to_o have_v the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o those_o man_n who_o he_o have_v create_v in_o his_o hand_n moreover_o there_o be_v not_o only_o two_o or_o three_o who_o be_v partner_n in_o this_o madness_n but_o more_o than_o forty_o whence_o we_o do_v also_o gather_v how_o willing_a and_o bend_a man_n be_v to_o do_v mischief_n see_v they_o run_v together_o thus_o on_o heap_n furthermore_o see_v satan_n do_v drive_v they_o headlong_o into_o their_o own_o destruction_n how_o shameful_a be_v then_o our_o sluggishness_n when_o as_o we_o scarce_o move_v one_o finger_n in_o maintain_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o must_v use_v moderation_n that_o we_o attempt_v nothing_o without_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n but_o when_o god_n call_v we_o express_o our_o loitring_n be_v without_o excuse_n 14_o they_o come_v to_o the_o chief_a priest_n see_v that_o the_o priest_n agree_v to_o such_o a_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a conspiracy_n by_o this_o they_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v in_o they_o neither_o any_o fear_n of_o god_n neither_o yet_o any_o humanity_n they_o do_v not_o only_o allow_v that_o which_o be_v bring_v before_o they_o concern_v the_o murder_n of_o the_o man_n by_o lay_v await_n but_o also_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v partner_n in_o the_o murder_n that_o they_o may_v deliver_v he_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o murderer_n who_o they_o will_v have_v make_v away_o some_o way_n they_o pass_v not_o how_o for_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o to_o take_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o to_o slay_v he_o then_o like_o murderer_n to_o rage_n even_o in_o the_o very_a place_n of_o judgement_n the_o priest_n sure_o will_v never_o have_v allow_v such_o a_o wicked_a purpose_n if_o there_o have_v be_v in_o they_o any_o drop_n of_o godly_a and_o right_a affection_n or_o of_o humane_a feel_n moreover_o they_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o bring_v destruction_n upon_o all_o the_o people_n and_o themselves_o also_o but_o the_o lord_n do_v by_o this_o mean_n disclose_v their_o wicked_a impiety_n which_o lie_v hide_v under_o a_o colour_n of_o honour_n 16_o paul_n his_o sister_n son_n we_o see_v in_o this_o place_n how_o the_o lord_n do_v cross_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o ungodlye_a he_o permit_v they_o to_o attempt_v many_o thing_n and_o he_o suffer_v their_o wicked_a endeavour_n but_o at_o length_n he_o show_v even_o in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n that_o he_o do_v from_o heaven_n deride_v whatsoever_o man_n go_v about_o upon_o earth_n there_o be_v no_o wisdom_n say_v solomon_n there_o be_v no_o counsel_n against_o the_o lord_n
33_o and_o when_o the_o day_n begin_v to_o appear_v paul_n exhort_v they_o all_o to_o take_v meat_n say_v this_o be_v the_o fourteen_o day_n that_o you_o have_v tarry_v and_o continue_v fast_v receive_v nothing_o at_o all_o 34_o wherefore_o i_o exhort_v you_o to_o take_v meat_n for_o this_o no_o doubt_n be_v for_o your_o health_n because_o there_o shall_v not_o one_o hair_n fall_v from_o the_o head_n of_o any_o of_o you_o 35_o and_o when_o he_o have_v thus_o speak_v he_o take_v bread_n and_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o all_o and_o when_o he_o have_v break_v it_o he_o begin_v to_o eat_v 36_o then_o be_v they_o all_o refresh_v in_o their_o mind_n and_o they_o also_o take_v meat_n 37_o and_o all_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v in_o the_o ship_n be_v two_o hundred_o threescore_o and_o sixteen_o 38_o and_o when_o they_o have_v eat_v enough_o they_o do_v lighten_v the_o ship_n cast_v out_o the_o wheat_n into_o the_o sea_n 39_o and_o when_o it_o be_v day_n they_o know_v not_o the_o land_n but_o they_o spy_v a_o certain_a haven_n have_v a_o bank_n into_o the_o which_o they_o mind_v to_o thrust_v the_o ship_n 40_o and_o when_o they_o have_v take_v up_o the_o ankar_n they_o commit_v themselves_o to_o the_o sea_n also_o have_v loose_v the_o rudder_n band_n and_o hoist_v up_o the_o main_a sail_n to_o the_o wind_n they_o draw_v towards_o the_o shore_n 41_o but_o when_o they_o be_v fall_v into_o a_o place_n where_o two_o sea_n meet_v they_o thrust_v in_o the_o ship_n and_o the_o fore_a part_n do_v stick_v fast_o and_o move_v not_o but_o the_o hinder_a part_n break_v through_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o wave_n 42_o furthermore_o the_o soldier_n counsel_n be_v to_o kill_v the_o prisoner_n lest_o any_o after_o he_o have_v swim_v out_o shall_v escape_v 43_o but_o the_o centurion_n be_v desirous_a to_o save_v paul_n keep_v they_o from_o their_o purpose_n and_o command_v that_o those_o which_o can_v swim_v shall_v cast_v themselves_o first_o into_o the_o sea_n and_o shall_v escape_v to_o land_n 44_o and_o the_o other_o some_o on_o board_n and_o some_o on_o break_a piece_n of_o the_o ship_n and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o all_o escape_v safe_a to_o land_n 33_o and_o when_o the_o day_n begin_v whatsoever_o the_o mariner_n think_v paul_n his_o faith_n do_v not_o quail_v but_o he_o lean_v steadfast_o to_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v make_v to_o he_o for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o exhort_v they_o to_o take_v meat_n as_o do_v he_o who_o in_o extreme_a despair_n utter_v these_o word_n dine_v soldier_n we_o shall_v sup_v in_o hell_n but_o continue_v steadfast_a in_o his_o prophecy_n he_o will_v they_o to_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n the_o force_n of_o faith_n do_v therein_o show_v itself_o when_o as_o it_o arm_v we_o unto_o patience_n and_o do_v valiant_o bear_v off_o and_o beat_v back_o those_o assault_n wherewith_o satan_n go_v about_o to_o shake_v it_o but_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o they_o continue_v fast_v for_o the_o space_n of_o fourteen_o day_n it_o may_v seem_v absurd_a and_o false_a there_o may_v some_o one_o man_n be_v find_v which_o can_v abide_v to_o fast_o long_o but_o it_o be_v scarce_o credible_a of_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n we_o may_v easy_o answer_v that_o their_o unwonted_a abstinence_n from_o meat_n be_v unproper_o call_v fast_v because_o they_o have_v never_o fill_v their_o belly_n during_o all_o that_o time_n because_o those_o who_o be_v in_o sorrow_n and_o heaviness_n do_v almost_o loath_a meat_n and_o because_o despair_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o their_o loathe_n of_o meat_n he_o affirm_v again_o that_o they_o shall_v live_v so_o they_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n for_o a_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n must_v not_o only_o bring_v abroad_o the_o promise_n but_o also_o counsel_n man_n to_o follow_v god_n whither_o soever_o he_o call_v they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o slothful_a and_o sluggish_a furthermore_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n be_v this_o god_n have_v determine_v to_o save_v you_o this_o confidence_n ought_v to_o animate_v you_o and_o to_o make_v you_o merry_a that_o you_o be_v not_o negligent_a in_o your_o own_o business_n 35_o he_o take_v bread_n that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o encourage_v they_o by_o his_o own_o example_n he_o take_v bread_n and_o eat_v luke_n say_v that_o he_o give_v thanks_n not_o only_o according_a to_o his_o daily_a custom_n but_o because_o that_o serve_v great_o to_o testify_v his_o boldness_n and_o good_a confidence_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o paul_n himself_o do_v that_o when_o he_o take_v meat_n which_o he_o command_v other_o man_n but_o now_o he_o do_v not_o only_o testify_v his_o thankfulness_n neither_o do_v he_o only_o desire_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v sanctify_v the_o meat_n which_o he_o be_v about_o to_o eat_v but_o he_o call_v upon_o god_n without_o fear_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o his_o life_n that_o those_o poor_a wretch_n which_o be_v drench_v in_o sorrow_n may_v conceive_v some_o good_a hope_n and_o he_o prevail_v thus_o far_o at_o least_o that_o they_o gather_v so_o much_o courage_n to_o they_o as_o to_o take_v meat_n who_o have_v through_o fear_n forget_v to_o care_n for_o their_o life_n 37_o all_o the_o soul_n the_o number_n of_o the_o man_n be_v recite_v first_o that_o it_o may_v more_o plain_o appear_v that_o none_o of_o the_o multitude_n do_v perish_v for_o luke_n do_v not_o show_v how_o many_o man_n do_v swim_v to_o the_o shore_n but_o how_o many_o be_v then_o in_o the_o ship_n second_o that_o the_o miracle_n may_v be_v make_v more_o evident_a and_o also_o famous_a for_o in_o man_n judgement_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n unpossible_a that_o two_o hundred_o threescore_o and_o sixteen_o man_n shall_v escape_v to_o land_n have_v suffer_v shipwreck_n without_o loss_n of_o any_o man_n life_n for_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o few_o have_v any_o skill_n in_o swim_v except_o the_o mariner_n and_o though_o they_o be_v somewhat_o refresh_v with_o the_o meat_n which_o they_o have_v eat_v yet_o they_o be_v bring_v so_o lowen_v with_o sorrow_n and_o wearisomeness_n that_o it_o be_v a_o marvel_v that_o they_o be_v so_o nimble_a as_o that_o they_o can_v move_v their_o arm_n and_o now_o we_o must_v consider_v what_o a_o stir_n they_o keep_v whereas_o it_o be_v seldom_o see_v that_o twenty_o or_o thirty_o man_n do_v so_o swim_v in_o danger_n but_o one_o of_o they_o do_v hinder_v or_o drown_v another_o therefore_o god_n do_v plain_o stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n out_o of_o heaven_n see_v all_o those_o come_v to_o shore_n safe_a and_o sound_a which_o have_v cast_v themselves_o into_o the_o sea_n 38_o and_o when_o they_o have_v eat_v enough_o this_o circumstance_n do_v show_v that_o they_o be_v at_o length_n move_v with_o paul_n word_n it_o be_v not_o yet_o light_a that_o they_o can_v know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o haven_n near_o and_o yet_o they_o cast_v out_o into_o the_o sea_n the_o wheat_n which_o remain_v that_o they_o may_v lighten_v the_o ship_n they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v this_o unless_o paul_n his_o authority_n have_v prevail_v more_o with_o they_o now_o than_o before_o but_o as_o all_o unbeliever_n be_v unstable_a that_o persuasion_n do_v quick_o vanish_v out_o of_o their_o mind_n 41_o they_o thrust_v in_o the_o ship_n and_o then_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o both_o god_n have_v mock_v paul_n and_o that_o he_o with_o trifle_v have_v bring_v his_o partner_n in_o a_o vain_a hope_n but_o god_n do_v forthwith_o put_v away_o that_o error_n by_o give_v they_o prosperous_a success_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o when_o the_o ship_n be_v break_v they_o shall_v be_v so_o discourage_v and_o that_o their_o soul_n shall_v so_o melt_v that_o despair_n may_v increase_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o miracle_n for_o god_n use_v to_o moderate_v and_o govern_v his_o work_n so_o that_o he_o make_v some_o show_n of_o difficulty_n by_o reason_n of_o many_o let_n which_o fall_v out_o by_o this_o mean_n he_o sharpen_v our_o sense_n unto_o great_a attentivenesse_n that_o we_o may_v at_o length_n learn_v that_o though_o all_o the_o world_n strive_v against_o he_o yet_o will_v he_o have_v the_o victory_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o have_v leiff_a draw_v paul_n and_o his_o companion_n to_o the_o shore_n after_o that_o the_o ship_n be_v lose_v than_o bring_v the_o ship_n whole_a to_o land_n 42_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o soldier_n this_o be_v too_o horrible_a unthankfulness_n though_o the_o soldier_n may_v thank_v paul_n twice_o or_o thrice_o for_o their_o life_n yet_o be_v they_o mind_v to_o kill_v he_o for_o who_o sake_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v spare_v the_o rest_n he_o have_v save_v
they_o even_o as_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n he_o have_v give_v they_o wholesome_a counsel_n he_o have_v refresh_v they_o in_o the_o same_o day_n when_o they_o be_v past_a hope_n and_o now_o they_o stick_v not_o to_o seek_v to_o destroy_v he_o by_o who_o they_o be_v so_o often_o and_o so_o many_o way_n deliver_v wherefore_o if_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o we_o be_v ill_o reward_v for_o our_o good_a deed_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o the_o unthankfulness_n of_o man_n shall_v trouble_v we_o which_o be_v a_o disease_n too_o common_a but_o they_o be_v not_o only_o unthankful_a to_o paul_n who_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o their_o life_n but_o also_o their_o filthy_a misbelief_n and_o forgetfulness_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n do_v bewray_v itself_o they_o have_v of_o late_o receive_v that_o oracle_n that_o their_o soul_n be_v give_v to_o paul_n and_o now_o see_v they_o will_v be_v save_v after_o he_o be_v dead_a what_o other_o thing_n go_v they_o about_o but_o to_o resist_v god_n that_o they_o may_v save_v themselves_o from_o death_n contrary_a to_o his_o will_n therefore_o they_o have_v now_o forget_v that_o grace_n whereof_o they_o taste_v against_o their_o will_n in_o extreme_a despair_n neither_o do_v it_o taste_v any_o long_o after_o that_o they_o see_v the_o haven_n nigh_o at_o hand_n but_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o consider_v the_o wonderful_a counsel_n of_o god_n as_o well_o in_o save_v paul_n as_o in_o fulfil_v his_o promise_n when_o as_o he_o bring_v those_o man_n to_o land_n who_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o make_v his_o promise_n of_o none_o effect_n thus_o do_v his_o goodness_n oftentimes_o strive_v with_o the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n yet_o he_o do_v so_o pity_v the_o wicked_a that_o defer_v their_o punishment_n until_o so_o fit_a opportunity_n he_o do_v not_o quite_o discharge_v they_o yea_o the_o long_a he_o tarry_v the_o more_o grievous_o he_o punish_v &_o so_o by_o that_o mean_v he_o make_v amends_n for_o his_o long_a tarry_n chap._n xxviii_o 1_o and_o when_o they_o be_v escape_v they_o know_v that_o the_o i_o will_v be_v call_v melite_n 2_o and_o the_o barbarian_n show_v we_o no_o little_a kindness_n for_o they_o kindle_v a_o fire_n and_o receive_v we_o all_o because_o of_o the_o present_a shower_n and_o because_o of_o the_o cold_a 3_o and_o when_o paul_n have_v gather_v a_o bundle_n of_o stick_n and_o have_v lay_v they_o on_o the_o fire_n a_o vyper_n come_v out_o of_o the_o heat_n and_o leap_v on_o his_o hand_n 4_o now_o when_o the_o barbarian_n see_v the_o beast_n hang_v upon_o his_o hand_n they_o say_v among_o themselves_o this_o man_n sure_o be_v a_o murderer_n who_o though_o he_o have_v escape_v the_o sea_n vengeance_n do_v not_o suffer_v to_o live_v 5_o but_o he_o shake_v off_o the_o vyper_n into_o the_o fire_n and_o suffer_v no_o harm_n 6_o but_o they_o think_v that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o will_v swell_v and_o fall_v down_o dead_a sudden_o and_o as_o they_o wait_v long_o and_o see_v no_o harm_n come_v to_o he_o change_v their_o mind_n they_o say_v he_o be_v a_o god_n 1_o that_o doleful_a spectacle_n be_v describe_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n when_o so_o many_o man_n be_v wet_a and_o also_o all_o beray_v with_o the_o some_o &_o filth_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o stiff_a with_o cold_a do_v with_o much_o ado_n crawl_v to_o the_o shore_n for_o that_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v cast_v up_o by_o the_o sea_n to_o die_v some_o other_o death_n after_o that_o luke_n declare_v that_o they_o be_v courteous_o entertain_v of_o the_o barbarian_n that_o they_o kindle_v a_o fire_n that_o they_o may_v dry_v their_o clothes_n and_o refresh_v their_o joint_n which_o be_v stiff_o with_o cold_a and_o at_o length_n that_o they_o be_v save_v from_o the_o shower_n therefore_o in_o that_o paul_n commend_v these_o duty_n he_o show_v his_o thankfulness_n and_o so_o great_a liberality_n towards_o stranger_n be_v for_o good_a cause_n advance_v whereof_o there_o be_v rare_a example_n in_o the_o world_n and_o though_o common_a nature_n do_v wring_v out_o of_o the_o barbarous_a gentile_n some_o affection_n of_o mercy_n in_o so_o great_a necessity_n yet_o undoubted_o it_o be_v god_n which_o cause_v the_o man_n of_o melita_n to_o handle_v these_o man_n so_o courteous_o that_o his_o promise_n may_v be_v sure_a and_o certain_a which_o may_v seem_v unperfect_a if_o the_o shipwreck_n have_v cause_v the_o loss_n of_o any_o man_n life_n a_o viper_n come_v out_o of_o the_o heat_n the_o very_a event_n do_v prove_v that_o paul_n be_v a_o true_a and_o undoubted_a prophet_n of_o god_n now_o that_o god_n may_v make_v he_o famous_a as_o well_o by_o land_n as_o by_o sea_n he_o seal_v the_o former_a miracle_n with_o a_o new_a miracle_n and_o so_o he_o ratifi_v his_o apostleship_n among_o the_o man_n of_o melita_n and_o though_o there_o be_v not_o many_o which_o do_v profit_n thereby_o yet_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v shine_v even_o among_o the_o unbeliever_n also_o this_o do_v great_o confirm_v the_o oracle_n to_o the_o mariner_n which_o they_o have_v not_o sufficient_o reverence_v neither_o do_v the_o viper_n come_v out_o of_o the_o stick_v by_o chance_n but_o the_o lord_n do_v direct_v she_o by_o his_o secret_a counsel_n to_o bite_v paul_n because_o he_o see_v it_o will_v turn_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o gospel_n 4_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o barbarian_n see_v this_o judgement_n be_v common_a in_o all_o age_n that_o those_o who_o be_v grievous_o punish_v have_v grievous_o offend_v neither_o be_v this_o persuasion_n conceive_v of_o nothing_o but_o it_o come_v rather_o from_o a_o true_a feel_n of_o godliness_n for_o god_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v make_v the_o world_n without_o excuse_n will_v have_v this_o deep_o root_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o man_n that_o calamity_n and_o adversity_n and_o chief_o notable_a destruction_n be_v testimony_n and_o sign_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o just_a vengeance_n against_o sin_n therefore_o so_o often_o as_o we_o call_v to_o mind_v any_o notable_a calamity_n we_o do_v also_o remember_v that_o god_n be_v soar_v offend_v see_v he_o punish_v so_o sharp_o neither_o do_v ungodliness_n ever_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n so_o far_o but_o that_o all_o man_n do_v still_o retain_v this_o principle_n that_o god_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v show_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n do_v notable_o punish_v the_o wicked_a but_o here_o creep_v in_o a_o error_n almost_o always_o because_o they_o condemn_v all_o those_o of_o wickedness_n who_o they_o see_v rough_o handle_v though_o god_n do_v always_o punish_v man_n sin_n with_o adversity_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o punish_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o desert_n in_o this_o life_n and_o sometime_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v not_o so_o much_o punishment_n as_o trial_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n therefore_o those_o man_n be_v deceive_v who_o make_v this_o a_o general_a rule_n to_o judge_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o prosperity_n or_o adversity_n this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n between_o job_n and_o his_o friend_n 4.7_o jab_n 4.7_o they_o do_v affirm_v that_o that_o man_n be_v a_o reprobate_n and_o hate_a of_o god_n who_o god_n do_v punish_v and_o he_o do_v allege_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o godly_a be_v sometime_o humble_v with_o the_o cross_n wherefore_o lest_o we_o be_v deceive_v in_o this_o point_n we_o must_v beware_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o former_a be_v that_o we_o give_v not_o rash_a &_o blind_a judgement_n of_o thing_n unknown_a according_a to_o the_o evenr_n alone_o for_o because_o god_n do_v punish_v the_o good_a aswell_o as_o the_o bad_a yea_o it_o fall_v out_o oftentimes_o that_o he_o spare_v the_o reprobate_a &_o do_v sharp_o punish_v those_o who_o be_v he_o if_o we_o will_v judge_v aright_o we_o must_v begin_v at_o another_o thing_n then_o at_o punishment_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o inquire_v after_o the_o life_n &_o deed_n if_o any_o adulterer_n if_o any_o blasphemous_a person_n if_o any_o perjure_a man_n or_o murderer_n if_o any_o filthy_a person_n if_o any_o cosiner_n if_o any_o bloody_a beast_n be_v punish_v god_n do_v point_n out_o his_o judgement_n as_o it_o be_v with_o his_o finger_n if_o we_o see_v no_o wickedness_n nothing_o be_v better_a than_o to_o suspend_v our_o judgement_n concern_v punishment_n the_o other_o caution_n be_v that_o we_o wait_v for_o the_o end_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o god_n begin_v to_o strike_v we_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o see_v his_o drift_n and_o purpose_n but_o the_o unlike_a end_n do_v at_o length_n declare_v that_o those_o differ_v far_o before_o god_n who_o seem_v in_o
that_o of_o messana_n over_o against_o which_o be_v rhegium_n whereof_o he_o make_v mention_n and_o it_o be_v in_o the_o country_n of_o the_o brutian_o as_o be_v puteoli_n a_o city_n of_o campania_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o brethren_n keep_v paul_n at_o puteoli_n seven_o day_n by_o this_o we_o gather_v how_o favourable_o &_o gentle_o the_o centurion_n handle_v paul_n neither_o do_v i_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o holy_a man_n will_v have_v make_v he_o a_o faithful_a promise_n that_o he_o will_v always_o return_v in_o due_a time_n but_o he_o be_v persuade_v of_o his_o uprightness_n so_o that_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a that_o he_o will_v deceive_v he_o and_o now_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v then_o sow_v abroad_o see_v there_o be_v some_o body_n of_o the_o church_n even_o at_o puteoli_n 15_o and_o when_o the_o brethren_n have_v hear_v of_o we_o from_o thence_o they_o come_v out_o to_o meece_n we_o at_o appii_n forum_n and_o at_o the_o three_o tavern_n who_o when_o paul_n see_v he_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n and_o wax_v bold_a 16_o and_o when_o we_o be_v come_v to_o rome_n the_o centurion_n deliver_v the_o prisoner_n to_o the_o chief_a captain_n of_o the_o host_n but_o paul_n be_v suffer_v to_o dwell_v alone_o with_o a_o soldier_n which_o keep_v he_o 17_o and_o after_o three_o day_n paul_n call_v together_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o jew_n and_o when_o they_o be_v come_v he_o say_v to_o they_o man_n and_o brethren_n though_o i_o have_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o people_n or_o ordinance_n of_o the_o elder_n yet_o be_v i_o deliver_v a_o prisoner_n from_o jerusalem_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o roman_n 18_o which_o when_o they_o have_v examine_v i_o they_o will_v have_v let_v i_o go_v because_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o death_n in_o i_o 19_o but_o when_o the_o jew_n speak_v contrary_a i_o be_v enforce_v to_o appeal_v to_o caesar_n not_o as_o if_o i_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o accuse_v my_o nation_n of_o 20_o for_o this_o cause_n therefore_o have_v i_o send_v for_o you_o that_o i_o may_v see_v you_o and_o speak_v to_o you_o for_o the_o hope_n of_o israel_n be_o i_o bind_v with_o this_o chain_n 15_o when_o the_o brethren_n hear_v god_n do_v comfort_n paul_n by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o brethren_n who_o come_v forth_o to_o meet_v he_o that_o he_o may_v the_o more_o joyful_o make_v haste_n to_o defend_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o zeal_n and_o godly_a care_n of_o the_o brethren_n appear_v therein_o in_o that_o they_o inquire_v for_o paul_n come_n and_o go_v out_o to_o meet_v he_o for_o it_o be_v at_o that_o time_n not_o only_o a_o odious_a thing_n to_o profess_v the_o christian_n faith_n but_o it_o may_v also_o bring_v they_o in_o hassarde_n of_o their_o life_n neither_o do_v a_o few_o man_n only_o put_v themselves_o in_o private_a danger_n because_o the_o envy_n redound_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o nothing_o be_v more_o dear_a to_o they_o then_o their_o duty_n wherein_o they_o can_v not_o be_v negligent_a unless_o they_o will_v be_v count_v sluggishe_a and_o unthankful_a it_o have_v be_v a_o cruel_a fact_n to_o neglect_v so_o great_a a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n especial_o see_v he_o labour_v for_o the_o common_a salvation_n and_o now_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o have_v write_v to_o they_o before_o and_o have_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n offer_v his_o service_n to_o they_o it_o have_v be_v a_o unseemly_a thing_n not_o to_o repay_v to_o he_o brotherly_o good_a will_n and_o courtesy_n therefore_o the_o brethren_n do_v by_o this_o their_o dutifulness_n testify_v their_o godliness_n towards_o christ_n &_o paul_n desire_n be_v more_o inflame_v because_o he_o see_v fruit_n prepare_v for_o his_o constancy_n for_o though_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o invincible_a strength_n so_o that_o he_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o man_n help_n yet_o god_n who_o use_v to_o strengthen_v his_o by_o mean_n of_o man_n do_v minister_v to_o he_o new_a strength_n by_o this_o mean_n though_o he_o be_v afterward_o forsake_v when_o he_o be_v in_o prison_n as_o he_o complain_v in_o a_o certain_a place_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o despair_v but_o do_v fight_v no_o less_o valiant_o and_o manful_o under_o christ_n banner_n than_o if_o he_o have_v be_v guard_v with_o a_o great_a army_n but_o the_o remembrance_n of_o this_o meeting_n do_v ferue_v even_o then_o to_o encourage_v he_o 4.16_o 2._o tim._n 4.16_o see_v he_o do_v consider_v with_o himself_o that_o there_o be_v many_o bo●ly_a brethren_n at_o rome_n but_o they_o be_v weak_a and_o that_o he_o be_v send_v to_o strengthen_v they_o and_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v marvel_v that_o paul_n be_v embolden_v at_o this_o present_a when_o he_o see_v the_o brethren_n because_o he_o do_v hope_n that_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n will_v yield_v no_o small_a fruit_n for_o so_o often_o as_o god_n show_v to_o his_o servant_n any_o fruit_n of_o their_o labour_n he_o do_v as_o it_o be_v prick_v they_o forward_o with_o a_o goad_n that_o they_o may_v proceed_v more_o courageous_o in_o their_o work_n 16_o the_o centurion_n deliver_v the_o prisoner_n luke_n do_v signify_v that_o paul_n have_v more_o liberty_n grant_v he_o then_o the_o rest_n for_o this_o condition_n and_o estate_n be_v peculiar_a for_o he_o be_v suffer_v to_o dwell_v in_o a_o house_n by_o himself_o have_v one_o keeper_n with_o he_o where_o as_o the_o rest_n be_v shut_v up_o in_o the_o common_a prison_n for_o the_o general_a captain_n know_v by_o festus_n his_o report_n that_o paul_n be_v guiltless_a and_o the_o centurion_n as_o it_o be_v likely_a do_v faithful_o rehearse_v such_o thing_n as_o may_v serve_v to_o bring_v he_o into_o favour_n notwithstanding_o let_v we_o know_v that_o god_n do_v govern_v from_o heaven_n the_o bond_n of_o his_o servant_n not_o only_o that_o he_o may_v ease_v he_o of_o his_o trouble_n but_o that_o the_o faithful_a may_v have_v free_a access_n unto_o he_o for_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o treasure_n of_o his_o faith_n shut_v up_o in_o prison_n but_o he_o will_v have_v it_o lay_v open_a that_o it_o may_v enrich_v many_o far_a and_o wide_o and_o yet_o paul_n be_v not_o so_o at_o liberty_n but_o that_o he_o do_v always_o carry_v a_o chain_n luke_n call_v the_o general_a captain_n stratopedarch_v who_o be_v appoint_v over_o the_o army_n which_o keep_v the_o city_n as_o history_n make_v mention_v 17_o and_o after_o three_o day_n paul_n his_o humanity_n be_v wonderful_a in_o that_o though_o he_o have_v suffer_v such_o cruel_a injury_n of_o his_o nation_n he_o study_v notwithstanding_o to_o appease_v the_o jew_n which_o be_v at_o rome_n and_o he_o excuse_v himself_o to_o they_o lest_o they_o hate_v his_o cause_n because_o they_o hear_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v hate_v he_o he_o may_v well_o have_v excuse_v himself_o before_o man_n if_o he_o have_v pass_v over_o these_o jew_n and_o turn_v himself_o to_o the_o gentile_n for_o though_o he_o have_v continual_o in_o diverse_a place_n assay_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o christ_n yet_o they_o be_v more_o and_o more_o nettle_v and_o move_v and_o yet_o he_o have_v omit_v nothing_o neither_o in_o asia_n nor_o in_o grecia_n neither_o at_o jerusalem_n which_o may_v mitigate_v their_o fury_n therefore_o all_o man_n will_v have_v just_o pardon_v he_o if_o he_o have_v let_v those_o alone_a who_o he_o have_v so_o often_o try_v to_o be_v of_o desperate_a pride_n but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o his_o master_n be_v give_v of_o his_o father_n to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o fulfil_v the_o promise_n whereby_o god_n have_v adopt_v to_o himself_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n to_o be_v his_o people_n he_o look_v unto_o the_o call_n of_o god_n and_o be_v never_o weary_a he_o see_v that_o he_o must_v remain_v at_o rome_n see_v he_o have_v liberty_n grant_v to_o teach_v he_o will_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o labour_n second_o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o move_v through_o hatred_n of_o his_o cause_n to_o trouble_v the_o church_n because_o a_o small_a occasion_n may_v have_v cause_v great_a destruction_n therefore_o paul_n mean_v to_o beware_v least_o according_a to_o their_o wont_a madness_n they_o shall_v set_v all_o on_o fire_n i_o have_v do_v nothing_o against_o the_o people_n these_o two_o thing_n may_v have_v make_v the_o jew_n hate_v he_o either_o because_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v hurt_v to_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o his_o nation_n as_o some_o runagate_n do_v increase_v their_o bondage_n which_o be_v too_o cruel_a through_o their_o treachery_n or_o because_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v somewhat_o against_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o though_o the_o jew_n
regenerate_v unto_o righteousness_n that_o begin_v the_o heavenly_a life_n upon_o earth_n they_o may_v always_o have_v a_o long_a desire_n to_o come_v to_o heaven_n where_o they_o shall_v full_o and_o perfect_o enjoy_v glory_n also_o luke_n set_v forth_o a_o singular_a benefit_n of_o god_n in_o that_o paul_n have_v so_o great_a liberty_n grant_v he_o for_o that_o come_v not_o to_o pass_v through_o the_o wink_n and_o dissimulation_n of_o those_o who_o can_v hinder_v it_o see_v they_o do_v detest_v religion_n but_o because_o the_o lord_n do_v shut_v their_o eye_n 2.9_o 2._o tim._n 2.9_o wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o paul_v himself_o do_v boast_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o bind_v with_o his_o bond_n the_o end_n of_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n all_o glory_n to_o god_n ❧_o a_o table_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v expound_v in_o these_o commentary_n upon_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o former_a number_n show_v the_o chapter_n the_o latter_a the_o verse_n a_o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a 7._o 3_o abraham_n prevent_v by_o the_o goodness_n &_o grace_n of_o god_n 7._o 2._o abraham_n faith_n 7._o 4._o abraham_n child_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n 3._o 25._o &_o 7._o 52._o &_o 13._o 16._o 33._o &_o 26._o 7._o abraham_n obedience_n be_v worthy_a of_o singular_a commendation_n 7._o 3._o &_o 10._o 14._o abraham_n his_o patience_n 7._o 5._o abuse_v of_o tongue_n 10._o 46._o abuse_v of_o miracle_n 3._o 9_o abuse_v of_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n 15._o 1._o acception_n of_o person_n be_v conden_v 10._o 34._o all_o sharp_a and_o open_a accusation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v 23._o 3._o the_o end_n of_o our_o adoption_n 10._o 43._o a_o dramittium_fw-la a_o city_n of_o aeotia_n 27._o 1._o natural_a affection_n be_v not_o of_o themselves_o corrupt_v 8._o 2._o &_o 20._o 37._o affliction_n of_o god_n 10._o 38._o &_o 11._o 28._o affliction_n of_o sin_n 28._o 4._o affliction_n common_a to_o the_o godly_a as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o wicked_a 23._o 8._o &_o 27._o 24._o &_o 28._o 4._o affliction_n for_o christ_n sake_n be_v glorious_a 5._o 41._o 42._o &_o 16._o 22._o affliction_n can_v hurt_v the_o elect_a 7._o 30._o affliction_n be_v to_o be_v suffer_v with_o a_o patient_a mind_n 14._o 22._o profit_n of_o affliction_n 11._o 19_o &_o 14._o 22._o &_o 16._o 22._o 29._o &_o 18._o 2._o 41._o after_o put_v for_o moreover_o or_o beside_o 5._o 36._o in_o what_o sense_n agabus_n be_v call_v a_o prophet_n 11._o 27._o herod_n agrippa_n the_o elder_a 12._o 1._o agrippa_z son_n of_o agrippa_n the_o elder_a 25._o 13._o alexander_n a_o revolt_n 19_o 33._o all_o for_o many_o 9_o 35._o alm_n be_v precious_a to_o god_n 5._o 5._o look_v liberality_n the_o allegory_n of_o the_o bush_n wherein_o the_o lord_n appear_v to_o moses_n 7._o 30._o ambition_n a_o great_a vice_n 5._o 1._o ambition_n very_o hurtful_a to_o the_o church_n 8._o 14._o ambition_n be_v always_o envious_a and_o malicious_a 11._o 23._o ambition_n the_o mother_n of_o dissension_n 23._o 9_o ambition_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o heresy_n 20._o 30._o anabaptist_n refute_v 2._o 39_o 45._o the_o error_n of_o the_o anabaptiste_n concern_v baptise_v of_o infant_n 8._o 12._o 37._o the_o dote_n of_o the_o anabaptiste_n touch_v the_o have_v of_o good_n common_a 4._o 34._o &_o 5._o 4._o the_o dote_a of_o anabaptistes_n touch_v the_o child_n of_o abraham_n 3._o 25._o anabaptist_n illusion_n 7._o 31._o ananias_n paul_n teacher_n 9_o 6._o 10._o whether_o ananias_n who_o command_v paul_n to_o be_v smite_v be_v the_o high_a priest_n 23._o 2._o &_o 24._o 1._o what_o a_o grievous_a sin_n that_o of_o ananias_n be_v 5._o 5._o why_o the_o vision_n do_v appear_v to_o ananias_n 9_o 10._o angel_n be_v call_v man_n 10._o 30._o whether_o every_o man_n have_v his_o angel_n 12._o 15._o an●●ls_n be_v messenger_n and_o witness_n in_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o law_n 7._o 53._o angel_n minister_n of_o the_o faithful_a 5._o ●9_n &_o 12._o 11._o 15._o the_o angel_n which_o appear_v to_o moses_n be_v christ_n 7._o 30._o holy_a anger_n 13._o 10._o &_o 14._o 14._o &_o 17._o 16_o antichrist_n bondslave_n 12._o 3._o antichrist_n miracle_n be_v false_a 2._o 22._o a_o excellent_a ornament_n of_o antioch_n 11._o 26._o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n be_v first_o call_v christian_n 11._o 26._o the_o faith_n of_o the_o man_n of_o antioch_n 11._o 27._o how_o far_o forth_o we_o must_v lean_v to_o antiquity_n 14._o 16._o &_o 30._o &_o 24_o 14._o what_o antiquity_n be_v to_o be_v allow_v 24._o 4._o look_v antiquity_n antonia_n a_o tower_n build_v by_o herod_n 4._o 1._o apollo_n paul_n successor_n among_o the_o corinthian_n 18._o 24._o the_o apostle_n speak_v indeed_o with_o strange_a tongue_n 2._o 4_o apostle_n minister_v not_o author_n of_o miracle_n 3._o 46._o 12._o and_o 16._o 18._o and_o 28._o 8._o and_o 19_o 11._o why_o the_o apostle_n go_v fearful_o forward_o in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 8._o 1._o apostle_n witness_n of_o christ_n 1._o 8._o and_o 10._o 39_o apostle_n have_v wife_n 1._o 14._o the_o apostle_n wrought_v miracle_n have_v the_o spirit_n for_o their_o director_n 3._o 5._o and_o 9_o 34._o and_o 14._o 9_o the_o apostle_n bring_v in_o no_o new_a religion_n 3._o 13._o and_o 5._o 30._o why_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o preach_v the_o gospel_n immediate_o after_o christ_n resurrection_n or_o ascension_n 1._o 4._o why_o the_o apostle_n begin_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o jerusalem_n 1._o 4._o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n 6._o 2._o apostle_n constancy_n 5._o 12._o 36._o 42._o and_o 8._o 2._o apostle_n curiosity_n 1._o 7._o the_o apostle_n modesty_n 5._o 12_o the_o apostle_n office_n 11._o 22._o &_o 15._o 4._o the_o apostle_n foolish_a opinion_n touch_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n 1._o 6._o the_o apostle_n power_n 13._o 11_o the_o certain_a call_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o 2._o the_o sincere_a zeal_n of_o the_o apostle_n 4._o 25._o 33._o the_o difference_n between_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n 1._o 23._o and_o 14._o 23_o the_o difference_n between_o apostle_n and_o elder_n 14._o 23._o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o certain_a place_n of_o abode_n 9_o 32._o who_o be_v elder_n in_o the_o church_n 14._o 2._o the_o name_n of_o a_o apostle_n reach_v far_o 14._o 14._o the_o apostle_n accuse_v of_o sedition_n 5._o 28_o the_o apostle_n nothing_o ambitious_a in_o gather_v place_n of_o scripture_n together_o 15._o 16._o the_o apostle_n make_v after_o christ_n resurrection_n 2._o 4._o apostle_n be_v admit_v or_o enter_v by_o external_a baptism_n by_o john_n 1._o 5._o why_o the_o apostle_n have_v diversity_n of_o tongue_n give_v they_o 2._o 2._o the_o faithful_a have_v diversitye_n of_o tongue_n give_v they_o 10._o 46._o how_o miserable_a the_o bondage_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n 16._o 3._o aquila_n a_o jew_n be_v paul_n his_o host_n 18._o 2._o aratus_n his_o half_a verse_n 17._o 28._o christ_n his_o ascension_n to_o heaven_n be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o 2._o aristotle_n authority_n among_o the_o sorbon_n doctou_fw-fr s._n 17._o 28._o aristotle_n place_n 1._o 3._o aristarchus_n paul_n his_o companion_n 27._o 2._o aretas_n the_o king_n lieutenant_n 9_o 23._o asdod_n which_o be_v also_o call_v azotus_n 8._o 40_o assaron_n the_o name_n of_o a_o city_n 9_o 32._o asson_n a_o city_n of_o troas_n which_o be_v also_o call_v apollonia_n 20._o 13._o astrology_n a_o profitable_a science_n 7._o 22._o judiciary_n astronomy_n conden_v 19_o 19_o augustine_n assault_v with_o the_o pelagian_o 15._o 10._o augustine_n his_o place_n 1._o 11._o and_o 2._o 1._o &_o 7._o 56._o and_o 8._o 1._o 24._o and_o 10._o 4._o &_o 13._o 33._o and_o 16._o 4._o and_o 23._o 5._o augustine_n his_o complaint_n of_o the_o too_o weighty_a burden_n of_o tradition_n 16._o 4._o b_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v commit_v to_o christ_n 1._o 15._o the_o word_n baptism_n use_v unproper_o 1._o 5._o the_o word_n baptism_n be_v sometime_o refer_v to_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n 19_o 5._o title_n of_o baptism_n 1._o 5._o the_o end_n of_o baptism_n 8._o 37._o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n 10._o 48._o whether_o peter_n do_v after_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n 2._o 38_o whereupon_o the_o force_n of_o baptism_n depend_v 2._o 38._o and_o 11._o 16._o and_o 22._o 16._o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n put_v for_o all_o his_o whole_a ministry_n 10._o 37._o and_o 18._o 25_o johns_n baptism_n 11._o 16._o the_o comparison_n between_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n &_o of_o christ_n 1._o 5._o the_o difference_n between_o johns_n baptism_n and_o we_o 19_o 4._o the_o right_a of_o baptism_n among_o the_o man_n of_o old_a 8._o
13._o and_o 13._o 40._o and_o 15._o 12._o 24._o and_o 17._o 32._o and_o 20._o 30._o and_o 27._o 24._o the_o gospel_n arise_v of_o small_a beginning_n 8._o 26._o how_o the_o gospel_n come_v even_o unto_o the_o ethiopian_n ibidem_fw-la why_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v 17._o 30._o why_o the_o gospel_n be_v set_v before_o the_o reprobate_n 24._o 25._o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o gospel_n 3._o 24._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n 17._o 30._o and_o 19_o 17._o a_o commendation_n of_o the_o gospel_n 3._o 22._o 23._o 24._o the_o estate_n of_o the_o gospel_n 6._o 8._o &_o 7._o 54._o and_o 13._o 27._o and_o 17._o 6._o the_o free_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o singular_a gift_n of_o god_n 4._o 31._o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o gospel_n 3._o 21._o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v sharp_o punish_v 3._o 20._o 22._o &_o 4._o 26._o and_o 13._o 41._o 51._o and_o 19_o l_o 16._o the_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o gospel_n 9_o 5._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v subject_a to_o infinite_a slander_n 6._o 14._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o new_a 3._o 21._o and_o 20._o 43._o and_o 13._o 17._o 32._o the_o commendation_n and_o title_n of_o the_o gospel_n 5._o 20._o the_o glory_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v always_o join_v with_o the_o cross_n and_o diverse_a trouble_n 6._o 8._o the_o end_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o 3._o &_o 11._o 18._o and_o 20._o 8._o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o gospel_n 26._o 22._o the_o gospel_n be_v like_a to_o leaven_n 13._o 49._o how_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o trouble_n 14._o 4._o why_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 20._o 25._o why_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o grace_n 14._o 13._o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o word_n of_o salvation_n 13._o 20._o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o word_n of_o life_n 5._o 20._o the_o gospel_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o jew_n 3._o 25._o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o preach_v unto_o we_o without_o consideration_n 2._o 2._o the_o gospel_n be_v establish_v by_o miracle_n 14._o 3._o the_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n 23._o 8._o and_o 20._o 21._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n 10._o 21._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v most_o acceptable_a obedience_n to_o god_n 6._o 2._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n 11._o 3._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v very_o effectual_a 10._o 44._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v always_o acceptable_a to_o god_n 24._o 25._o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v establish_v by_o strong_a obtestation_n 10._o 42._o the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o gospel_n 13._o 26._o the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1._o 1._o and_o 5._o 31._o and_o 10._o 43._o the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v know_v where_o christ_n be_v know_v 8._o 34_o the_o force_n of_o the_o gospel_n 19_o 9_o look_v the_o force_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n why_o all_o in_o general_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n 13._o 48._o grace_n put_v for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n 13._o 43._o grace_n put_v for_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n 14._o 26._o grace_n for_o call_v into_o the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n 13._o 43._o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o sign_n 10._o 47_o thanksgiving_n for_o deliverance_n from_o death_n 12._o 11._o thankfulness_n be_v commend_v 10._o 23._o and_o 11._o 29._o grecian_n put_v for_o a_o gentile_a 16._o 3._o grecians_z for_o the_o disperse_a jew_n 9_o 29._o the_o complaint_n of_o gregory_n nazianzene_n of_o the_o success_n of_o counsel_n 25._o 2._o h_o hand_n put_v for_o power_n 11._o 21._o hand_n put_v for_o principality_n 7._o 36._o why_o the_o apostle_n lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o deacon_n 6._o 6._o the_o heart_n for_o the_o mind_n 16._o 14._o the_o heart_n for_o the_o will_n 4._o 32._o the_o whole_a heart_n for_o a_o sincere_a heart_n 8._o 37._o how_o acceptable_a singleness_n of_o heart_n be_v to_o god_n 5._o 1._o what_o great_a heed_n we_o must_v take_v that_o we_o be_v not_o too_o hasty_a 16._o 35._o hear_v be_v the_o begin_n of_o faith_n 8._o 6._o the_o word_n heaven_n be_v diverse_o take_v 1._o 11._o how_o steven_n see_v the_o heaven_n open_a 7._o 56._o what_o the_o open_n of_o the_o heaven_n do_v signify_v 10._o 11._o wherewith_o herod_n be_v move_v to_o persecute_v the_o church_n 12._o 3._o herod_n tower_n be_v call_v antonia_n 4._o 5_o herod_n blindness_n 12._o 19_o the_o word_n heresy_n be_v in_o time_n pass_v not_o infamous_a 24._o 14._o how_o heretic_n ought_v to_o be_v confute_v 9_o 22._o how_o ridiculous_a the_o popish_a hierarchy_n be_v 20._o 28._o the_o book_n of_o the_o celestial_a hierarchy_n and_o other_o foolish_a and_o wicked_a book_n be_v amiss_o attribute_v to_o dionysius_n areopagita_n 17._o 34._o hieroms_n place_n 1._o 12._o and_o 7._o 14._o &_o 15._o 10._o 13._o and_o 17._o 23._o and_o 19_o 6._o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v of_o the_o father_n 1._o 4._o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v appoint_v peculiar_o for_o the_o church_n 2._o 18._o why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o apostle_n fifty_o day_n after_o the_o first_o fruit_n 2._o 1_o how_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n tongue_n 2._o 3._o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o profane_a and_o contemner_n 2._o ●8_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o author_n of_o miracle_n 9_o 34._o the_o nature_n of_o hope_n 1._o 4._o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n 5._o 4._o and_o 13._o 2._o horace_n his_o place_n 17._o 21._o how_o far_o forth_o we_o must_v use_v humanity_n towards_o our_o brethren_n 21._o 13_o humanity_n be_v necessary_a in_o a_o magistrate_n 23._o 19_o humanity_n be_v commend_v 2._o 27._o &_o 10._o 23._o and_o 28._o 7._o peter_n his_o humanity_n 9_o 43._o humanity_n ought_v to_o be_v embrace_v 9_o 5._o 6._o and_o 10._o 48._o and_o 12._o 23._o hypocrisy_n be_v in_o man_n natural_o ●8_o 23._o hypocrisy_n be_v blind_a 6._o 1●_n how_o we_o ought_v to_o detest_v hypocrisy_n 5._o 1._o 3._o 8._o hypocrite_n be_v ambitious_a 7._o 57_o hypocrite_n be_v bloody_a 9_o 29._o hypocrite_n be_v hardly_o discern_v 8._o 13._o how_o we_o must_v handle_v hypocrite_n 7._o 53._o and_o 8._o 20._o 23._o blindness_n of_o hypocrite_n 9_o 23_o the_o feign_a modesty_n of_o hypocrite_n 14._o 14._o the_o manner_n of_o hypocrite_n 4._o 1._o &_o 5._o 4._o 21._o &_o 7._o 1._o &_o 13._o 50._o &_o 14._o 14._o &_o 23._o 4._o the_o careless_a security_n of_o hypocrite_n 24._o 2._o the_o furious_a bloody_a zeal_n of_o hypocrite_n 4._o 7._o &_o 5._o 17._o &_o 6._o 11._o &_o 9_o 29._o &_o 17_o 5._o and_o 19_o 23._o 27._o and_o 23._o 12._o hireling_n be_v note_v 8._o 39_o i_o james_n the_o brother_n of_o john_n be_v slay_v by_o herod_n 12._o 2._o james_n the_o son_n of_o alphee_n 12._o 17._o and_o 13._o 15._o violence_n be_v do_v to_o jason_n because_o he_o entertain_v paul_n and_o his_o companion_n 17._o 5._o the_o jailor_n convert_v unto_o christ_n 16._o 33._o blindness_n of_o idolater_n 13._o 6._o hypocrisy_n of_o idolater_n 17._o 17._o whence_o idolatry_n come_v 7._o 40._o idolatry_n be_v very_o fertile_a 7._o 42._o idolatry_n be_v contrary_a to_o itself_o 17._o 24._o how_o far_o forth_o ignorance_n be_v to_o be_v excuse_v 3._o 17._o &_o 14._o 17._o &_o 17._o 30_o what_o the_o word_n jehovah_n do_v signify_v 17._o 28._o the_o jew_n be_v the_o first_o beget_v in_o the_o church_n 1._o 8._o and_o 2._o 39_o and_o 3._o 26._o and_o 10._o 12._o and_o 13._o 26._o 16._o 3._o &_o 20._o 21._o 28._o 28._o how_o the_o jew_n do_v crucify_v christ_n 2._o 23._o 36._o and_o 4._o 10._o why_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o keep_v company_n with_o the_o gentile_n 10._o 28._o and_o 11._o 3._o the_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o jew_n 13._o 42._o and_o 22._o 22._o the_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o jew_n 13._o 45._o &_o 18._o 6._o the_o blindness_n of_o the_o jew_n 17._o 3._o 4._o &_o 28._o 26._o the_o horrible_a fault_n of_o the_o jew_n 2._o 36._o &_o 3._o 13._o &_o 4._o 10._o and_o 7._o 52._o the_o dote_n of_o the_o jew_n about_o the_o word_n jehova_n 3._o 6._o the_o profit_n of_o the_o scatter_v abroad_o of_o the_o jew_n 17._o 4._o the_o election_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v double_a 13._o 33._o the_o proud_a boast_n of_o the_o jew_n of_o their_o father_n 7._o 9_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v mix_v with_o hypocrisy_n 3._o 17._o the_o monstrous_a unbelief_n of_o the_o jew_n 13._o 27._o the_o unthankfulnes_n of_o the_o jew_n 2._o 36_o and_o 7._o 26._o and_o 13._o 46._o the_o hypocrisy_n of_o the_o jew_n
call_v sign_n and_o wonder_n 2._o 22._o &_o 19_o 11._o why_o there_o be_v only_o a_o few_o miracle_n wrought_v and_o for_o a_o short_a time_n 14._o 11._o miracle_n ought_v never_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 5._o 12._o &_o 14._o 3._o what_o miracle_n do_v of_o themselves_o in_o man_n 3._o 9_o who_o miracle_n profit_n 2._o 5._o whether_o miracle_n be_v sufficient_a for_o approbation_n 2._o 22._o what_o popish_a miracle_n do_v 3._o 9_o the_o abuse_n of_o miracle_n ibidem_fw-la the_o use_n and_o end_n of_o miracle_n 3._o 6._o 13._o &_o 4._o 10._o and_o 5._o 15._o &_o 8._o 6._o &_o 9_o 32._o 35._o 42._o &_o 10._o 38._o and_o 14._o 3._o and_o 15._o 11._o 13._o and_o 28._o 7._o mocker_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o 12._o the_o treachery_n of_o certain_a moderate_a man_n 17._o 6._o and_o 20._o 20._o modesty_n be_v commend_v 9_o 5._o 6._o &_o 12._o ●8_o the_o feign_a modesty_n of_o hypocrite_n 14._o 14._o the_o moon_n turn_v into_o blood_n 2._o 18._o montanus_n a_o heretic_n 10._o 15._o moses_n the_o minister_n of_o deliveraunce_n 7._o ●_o 24._o in_o what_o sense_n moses_n be_v call_v a_o redeemer_n 7._o 36_o moses_n be_v subject_a to_o christ_n ibid._n moses_n his_o modesty_n 7._o 22._o what_o it_o do_v signify_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o open_v the_o mouth_n 8._o 34._o and_o 10_o 34._o we_o must_v always_o ask_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n 22._o 10._o we_o must_v not_o forthwith_o cleave_v to_o the_o multitude_n 14._o 16._o &_o 19_o 27._o monk_n follower_n of_o judaisme_n 9_o 37._o the_o arrogancy_n and_o pride_n of_o monk_n 15._o 5._o impudency_n of_o monk_n 2._o 45._o murder_n be_v always_o most_o detestable_a 28._o 4._o n_o name_n put_v for_o authority_n 4._o 7._o name_v put_v for_o the_o cause_n or_o mean_n 4._o 12._o name_v put_v for_o rule_n and_o power_n 3._o 6._o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n put_v for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n 9_o 24_o the_o night_n be_v divide_v into_o 4._o part_n 12._o 4._o what_o it_o be_v to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n 9_o 15._o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n for_o the_o whole_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n 26._o 9_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n 20._o 28._o the_o sect_n of_o the_o nazarite_n 24._o 5._o why_o christ_n be_v call_v jesus_n of_o nazareth_n 10._o 38._o nero_n his_o cruelty_n against_o the_o godly_a 12._o 8_o nestorius_n a_o heretic_n 20_o 28._o with_o what_o colour_n the_o nicodemite_n excuse_v their_o dissimulation_n 21._o 26_o nicholas_n the_o deacon_n be_v the_o author_n of_o a_o filthy_a and_o wicked_a sect_n 6._o 5._o noble_a man_n be_v also_o call_v eunuch_n 8._o 27._o a_o universal_a note_n be_v not_o always_o take_v universal_o 8._o 1._o and_o 9_o 35._o and_o 10_o 2._o nun_n be_v choose_v in_o steed_n of_o the_o vestal_a virgin_n 14._o 15._o o_o the_o fruit_n of_o obedience_n 8._o 27._o trial_o of_o obedience_n 8._o 26._o we_o must_v cut_v off_o all_o occasion_n from_o the_o wicked_a 6._o 14._o offence_n must_v be_v avoid_v 15._o 1._o and_o 20._o 33._o we_o must_v take_v opportunity_n 3._o 1._o and_o 10._o 48._o &_o 13._o 40._o &_o 20._o 16._o &_o 21._o 4._o &_o 22._o 25._o &_o 28._o 30._o we_o must_v avoid_v offence_n 10_o 28._o &_o 13._o 27._o &_o 18._o 18._o and_o 20._o 3._o 34._o and_o 22._o 27._o and_o 28._o 17._o 19_o one_o for_o the_o first_o 20._o 7._o p_o paphus_n a_o city_n cituate_a on_o the_o sea_n shore_n towards_o the_o south_n 13._o 6._o the_o vain_a brag_n of_o the_o papist_n touch_v vain_a title_n 7._o 1._o the_o vain_a and_o proud_a boast_n of_o the_o papist_n touch_v counsel_n ibid._n the_o vain_a boast_n of_o the_o papist_n touch_v the_o faith_n 3._o 13._o and_o 7._o 52._o the_o gross_a ignorance_n of_o the_o papist_n 1._o 7._o and_o 13._o 39_o and_o 17._o 34._o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o papist_n against_o the_o worshipper_n of_o god_n 23._o 4._o the_o false_a miracle_n of_o the_o papist_n 5._o 15._o what_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o papist_n can_v do_v 3._o 9_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o papist_n 16._o 21._o the_o preparation_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v overthrow_v 22._o 14._o the_o relic_n of_o the_o papist_n 19_o 11._o the_o vain_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o papist_n 10._o 43._o and_o 13._o 38._o the_o folly_n of_o papist_n 16._o 14_o the_o blockishness_n of_o papist_n 23._o 12._o how_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o papist_n crope_v in_o 14._o 11._o the_o vain_a title_n of_o the_o papist_n 7._o 2._o and_o 23._o 6._o the_o stink_a anoint_v of_o the_o papist_n 19_o 6._o the_o preposterous_a furious_a and_o bloody_a zeal_n of_o the_o papist_n 5._o 17._o and_o 11._o 16._o and_o 9_o 23._o and_o 16._o 19_o &_o 18._o 25._o 19_o 23._o 27._o how_o vain_a the_o image_n and_o picture_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v 74._o 3._o the_o stageplay_n mass_n of_o the_o papist_n 7._o 22._o under_o what_o colour_n the_o papist_n defend_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n 13._o 2._o the_o horrible_a sacrilege_n of_o the_o mass_n 16._o 3._o the_o papist_n be_v addict_v to_o external_a visure_n 6._o 14._o whence_o the_o papi_v fetch_v a_o example_n of_o make_v vow_n 18._o 18_o the_o papist_n invent_v to_o themselves_o a_o new_a god_n 22._o 14._o the_o papist_n feign_v that_o all_o manner_n antiquity_n be_v allow_v 24._o 14._o under_o what_o colour_n the_o papist_n cloak_n their_o idolatry_n 14._o 15._o the_o papist_n include_v christ_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n 7._o 49._o under_o what_o colour_n the_o papist_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n 15._o 28._o the_o papist_n place_v the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o saint_n 3._o 12_o the_o papist_n lean_a only_a to_o untimely_a counsel_n 15._o 2_o with_o what_o trifle_n the_o papist_n do_v think_v the_o dignity_n of_o baptism_n be_v adorn_v 10._o 47._o the_o papist_n can_v deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n 3._o 19_o the_o papist_n do_v almost_o translate_v the_o name_n of_o repentance_n unto_o external_a rite_n 2._o 38._o the_o papist_n do_v attribute_v more_o to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o philosopher_n then_o to_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n 28._o 23._o the_o papist_n attribute_v magical_a force_n to_o the_o sacrament_n 8._o 13._o under_o what_o colour_n papist_n make_v boast_v of_o their_o relic_n 5._o 15._o ambition_n of_o papist_n 16._o 19_o arrogancy_n of_o papist_n 7._o 1._o covetousness_n of_o papist_n 1._o 6._o boldness_n of_o papist_n 17._o 34._o the_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o papist_n against_o baptism_n 8._o 16._o the_o blindness_n of_o papist_n 23._o 12._o the_o papist_n blaspheme_v the_o scripture_n 17._o 2._o ●1_n 28._o and_o 18._o 18._o how_o the_o papist_n must_v be_v convict_v of_o error_n 14._o 15_o the_o papist_n be_v corrupter_n of_o true_a doctrine_n 2._o 42._o &_o 6._o 11._o &_o 13._o 15_o the_o papist_n be_v unreformable_a 41_o the_o papist_n be_v without_o excuse_n 17._o 29._o the_o papist_n be_v profaner_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 10._o 37._o how_o ridiculous_a the_o papist_n be_v 9_o 17._o the_o papist_n abuse_v miracle_n 14._o 3._o the_o papist_n tie_v the_o cause_n of_o grace_n to_o to_o their_o charm_n 22._o 16._o the_o papist_n tie_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o sign_n 10._o 4._o 7_o how_o the_o papist_n colour_v their_o deal_n in_o change_n or_o abrogate_a the_o institution_n of_o christ_n 2._o 38._o whence_o the_o papist_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n have_v some_o authority_n of_o her_o own_o 15._o 28._o whence_o the_o papist_n fetch_v peter_n supremacy_n 1._o 13._o 16._o how_o the_o papist_n extenuate_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n 9_o 5._o the_o papist_n do_v in_o vain_a invent_v to_o themselves_o infinite_a way_n to_o attain_v to_o salvation_n 4_o 12._o a_o pastor_n be_v also_o a_o bishop_n 20._o 28._o in_o what_o respect_n a_o pastor_n may_v fly_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n 8._o 1._o pastor_n be_v master_n builder_n 4._o 11._o pastor_n be_v minister_n of_o life_n 11._o 3._o in_o what_o sense_n pastor_n be_v priest_n 13._o 2._o what_o manner_n person_n must_v be_v choose_v 1._o 24._o pastor_n must_v be_v honour_v 16._o 9_o pastor_n be_v subject_a to_o infinite_a slander_n 6._o 14._o and_o 7._o 26._o and_o 16._o 20._o and_o 17._o 6._o and_o 18._o 12._o and_o 19_o 23._o and_o 21._o 17._o and_o 25._o 17._o pastor_n must_v not_o make_v choice_n of_o their_o auditor_n 26._o 22._o the_o pastor_n must_v especial_o pray_v 6._o 4._o ambition_n of_o pastor_n be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o church_n 20._o 30_o ambition_n of_o pastor_n do_v corrupt_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n ibid._n covetousness_n of_o pastor_n be_v condemn_v 20._o 33._o authority_n of_o pastor_n 6._o 3._o how_o the_o sermon_n
therefore_o unless_o you_o yourselves_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o let_v you_o shall_v receive_v with_o we_o of_o this_o fullness_n and_o as_o for_o we_o let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o same_o be_v speak_v to_o we_o at_o this_o day_n which_o be_v then_o speak_v to_o the_o jew_n for_o although_o those_o visible_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v cease_v yet_o god_n have_v not_o withdraw_v his_o spirit_n from_o his_o church_n wherefore_o he_o offer_v he_o daily_o unto_o we_o all_o by_o this_o same_o promise_n without_o put_v any_o difference_n wherefore_o we_o be_v poor_a and_o needy_a only_o through_o our_o own_o sluggishness_n and_o also_o it_o appear_v manifest_o that_o those_o be_v wicked_a and_o sacrilegious_a enemy_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o keep_v back_o the_o christian_a common_a people_n from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o himself_o do_v not_o only_o admit_v but_o also_o call_v by_o name_n unto_o himself_o woman_n and_o man_n young_a and_o old_a 18_o upon_o my_o servant_n in_o these_o word_n the_o promise_n be_v restrain_v unto_o the_o worshipper_n of_o god_n for_o god_n do_v not_o profane_a his_o spirit_n which_o he_o shall_v do_v if_o he_o shall_v make_v the_o same_o common_a to_o the_o unbelieved_a and_o despiser_n it_o be_v cetaine_v that_o we_o be_v make_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n by_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o until_o such_o time_n as_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o same_o but_o first_o who_o god_n have_v adopt_v to_o be_v of_o his_o family_n and_o who_o he_o have_v frame_v by_o his_o spirit_n to_o obey_v he_o those_o do_v he_o furnish_v with_o new_a gift_n afterward_o again_o the_o prophet_n do_v not_o respect_v that_o order_n of_o time_n but_o his_o meaning_n be_v to_o make_v this_o grace_n proper_a to_o the_o church_n alone_o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o church_n be_v only_o among_o the_o jew_n he_o call_v they_o honourable_o the_o servant_n and_o handmaid_n of_o god_n but_o after_o that_o god_n do_v gather_v unto_o himself_o on_o every_o side_n a_o church_n the_o wall_n of_o separation_n be_v pull_v down_o so_o many_o as_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o society_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v call_v by_o the_o same_o name_n only_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o church_n proper_o 19_o and_o i_o will_v show_v wonder_n we_o must_v first_o see_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n some_o do_v expound_v it_o of_o the_o former_a come_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o othersome_a refer_v it_o unto_o the_o last_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n i_o do_v allow_v neither_o opinion_n for_o in_o my_o judgement_n the_o prophet_n comprehend_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o he_o call_v it_o the_o great_a day_n after_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n begin_v to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o flesh_n that_o he_o may_v lead_v we_o into_o the_o fulfil_n of_o his_o kingdom_n therefore_o he_o appoint_v no_o certain_a day_n but_o he_o begin_v this_o day_n at_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o he_o extend_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o last_o resurrection_n those_o which_o restrain_v it_o unto_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v move_v with_o this_o reason_n because_o the_o prophet_n join_v this_o member_n and_o that_o which_o go_v next_o before_o together_o but_o in_o that_o there_o be_v no_o absurdity_n at_o all_o because_o the_o prophet_n do_v assign_v the_o time_n when_o these_o thing_n begin_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v howsoever_o they_o have_v a_o continual_a go_n forward_o even_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n furthermore_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o sun_n shall_v be_v turn_v to_o darkness_n and_o the_o moon_n into_o blood_n they_o be_v figurative_a speech_n whereby_o he_o do_v give_v we_o to_o understand_v thus_o much_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v show_v token_n of_o his_o wrath_n through_o out_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o the_o world_n which_o shall_v bring_v man_n even_o to_o their_o wit_n end_n as_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o horrible_a and_o fearful_a change_n of_o nature_n wrought_v for_o as_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n be_v unto_o we_o witness_n of_o god_n fatherlie_a favour_n towards_o we_o while_o that_o by_o course_n they_o give_v light_n to_o the_o earth_n so_o on_o the_o otherside_n the_o prophet_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v messenger_n to_o foreshewe_v god_n wrath_n and_o displeasure_n and_o this_o be_v the_o second_o member_n of_o the_o prophecy_n for_o after_o that_o he_o have_v entreat_v of_o the_o spiritual_a grace_n which_o shall_v be_v abundant_o pour_v out_o upon_o all_o flesh_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v imagine_v that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v quiet_a and_o prosperous_a together_o therewithal_o he_o add_v that_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v troublesome_a and_o full_a of_o great_a fear_n under_o christ_n as_o christ_n himself_o do_v more_o full_o declare_v math._n 24._o and_o luke_n 21._o but_o this_o serve_v great_o to_o the_o set_v forth_o of_o grace_n that_o where_o as_o all_o thing_n do_v threaten_v destruction_n yet_o who_o so_o ever_o do_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v sure_o to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o sun_n by_o the_o bloody_a stream_a of_o the_o moon_n by_o the_o black_a vapour_n of_o smoke_n the_o prophet_n mean_v to_o declare_v that_o whither_o so_o ever_o man_n turn_v their_o eye_n there_o shall_v many_o thing_n appear_v both_o upwarde_a and_o downward_o which_o may_v make_v they_o amaze_v and_o afraid_a as_o he_o have_v already_o say_v therefore_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o world_n be_v never_o in_o a_o more_o miserable_a case_n that_o there_o be_v never_o so_o many_a and_o such_o cruel_a token_n of_o god_n wrath_n hence_o may_v we_o gather_v how_o unestimable_a the_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v who_o offer_v a_o present_a remedy_n for_o so_o great_a evil_n and_o again_o how_o unthankful_a they_o be_v towards_o god_n and_o how_o froward_a which_o do_v not_o fly_v unto_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o salvation_n which_o be_v nigh_o unto_o they_o and_o do_v meet_v they_o again_o it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o god_n mean_v by_o this_o so_o doleful_a a_o description_n to_o stir_v up_o all_o godly_a man_n that_o they_o may_v with_o a_o more_o fervent_a desire_n seek_v for_o salvation_n and_o peter_n cit_v it_o to_o the_o same_o end_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v know_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v more_o than_o miserable_a unless_o they_o receive_v that_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o yet_o here_o may_v a_o question_n be_v ask_v how_o this_o can_v hang_v together_o that_o when_o christ_n be_v reveal_v there_o shall_v such_o a_o sea_n of_o misery_n overflowe_v and_o break_v out_o therewithal_o for_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o inconvenient_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o only_a pledge_n of_o god_n love_n towards_o mankind_n in_o who_o the_o heavenly_a father_n do_v lay_v open_a all_o the_o treasure_n of_o his_o goodness_n yea_o he_o pour_v out_o the_o bowel_n of_o his_o mercy_n upon_o we_o and_o that_o yet_o by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o same_o his_o son_n his_o wrath_n shall_v be_v more_o hot_a than_o it_o be_v wont_v so_o that_o it_o shall_v as_o it_o be_v quite_o consume_v both_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o once_o but_o we_o must_v first_o mark_n that_o because_o man_n be_v too_o slow_a to_o receive_v christ_n they_o must_v be_v constrain_v by_o diverse_a affliction_n as_o it_o be_v with_o whip_n second_o for_o as_o much_o as_o christ_n do_v call_v unto_o himself_o all_o those_o which_o be_v heavy_a load_v and_o labour_n 11.24_o mat._n 11.24_o we_o must_v first_o be_v tame_v by_o many_o misery_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v humility_n for_o through_o great_a prosperity_n man_n do_v set_v up_o the_o horn_n of_o pride_n and_o he_o can_v but_o despise_v christ_n fiercelie_n who_o so_o ever_o he_o be_v that_o seem_v to_o himself_o to_o be_v happy_a three_o because_o we_o be_v more_o than_o we_o ought_v set_v upon_o the_o seek_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o flesh_n whereby_o it_o come_v also_o to_o pass_v that_o many_o tie_v the_o grace_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o present_a life_n it_o be_v expedient_a for_o we_o to_o be_v accustom_v to_o think_v otherwise_o that_o we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v spiritual_a therefore_o to_o the_o end_n god_n may_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o good_a thing_n of_o christ_n be_v heavenly_a he_o do_v exercise_v we_o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n with_o many_o misery_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o
every_o where_n neither_o do_v this_o disagree_v with_o the_o common_a use_n of_o the_o scripture_n again_o he_o mean_v not_o that_o the_o faithful_a sell_v all_o that_o they_o have_v but_o only_o so_o much_o as_o need_v require_v for_o this_o be_v speak_v for_o amplification_n sake_n that_o the_o rich_a man_n do_v not_o only_o relieve_v the_o poverty_n of_o their_o brethren_n of_o the_o yearly_o revenue_n of_o their_o land_n but_o they_o be_v so_o liberal_a that_o they_o spare_v not_o their_o land_n and_o this_o may_v be_v though_o they_o do_v not_o rob_v themselves_o of_o all_o but_o only_o a_o little_a diminish_v their_o revenue_n which_o we_o may_v gather_v again_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o luke_n for_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o end_n that_o no_o man_n may_v lack_v he_o show_v further_a that_o they_o use_v great_a wisdom_n because_o it_o be_v distribute_v as_o every_o man_n have_v need_v therefore_o the_o good_n be_v not_o equal_o divide_v but_o there_o be_v a_o discrete_a distribution_n make_v lest_o any_o shall_v be_v out_o of_o measure_n oppress_v with_o poverty_n and_o peradventure_o joses_fw-es have_v this_o commendation_n give_v he_o by_o name_n because_o he_o sell_v his_o only_a possession_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o pass_v all_o the_o rest_n hereby_o it_o appear_v what_o that_o mean_v that_o no_o man_n count_v any_o thing_n his_o own_o but_o they_o have_v all_o thing_n common_a for_o no_o man_n have_v his_o own_o private_o to_o himself_o that_o he_o alone_o may_v enjoy_v the_o same_o neglect_v other_o but_o as_o need_v require_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o bestow_v upon_o all_o man_n and_o now_o we_o must_v needs_o have_v more_o than_o iron_n bowel_n see_v that_o we_o be_v no_o more_o move_v with_o the_o read_n of_o this_o history_n the_o faithful_a do_v at_o that_o day_n give_v abundant_o even_o of_o that_o which_o be_v their_o own_o but_o we_o be_v not_o only_o content_a at_o this_o day_n wicked_o to_o suppress_v that_o which_o we_o have_v in_o our_o hand_n but_o do_v also_o rob_v other_o they_o do_v simple_o and_o faithful_o bring_v forth_o their_o own_o we_o invent_v a_o thousand_o subtle_a shift_n to_o draw_v all_o thing_n unto_o we_o by_o hook_n or_o by_o crook_n they_o lay_v it_o down_o at_o the_o apostle_n foot_n we_o fear_v not_o with_o sacrilegious_a boldness_n to_o convert_v that_o to_o our_o own_o use_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n they_o sell_v in_o time_n past_o their_o possession_n there_o reign_v at_o this_o day_n a_o unsatiable_a desire_n to_o buy_v love_n make_v that_o common_a to_o the_o poor_a and_o needy_a which_o be_v proper_a to_o every_o man_n such_o be_v the_o unnaturalnes_n of_o some_o man_n now_o that_o they_o can_v abide_v that_o the_o poor_a shall_v dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o use_n of_o water_n air_n and_o heaven_n wherefore_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v for_o our_o shame_n &_o reproach_n although_o even_o the_o poor_a themselves_o be_v too_o blame_v for_o some_o part_n of_o this_o evil_n for_o see_v good_n can_v be_v common_a after_o this_o sort_n save_v only_o where_o there_o be_v a_o godly_a agreement_n and_o where_o there_o reign_v one_o heart_n and_o one_o soul_n many_o man_n be_v either_o so_o proud_a or_o unthankful_a or_o slothful_a or_o greedy_a or_o such_o hypocrite_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o so_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v quite_o put_v out_o the_o desire_n to_o do_v well_o but_o also_o hinder_v hability_n 6.9_o galath_n 6.9_o and_o yet_o must_v we_o remember_v that_o admonition_n of_o paul_n that_o w●_n be_v not_o weary_a of_o well_o do_v and_o whereas_o under_o colour_n of_o this_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o fantastical_a man_n have_v make_v much_o ado_n as_o if_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o civil_a property_n of_o good_n among_o christian_n i_o have_v already_o refute_v this_o folly_n of_o they_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n for_o neither_o do_v luke_n in_o this_o place_n prescribe_v a_o law_n to_o all_o man_n which_o they_o must_v of_o necessity_n follow_v while_o that_o he_o reckon_v up_o what_o they_o do_v in_o who_o a_o certain_a singular_a efficacy_n and_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n do_v show_v itself_o neither_o do_v he_o speak_v general_o of_o all_o man_n that_o it_o can_v be_v gather_v that_o they_o be_v not_o count_v christian_n which_o do_v not_o sell_v all_o that_o they_o have_v chap._n v._n 1_o and_o a_o certain_a man_n call_v ananias_n with_o sapphira_n his_o wife_n sell_v a_o possession_n 2_o and_o he_o keep_v back_o part_n of_o the_o price_n his_o wife_n know_v thereof_o and_o bring_v part_n he_o lay_v it_o at_o the_o apostle_n foot_n 3_o and_o peter_n say_v ananias_n why_o have_v satan_n fill_v thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o shall_v lie_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o keep_v back_o part_n of_o the_o price_n of_o the_o ground_n 4_o do_v it_o not_o remain_v remain_n to_o thou_o and_o be_v sell_v be_v it_o not_o in_o thy_o power_n how_o be_v that_o thou_o have_v put_v this_o thing_n in_o thy_o heart_n thou_o have_v not_o lie_v to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n 5_o and_o when_o ananias_n hear_v these_o word_n fall_v he_o yield_v up_o the_o ghost_n and_o there_o come_v great_a fear_n upon_o all_o those_o which_o have_v hear_v these_o thing_n 6_o furthermore_o the_o young_a man_n which_o be_v present_a gather_v he_o up_o and_o carry_v he_o out_o they_o bury_v he_o 1_o those_o thing_n which_o luke_n have_v report_v hitherto_o do_v show_v that_o that_o company_n which_o be_v gather_v together_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v rather_o a_o company_n of_o angel_n than_o of_o man_n moreover_o that_o be_v incredible_a virtue_n that_o the_o rich_a man_n do_v despoil_v themselves_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n not_o only_o of_o their_o money_n but_o also_o of_o their_o land_n that_o they_o may_v relieve_v the_o poor_a but_o now_o he_o show_v that_o satan_n have_v inennt_v a_o shift_n to_o get_v into_o that_o holy_a company_n &_o that_o under_o colour_n of_o such_o excellent_a virtue_n for_o he_o have_v wonderful_a wile_n of_o hypocrisy_n to_o insinuate_v himself_o this_o way_n do_v satan_n assault_v the_o church_n when_o as_o he_o can_v prevail_v by_o open_a war_n but_o we_o must_v special_o in_o this_o place_n have_v respect_n unto_o the_o drift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o in_o this_o history_n he_o mean_v to_o declare_v first_o how_o acceptable_a singleness_n of_o heart_n be_v to_o god_n and_o what_o a_o abomination_n hypocrisy_n be_v in_o his_o sight_n second_o how_o great_o he_o allow_v the_o holy_a and_o pure_a policy_n and_o government_n of_o his_o church_n for_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n the_o punishment_n wherewith_o god_n punish_v ananias_n and_o his_o wife_n as_o the_o greatness_n thereof_o do_v at_o that_o time_n terrify_v they_o all_o so_o it_o be_v unto_o we_o a_o testimony_n that_o god_n can_v abide_v this_o unfaithfulnesse_n when_o as_o bear_v a_o show_n of_o holiness_n where_o there_o be_v none_o we_o do_v mock_v he_o contemptible_o for_o if_o have_v weigh_v all_o the_o circumstance_n we_o be_v desirous_a to_o know_v the_o sum_n luke_n condemn_v no_o other_o fault_n in_o ananias_n than_o this_o that_o he_o mean_v to_o deceive_v god_n and_o the_o church_n with_o a_o feign_a offering_n yet_o there_o be_v more_o evil_n pack_v under_o this_o dissimulation_n the_o contempt_n of_o god_n who_o he_o fear_v not_o though_o he_o know_v his_o wickedness_n sacrilegious_a defraud_v because_o he_o keep_v back_o part_n of_o that_o which_o he_o profess_v to_o be_v holy_a to_o god_n perverse_a vanity_n and_o ambition_n because_o he_o vaunt_v himself_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o man_n without_o have_v any_o respect_n unto_o god_n judgement_n want_v of_o faith_n because_o he_o will_v never_o have_v go_v this_o way_n to_o work_v unless_o he_o have_v mistrust_v god_n the_o corrupt_a of_o a_o godly_a and_o holy_a order_n furthermore_o the_o hypocrisy_n itself_o be_v a_o great_a offence_n of_o itself_o the_o fact_n of_o ananias_n do_v bear_v a_o goodly_a show_n although_o he_o have_v give_v only_o the_o half_a of_o his_o land_n neither_o be_v this_o a_o small_a virtue_n for_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o bestow_v the_o half_a of_o his_o good_n upon_o the_o poor_a 15.8_o prou._n 15.8_o but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o ungodly_a be_v a_o abomination_n to_o god_n neither_o can_v any_o thing_n please_v he_o where_o the_o singleness_n of_o heart_n be_v want_v 21.2_o luke_n 21.2_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v it_o that_o christ_n make_v more_o account_n of_o the_o two_o mite_n offer_v by_o the_o widow_n than_o of_o the_o great_a sum_n of_o other_o who_o of_o their_o great_a heap_n give_v some_o part_n this_o be_v
the_o cause_n why_o god_n do_v show_v a_o example_n of_o such_o sharp_a punishment_n in_o ananias_n now_o let_v we_o note_v every_o point_n by_o itself_o he_o lay_v it_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o apostle_n loe_o what_o ambition_n do_v ananias_n be_v ashamed_a not_o to_o be_v account_v one_o of_o the_o best_a therefore_o although_o he_o be_v greedy_a of_o money_n yet_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v purchase_v a_o name_n among_o man_n he_o deprive_v himself_o of_o some_o part_n of_o his_o riches_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o he_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o he_o lie_v and_o disceive_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o that_o god_n will_v punish_v this_o lie_n so_o it_o be_v that_o he_o honour_v the_o apostle_n foot_n more_o than_o god_n eye_n wherefore_o we_o must_v take_v good_a heed_n that_o when_o we_o do_v well_o we_o do_v not_o seek_v to_o be_v praise_v of_o the_o by_o stander_n and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o christ_n say_v that_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o we_o when_o we_o give_v our_o alm_n to_o have_v the_o left_a hand_n ignorant_a of_o that_o which_o the_o right_a hand_n do_v 3_o and_o peter_n say_v how_o do_v peter_n know_v ananias_n his_o fraud_n and_o purloign_v undoubted_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o luke_n signify_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v after_o a_o sort_n represent_v god_n person_n and_o supply_v his_o room_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o mortal_a man_n do_v so_o sore_o urge_v a_o hypocrite_n be_v otherwise_o paint_v with_o the_o beautiful_a colour_n of_o virtue_n how_o shall_v the_o reprobate_n abide_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n himself_o with_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n when_o they_o shall_v appear_v before_o his_o judgement_n seat_n furthermore_o peter_n point_v out_o the_o cruelnes_n and_o horriblenes_n of_o the_o offence_n by_o his_o question_n when_o he_o say_v that_o satan_n have_v fill_v the_o hart_n of_o ananias_n for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n who_o hart_n be_v not_o prick_v with_o the_o prick_v of_o satan_n and_o all_o man_n be_v also_o many_o way_n tempt_v yea_o these_o temptation_n pierce_v into_o their_o mind_n but_o where_o satan_n possess_v the_o hart_n he_o reign_v in_o the_o whole_a man_n have_v as_o it_o be_v expel_v god_n this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o reprobate_n to_o be_v so_o addict_v and_o give_v over_o to_o satan_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v no_o place_n that_o which_o follow_v afterward_o concern_v lie_v may_v have_v a_o double_a sense_n either_o that_o he_o do_v false_o bear_v a_o show_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o that_o he_o lie_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v word_n for_o word_n mentiri_fw-la spiritum_fw-la but_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o greek_a word_n pseudesthai_n be_v join_v with_o a_o double_a accusative_fw-mi case_n &_o that_o do_v better_a agree_v with_o the_o text_n i_o be_o rather_o of_o this_o mind_n that_o ananias_n be_v reprehend_v because_o he_o do_v lie_v false_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o he_o confirm_v short_o after_o when_o he_o upbraid_v this_o unto_o he_o that_o he_o have_v lie_v unto_o god_n and_o not_o unto_o man_n wherefore_o we_o must_v take_v great_a heed_n that_o hypocrisy_n reign_v not_o in_o we_o which_o have_v this_o wickedness_n proper_a to_o it_o to_o go_v about_o to_o disceive_v god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v cornicum_fw-la oculos_fw-la configere_fw-la to_o go_v about_o to_o make_v blind_a those_o which_o be_v most_o wise_a which_o can_v be_v without_o a_o disloyal_a and_o unseemly_a mock_n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o peter_n say_v that_o where_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v the_o heart_n be_v possess_v of_o satan_n for_o who_o dare_v unless_o he_o be_v void_a of_o reason_n so_o blaspheme_v god_n therefore_o peter_n ask_v he_o as_o of_o some_o wonder_n because_o such_o blindness_n be_v horrible_a 4_o do_v it_o not_o remain_v this_o amplifi_v the_o offence_n because_o he_o sin_v be_v enforce_v by_o no_o necessity_n for_o see_v it_o be_v no_o just_a or_o lawful_a excuse_n to_o have_v be_v provoke_v by_o some_o other_o mean_n how_o much_o worse_o be_v it_o to_o run_v headlong_o unto_o wickedness_n willing_o and_o as_o it_o be_v of_o set_a purpose_n to_o pull_v down_o god_n vengeance_n we_o gather_v out_o of_o this_o that_o no_o man_n be_v enforce_v to_o sell_v his_o good_n or_o land_n for_o peter_n say_v that_o ananias_n have_v free_a liberty_n to_o keep_v both_o his_o land_n and_o his_o money_n because_o in_o the_o second_o member_n the_o field_n which_o be_v sell_v be_v take_v for_o the_o price_n itself_o therefore_o he_o shall_v nevertheless_o have_v be_v count_v faithful_a though_o he_o have_v keep_v that_o which_o be_v his_o own_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v man_n destitute_a of_o their_o right_a wit_n who_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o faithful_a to_o have_v any_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o thou_o have_v not_o lie_v to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n although_o the_o word_n be_v diverse_o construe_v yet_o do_v i_o not_o doubt_v but_o that_o this_o confirm_v the_o former_a sentence_n for_o hypocrite_n do_v so_o inwrappe_v themselves_o in_o so_o many_o shift_n that_o they_o think_v they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o god_n and_o peter_n speak_v thus_o express_o because_o ananias_n have_v deceive_v the_o church_n 18.20_o mat._n 18.20_o but_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v consider_v that_o where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v present_a there_o as_o the_o chief_a governor_n yea_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v behave_v himself_n no_o other_o wise_a in_o that_o assembly_n than_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v see_v god_n with_o his_o eye_n for_o see_v that_o god_n will_v reign_v in_o the_o church_n if_o we_o give_v he_o any_o reverence_n we_o must_v reverence_v that_o rule_n and_o government_n religious_o which_o he_o exercise_v by_o his_o word_n the_o apostle_n be_v in_o deed_n man_n but_o not_o private_a man_n 6.19_o 1._o cor._n 3.16_o &_o 17._o &_o 6.19_o because_o god_n have_v put_v they_o in_o his_o steed_n furthermore_o we_o must_v note_v that_o he_o say_v that_o he_o lie_v to_o god_n who_o do_v lie_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v manifest_o prove_v by_o this_o form_n of_o speech_n in_o like_a sort_n paul_n say_v you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n because_o his_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o you_o 1._o cor._n the_o three_o chapt._n 2.16_o 2._o cor._n 2.16_o 5_o when_o ananias_n hear_v these_o thing_n the_o death_n of_o ananias_n do_v in_o deed_n declare_v and_o prove_v the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n which_o paul_n do_v high_o extol_v to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n to_o those_o which_o perish_v 2._o cor._n 2._o he_o speak_v in_o deed_n of_o the_o spiritual_a death_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a sign_n in_o the_o body_n of_o ananias_n of_o that_o punishment_n which_o can_v be_v see_v with_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n he_o be_v not_o slay_v with_o sword_n by_o force_n nor_o hand_n but_o be_v strike_v dead_a with_o the_o only_a hear_n of_o the_o voice_n when_o we_o hear_v this_o let_v the_o threaten_n of_o the_o gospel_n terrify_v we_o and_o humble_v we_o in_o time_n lest_o we_o also_o feel_v the_o like_a effect_n for_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o christ_n 11.4_o esaie_n 11.4_o he_o shall_v slay_v the_o wicked_a with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n do_v not_o only_o appertain_v to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o also_o to_o every_o member_n for_o those_o which_o refuse_v the_o salvation_n offer_v in_o his_o word_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v deadly_a to_o they_o which_o be_v natural_o wholesome_a but_o and_o if_o any_o man_n do_v think_v it_o a_o absurd_a thing_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v punish_v ananias_n bodily_a first_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a thing_n second_o that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o 12._o 12.10_o 1._o cor._n 12.10_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n after_o which_o sort_n we_o shall_v afterward_o see_v elimas_n the_o sorcerer_n strike_v with_o blindness_n by_o paul_n therefore_o peter_n do_v nothing_o which_o be_v impertinent_a to_o his_o function_n 13.8_o act_n 13.8_o when_o he_o do_v in_o time_n shoot_v that_o dart_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v give_v he_o and_o whereas_o some_o think_v that_o this_o be_v too_o cruel_a a_o punishment_n this_o come_v to_o pass_v because_o weigh_v ananias_n his_o sin_n in_o their_o own_o and_o not_o in_o god_n balance_n they_o count_v that_o but_o
take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o paul_n defend_v christ_n cause_n manful_o 29_o he_o dispute_v with_o the_o grecian_n erasmus_n note_v well_o in_o this_o place_n that_o those_o be_v here_o call_v grecian_n not_o which_o come_v of_o grecian_n but_o rather_o those_o jew_n who_o be_v scatter_v throughout_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o world_n those_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o come_v together_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o worship_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o paul_n dispute_v rather_o with_o stranger_n and_o alien_n than_o with_o those_o who_o dwell_v at_o jerusalem_n because_o this_o latter_a sort_n will_v never_o have_v abide_v he_o neither_o have_v it_o be_v wise_o do_v to_o come_v in_o their_o sight_n therefore_o be_v exclude_v from_o those_o who_o know_v he_o before_o he_o try_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o hope_n to_o do_v good_a among_o man_n who_o he_o know_v not_o so_o that_o he_o do_v most_o stout_o whatsoever_o concern_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o valiant_a soldier_n they_o will_v have_v slay_v he_o behold_v again_o fury_n in_o steed_n of_o zeal_n and_o it_o can_v otherwise_o be_v but_o that_o hypocrisy_n and_o superstition_n will_v be_v cruel_a and_o fierce_a the_o godly_a must_v be_v incense_v with_o a_o holy_a wrath_n when_o they_o see_v the_o pure_a truth_n of_o god_n corrupt_v with_o false_a and_o wicked_a opinion_n yet_o so_o that_o they_o moderate_v their_o zeal_n that_o they_o set_v down_o nothing_o until_o they_o have_v thorough_o weigh_v the_o cause_n and_o second_o that_o they_o assay_v to_o bring_v those_o into_o the_o way_n who_o wander_v out_o of_o the_o same_o last_o that_o if_o they_o see_v their_o stubbernesse_n to_o be_v past_a hope_n they_o themselves_o take_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o hand_n because_o they_o must_v know_v that_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n grant_v they_o of_o the_o lord_n to_o punish_v or_o revenge_v but_o hypocrite_n be_v always_o ready_a to_o shed_v blood_n before_o they_o know_v the_o matter_n so_o that_o superstition_n be_v bloody_a through_o blind_a and_o headlong_a fury_n but_o paul_n who_o of_o late_o run_v up_o and_o down_o to_o vex_v the_o godly_a can_v abide_v no_o where_n now_o and_o yet_o this_o estate_n be_v far_o better_a for_o he_o than_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v reign_v in_o peace_n and_o quietness_n drive_v the_o godly_a every_o where_n out_o of_o their_o place_n 30_o in_o that_o he_o go_v to_o tarsus_n he_o do_v it_o undoubted_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v carry_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n thither_o because_o he_o hope_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v some_o favour_n and_o authority_n in_o his_o country_n where_o he_o be_v famous_a yet_o be_v he_o bring_v thither_o by_o the_o brethren_n that_o they_o may_v deliver_v he_o from_o the_o lie_v in_o wait_n 31_o then_o the_o church_n luke_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v great_o provoke_v by_o paul_n his_o presence_n for_o why_o be_v there_o such_o peace_n make_v sudden_o by_o his_o departure_n save_v only_o because_o the_o very_a sight_n of_o he_o do_v provoke_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o enemy_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v no_o reproach_n to_o he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v as_o it_o be_v some_o trumpet_n in_o war_n but_o luke_n do_v rather_o commend_v he_o for_o this_o because_o he_o make_v the_o wicked_a run_v mad_a only_o with_o the_o smell_n of_o he_o when_o he_o be_v near_o they_o for_o christ_n mean_v so_o to_o triumph_v in_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v no_o less_o a_o trouble_n than_o a_o ornament_n to_o his_o church_n therefore_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o example_n that_o those_o be_v not_o by_o and_o by_o to_o be_v condemn_v who_o inflame_v the_o madness_n of_o the_o wicked_a more_o than_o other_o which_o admonition_n be_v not_o a_o little_a profitable_a for_o as_o we_o be_v too_o dainty_a and_o too_o much_o besot_v with_o the_o love_n of_o our_o own_o rest_n so_o we_o be_v also_o sometime_o angry_a with_o the_o best_a and_o most_o excellent_a servant_n of_o christ_n if_o we_o think_v that_o through_o their_o vehemency_n the_o wicked_a be_v prick_v forward_o to_o do_v hurt_v and_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o do_v injury_n to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o force_n and_o speech_n kindle_v all_o that_o flame_n and_o whereas_o luke_n say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v peace_n let_v we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o continual_a but_o because_o the_o lord_n grant_v his_o servant_n some_o short_a breathe_n for_o thus_o do_v he_o bear_v with_o our_o infirmity_n when_o he_o appease_v or_o mittigate_v the_o wind_n and_o storm_n of_o persecution_n lest_o if_o they_o shall_v hold_v on_o still_o they_o shall_v urge_v we_o out_o of_o measure_n and_o this_o blessing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v neither_o be_v it_o any_o common_a blessing_n when_o as_o the_o church_n have_v peace_n but_o luke_n add_v other_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o far_o more_o value_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n be_v edify_v they_o walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o as_o we_o be_v wont_v to_o riot_n and_o exceed_v in_o time_n of_o peace_n the_o church_n be_v more_o happy_a for_o the_o most_o part_n amid_o the_o tumult_n of_o war_n than_o if_o they_o shall_v enjoy_v what_o rest_n they_o will_v desire_v but_o and_o if_o holy_a conversation_n and_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o their_o state_n do_v flourish_v be_v take_v away_o they_o lose_v not_o only_o their_o felicity_n but_o they_o come_v to_o nought_o therefore_o let_v we_o learn_v not_o to_o abuse_v external_a peace_n in_o banquet_v and_o idleness_n but_o the_o more_o rest_n we_o have_v give_v we_o from_o our_o enemy_n to_o encourage_v ourselves_o to_o go_v forward_o in_o godliness_n while_o we_o may_v and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o lord_n let_v lose_v the_o bridle_n to_o the_o wicked_a to_o trouble_v we_o let_v the_o inward_a consolation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v sufficient_a for_o us._n final_o as_o well_o in_o peace_n as_o in_o war_n let_v we_o always_o joyful_o go_v forward_o towards_o he_o who_o have_v a_o reward_n for_o us._n edification_n may_v be_v take_v either_o for_o increase_v to_o wit_n while_o the_o church_n be_v augment_v with_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a or_o for_o their_o go_v forward_o who_o be_v already_o in_o the_o flock_n to_o wit_n while_o they_o have_v new_a gift_n give_v they_o and_o have_v great_a confirmation_n of_o godliness_n in_o the_o first_o signification_n it_o shall_v be_v refer_v unto_o the_o person_n in_o the_o second_o unto_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n i_o embrace_v both_o willing_o that_o there_o be_v some_o ever_o now_o and_o then_o gather_v unto_o the_o church_n who_o be_v stranger_n before_o and_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o the_o church_n do_v increase_v in_o godliness_n and_o other_o virtue_n furthermore_o the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o build_n be_v very_o convenient_a because_o the_o church_n be_v the_o temple_n and_o house_n of_o god_n 3.16.19_o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o 1._o cor._n 3.16.19_o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a be_v also_o a_o temple_n the_o two_o thing_n which_o follow_v that_o they_o walk_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v part_n of_o that_o edification_n therefore_o though_o the_o church_n have_v peace_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o drunken_a with_o delight_n and_o earthly_a joy_n but_o trust_v to_o god_n help_n they_o be_v more_o embolden_v to_o glorify_v god_n 32_o and_o it_o happen_v that_o while_n peter_n walk_v through_o all_o he_o come_v also_o unto_o the_o saint_n which_o dwell_v at_o lydda_n 33_o and_o he_o find_v there_o a_o man_n name_v aeneas_n who_o have_v lay_v in_o his_o bed_n eight_o year_n who_o have_v the_o palsy_n 34_o and_o peter_n say_v unto_o he_o aeneas_n jesus_n christ_n make_v thou_o whole_a arise_v and_o make_v thy_o bed_n and_o forthwith_o he_o arise_v 35_o and_o all_o those_o which_o dwell_v at_o lydda_n and_o assaron_n see_v he_o and_o be_v turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n 32_o luke_n set_v down_o how_o the_o church_n be_v increase_v by_o miracle_n and_o he_o recite_v two_o miracle_n that_o a_o man_n who_o have_v be_v bedrid_a eight_o year_n have_v the_o palsy_n be_v sudden_o heal_v and_o that_o a_o certain_a woman_n be_v raise_v from_o death_n first_o he_o say_v that_o as_o peter_n walk_v throughout_o all_o he_o come_v to_o lydda_n and_o by_o all_o understande_v not_o church_n but_o the_o faithful_a because_o it_o be_v in_o greek_a of_o the_o masculine_a gender_n though_o